Jay Smut - Tumblr Posts
Mornings with you Masterlist
Return to Masterlist
Parents Jay x reader
Fluff, smut
Each chapter will contain its own warnings at the start
Mornings with you
Nights with you
Ok I swear every time I write a smut I say this đ But honestly, Iâm writing the smut part for husband Jay pt 2 right now and my god đ„”đ„”đ„”đ„”đ„”đ„”đ„”đ„”đ„”đ„”đ„”đ„”đ„”đ„”đ„”đ„”đ„”đ„”đ„”đ„”
Iâm actually so excited for you all to read this because itâs actually just so akxwoosmcdoeplccmkwpwrmnfovmtr
SPOILER ALERTâŒïž : sub Jay - THATâS ALL IâM GONNA SAY
Nights with you
Parents Jay x reader
Smut
The way that the members are depicted in this story has nothing to do with how they really are or how I feel they are. It is all solely for the storyline so please bear that in mind đ«¶
Summary: Your husband had been working so hard and you wanted to give him a nice little treat to show your appreciation
Warnings: cursing, pet names, switch! Jay & reader, use of 'mummy' and 'daddy', unprotected sex, oral (f & m receiving), squirting, use of silk rope for handcuffs (please let me know if I need to add any more đ€)
Series masterlist
Masterlist
It was a late Friday evening and you had been moving around non-stop. You had dropped your babies off at your parents' this morning as they had been missing them, so you decided to tidy up the house and spoil your big, hard-working baby who was about to return soon. The kitchen smelt heavenly as you finished up his favourite foods and by the time you looked at the clock, you saw that you had just enough time to get yourself dolled up before your husband's arrival.
You made sure to scrub and shave every inch of your body before stepping out and applying your favourite strawberry-scented body lotion. After debating in your head for a bit, you decided on putting on a light touch of makeup to accentuate your features in a natural way. Then you quickly got changed and as soon as you tied your silk robe, the sound of your front door's keypad rang through the house. You took that as your cue and made your way downstairs to greet your husband
"Baby I'm h- oh wow"
Your husband stood there with his mouth wide open as he took in your presence. You were pretty sure that you could also see a little bit of drool on the corner of his mouth which made you giggle
"Darling, you're catching flies" you cooed at him as you gently grabbed his chin to close his mouth
Jay still remained speechless as he looked at you, so you decided to grab his hand and pull him into the dining room. You sat him down and made him comfortable so that you could bring his dinner out. Once everything was plated up, you brought his plate and drink out to him and when you placed it on the table in front of him, he pulled your face towards his and brought you in for a long-awaited kiss. It was so delicate and sweet that it took all of your might to pull away
"Thank you for this my princess. Are the babies sleeping right now?" he asked whilst tucking your hair behind your ears
"I dropped them off at my parents' house this morning since mum wanted to spend some time with them for the weekend. Is that ok with you darling?"
He flashed you his signature smirk at your question "Of course that is more than ok with me baby. They miss their grandparents, and I miss my wife"
It didn't matter how many years you had been with Jay, he still had a way with his words that made you blush non-stop. So to save him from the satisfaction, you quickly pulled away and got your food from the kitchen. Of course your husband knew you too well and laughed at the quick sight of your bright cheeks when you ran away
Dinner ran smoothly as you and Jay were immersed in each other's company. There were a few exchanges of words but for the most part, you were in a comfortable silence. When you would look up from your plate every so often, you were met with the loving gaze of your dear husband who just could not keep his eyes off you as he rested his chin on his unoccupied hand. You could tell that because you were out of reach from him, he was making the most out of it by outlining the shape of your body with his eyes rather than his fingers like he oh so wished he could. As you flashed him a soft smile, the corner of his lips raised more than they already were and he sent you a flirty wink. You both laughed at his little cheesy gesture before you got up to clear the table
He grabbed your hand to stop you and said that he would do it, but you just told him to sit back and rest. Seeing you demand him to sit made something stir inside him. And as you turned away to take the plates away, you best believe he watched your ass saunter with lustrous eyes
When you returned after a few minutes, you grabbed your husband's hand and dragged him upstairs to your shared bedroom. Once the door was shut, Jay wasted no time before grabbing you and smashing his lips onto yours. His hands wondered all over your robe, loving the way the silk felt over your delicious curves that he couldn't wait to kiss all over. He smacked your ass which made you gasp and he took the opportunity to snake his tongue into your mouth. As you swapped saliva, he trapped your tongue between his lips and delicately sucked on it as his fingers wondered lower. But before he could cup the heat between your legs, you stopped his movements and pulled away
"Uh uh. You don't get to touch there yet baby. I need to give you a little show first" you cooed at him
Jay felt like protesting but he held himself back as you looked so sexy and he wanted more. So he didn't fight against it as you pushed him to fall back onto the bed. He picked up on your actions and moved up he bed so that his head rested on the pillows. As you crawled up over his body and made yourself comfortable, he held back a moan by biting onto his bottom lip. You looked like a goddess, looking down on him as you sat on his throbbing crotch. There was a sultry smile on your face as you leaned over to your bedside table and presented to him a silk robe
"No baby please don't use that! I want to be able to touch you" he looked up with puppy eyes as he begged
"But I want you to enjoy my service to you with no interruptions" you pouted back to him in a teasing matter
"Of course I'll enjoy anything you give to me. Just don't tie me up please princess"
"Hmm, I don't think so. You're way too greedy with these things so I want you to behave like a good boy. Now hands up handsome"
Jay didn't want to anger you as you had been spoiling him so well, so he obeyed your orders and brought his hands above his head. He started to slowly regret his decision as you bent over him to tie his hands to the headboard and he got a slight glimpse of your round breasts peeking from under your robe. They looked so mouth-watering as they bounced with your movements so he decided 'fuck it' before lifting his head off the pillow to suck on the exposed bit of soft flesh that had been taunting him. You let out a small gasp from the unexpected feeling of your husband's wet mouth on the top of your breasts. As he was clearly desperate, you let him have his moment to enjoy himself but it was extremely short-lived, especially for him
You tutted at him in a teasing way and his eyes lowered from your stare
"See baby, I told you that you are too greedy. Maybe I'll have to punish you so you learn how to keep your hands and mouth to yourself"
As you finish your sentence, you grabbed onto the belt of your robe and undid the knot. Jay waited patiently underneath you and swallowed his saliva as he silently begged for you to carry on. You teasingly opened the front of your robe to reveal the new lingerie set that you had recently bought secretly. The soft, (colour of your choice) lace hugged your body so perfectly and it was topped off with a garter belt that wrapped around your thighs. It was all too much for Jay and he threw his head back before crying out
"Oh please baby, let me touch you! Please? I promise I'll be good. Oh fuck you look so fucking beautiful my baby" his hips automatically thrusted up into your clothed core and you moaned from the feeling
You bent back down so that your lace-covered breasts were over his face again
"You want it baby? You want to touch me? To kiss all over me? Yeah you want it so bad don't you?"
Your husband didn't care about putting up a front in front of you "Yes! Yes I do princess! Please untie me"
It was so entertaining to you, watching your husband be so desperate for you. So you bent down a bit more to slot his face between your soft breasts and moved side to side to rub them all over him. But when you felt his head move up to feel more, you moved away, making him whine. He tugged on the silk that bound his hands together, in hopes of getting out of them but there was no hope. Just when he was about to beg you again, he was quickly silence when you stood up on the bed and turned around to hover your crotch over his face
If he wasn't already drooling before, he for sure was now at the sight of your wet core that was barely covered by the pathetic excuse of fabric. Your soaked thong slotted so perfectly between your folds and Jay wanted nothing more than to rip his hands out of the ropes and pull you down to suffocate him
He thought that he could try his luck again by raising his head again and sticking his tongue out to sneak a little taste. But you already expected his actions and moved away from his tongue. He whined and tried again but you repeated the same action
"I want a taste. Sit on my face and suffocate me with your juicy pussy, baby"
With that, he raised his face again to try and lick you but you weren't gonna give into him that easily. Jay was starting to get frustrated with you depriving him of his dessert and it didn't help that you were letting out the cutest giggles, seeing him suffer
"Fuck baby just untie me. I swear to you, once I get my hands free, I'll make you smother my face with your pussy till you beg me to stop. I will make you sit on my face and squirt all over me for hours"
You looked down at your husband and it was fair to say that he looked extremely worked up. Sweat was beading on his hairline and his veins were popping from his temples. It was like you were playing with a feral animal who was out for blood, the way he was practically panting at the sight of your hypnotising pussy. However, you knew that you husband loved this so much and would get over his little tantrum once you let him get a taste of you
His animalistic antics only heightened when he saw you bring you your fingers to pull the crotch of your thong to the side to reveal what he had been dying to get a taste of. He stuck his tongue out and licked the air, in hopes of getting a small taste of your essence.
"Fuck baby, you look so creamy. So delicious. Come on, I know you want me to tongue fuck you so good. Just lower yourself a bit more onto my face and I'll eat you the way you deserve"
Even though it sounded so tempting, it wasn't the time yet. So you used your middle finger to make circles around your soaking entrance, before tapping on your hole to gather your wetness. The string of arousal that connected from your entrance to your fingers made Jay feel so envious. That should be his tongue doing that job and your wasting it by teasing him!
You experimented by dipping your finger into your wet hole and let out a moan. That alongside the sound of your wetness made your husband groan in frustration and looking forward, you could see his bulge fighting against his tight dress trousers. Once again, he lifted his head again with his tongue out but you were out of reach. You didn't let him hinder your actions though, as you continued to finger yourself on top of you husband's face. You added two more fingers and slowly started to speed up, making the squelching get louder. At this point, your husband just stared helplessly from underneath you with his mouth hanging open. He desperately wanted to be the one giving you pleasure but he couldn't help but admire the goddess who was moaning so beautifully on top of him
He was in such a trance that he was completely caught off guard when he felt you squeeze his hard bulge. It was like his body was jelly when you rubbed him. You ran your hand firmly up and down his covered length and it made his mind go blank. There was no stopping your hands as one was frantically pumping into you whilst the other gripped onto his cock. You quickly unzipped his trousers and tugged his thick, leaking cock out of his boxers before pumping him at the same speed as your other hand. His head threw all the way up from shock that his face was able to make contact with your pussy. He quickly took the chance to get a lick in before his body gave up. The small taste of your juices that he managed to get was like a drug and he was determined to get more
"Baby I think I'm gonna squirt. I'm gonna squirt all over your face and mark you as mine. All mine"
"Yes baby squirt on me. Let me taste you"
Both of your hands sped up and you curled your fingers to reach your g spot. The wetness built up and started to fall onto your waiting husband's face. He remained panting with his mouth wide open as you carried on fingering yourself, and finally you squirted all over him. Every drop that came out, showered over him and he caught as much as he could in his mouth. You brought your shaking fingers out from your pussy and spread them apart to show off your essence to your husband. And because you were feeling generous, you stuck them into his mouth for him to suck on and he was more than eager to do so
You were still jerking him off as he licked all over your fingers and he moaned so deliciously that you really wanted to sit on his face to feel him moan into your pussy. When you stood up from him, he whined in protest but instantly shut up as you pulled your thong off
"You better not throw that into the wash yet princess, I'm gonna need to take that to work so I can jerk off with it on my lunch break"
Even though you knew that he was being serious, you still laughed at him because only your husband could be so down bad for you (and your pussy)
You knelt back down over his face and he finally got to see your bare pussy that had been freshly shaven
"Do you want me to sit on your face darling? You've been such a good boy for me"
"Yes please mummy. Sit on me. I want a taste"
And with that, you finally sat. Jay had been waiting for so long and he was not going to mess around. He was quick to lick up every inch of your soaking cunt and when he got every last drop, he stuck his tongue right into your hole. You could feel it wiggling around inside and it was getting deeper. Every so often, he'd remove his tongue so that he could suck on your throbbing clit that had been neglected. The suction made you scream from overstimulation. But now that he got his mouth on you, there was no way he was going to let you stop him from licking and sucking on your clit
Your mouth was starting to feel empty as it was open from all of the moaning, so you bent down and took the entire length of your husband's dick into your throat. The sudden feeling cause Jay to suck even harder on your clit, which pushed you to suck on his length further. You kept on bobbing your head to suck him off and you made it your goal to get your husband to cum all over your face
Jay honestly felt like he was in heaven right now. His beautiful, sexy wife was deep throating him whilst sitting on his face. But of course like you said, he was greedy. He wanted you to put your entire weight onto his face and cut off all of his breathing with your pussy. Perhaps it was because you didn't want to hurt him because you were an angel but right now, he wanted you to be the complete opposite and completely smother him without a care in the world
"Princess, sit on my face properly. I know you want to. Put your entire weight on my face and let me breathe in all of you"
You reluctantly took your mouth off his length with a pop to tease him
"Yeah? Daddy wants me to suffocate him?"
"I want nothing more baby"
As you took him back into your mouth, you sat completely on his face and Jay confirmed that if there was any way that he was going to die, it was going to be like this. His eyes rolled to the back as you rocked yourself over his eager mouth
You were both sucking on each other and you could tell that you were both going to cum soon. Jay started to thrust up into your mouth whilst you started to grind onto his face. The movements didn't stop till you both came over each others faces. He slurped up every bit of your juices that he could whilst you tried your best to keep as much of his load in your mouth. It seemed that your husband had been keeping in this load for ages as it carried on spurting. So you pulled your mouth off and let the rest of his cum shoot over your face and onto his thighs
The two of you were shaking and you could feel Jay pressing light kisses to your inner thighs, taking caution to avoid your sensitive clit with his movements
There was no time for resting though as you slowly got up and turned around to straddle your husbands cock that was still hard. You knew that he had an extremely high sex drive so he wasn't going to deny more sex
He hissed as your soft hand grabbed his length and lined it up to your entrance. You took your time to savour the way his girth stretched you out and Jay swore that he could've came right there at the sight of you rolling your eyes back from pleasure. There was no stopping your moans as you started to bounce on his length. Jay couldn't take his eyes off you as you rode him perfectly. Your breasts were bouncing along with your movements and he just couldn't believe that you were all his. He wanted, no needed to hold you and fuck you the way that you deserved
"Can you untie me princess? I promise to make you feel so fucking good. Let me treat you like the most spoilt princess ever"
"Yes daddy. Fuck me please"
Jay was cheering in his head as you reach over to his bound hands and untied his sore wrists. As soon as he could move, he instantly brought his hands to your waist and pulled you down over his body, making your chests make contact. He held you firmly in place as he put his feet on the bed to thrust up harder and faster. His movements were vigorous and he was angled perfectly to hit your g spot with every thrust. Your clit rubbed on his pubic hair which was completely soaked with your juices. If you had neighbours, they would definitely be putting in a noise complaint with the way that you were basically screaming bloody murder and you husband was moaning like your personal pornstar
Jay felt you pulsing around him and took it as a cue that you were going to cum soon. He felt his orgasm approaching as well, so he cradled your neck before flipping you over to tower over you. His hips never faltered as they carried on pounding into you. He looked absolutely breath-taking with the way his hands were placed either side of your head and his necklace that you gifted him dangled in your face. It was like a reminder to the both of you that you belonged to each other
As you got closer and closer, you felt an overwhelming need to have your husband close to you. So you brought your hands behind his neck and gently pulled him down. He caught onto what you wanted and lowered himself onto his elbows. The new position allowed him to stroke your hair lovingly as he got lost in your tearful eyes. When he leaned down for a kiss, he mumbled into your mouth
"Are you gonna cum baby? Gonna let daddy cum in you and fill you up. I'll fuck another baby into you yeah? Give our babies a little sister to protect. Fuck, you look so fucking sexy with your breasts so full, leaking with milk for me to suck on. You'll let me suck on your milky breasts when they get all full and sore won't you baby? I'll be such a good daddy and take care of mummy so well. Come on. Cum with me my love"
You held onto each other tightly and he kept his mouth on yours as your orgasms washed over you. Jay stayed over you on his elbows as he stroked your sweaty forehead. His forehead rested on yours as he whispered 'I love you' and how well you did for him. He'd occasionally press kisses over your face till your breathing calmed down
"I'll just quickly get a towel to wipe you up and when you feel ready, I'll run a bath for us. Is that alright baby"
You couldn't muster up the energy to say anything so you nodded with a tired smile. He was extremely gentle when he cleaned you up and carried out the same routine of bathing and pampering you the same way he did every night
As you were both ready to fall asleep, the two of you laid in bed naked as you loved the feeling of the skin contact. You rested your head in the crook of his neck as he ghosted his fingertips over your spine
"You know, I was kind of being serious when I said that I want to give you another baby. I know that (youngest son's name) is still young but I just can't help imagining us with a little baby girl. I know she'd look so beautiful like her mummy"
He was smiling so dreamingly at the thought of expanding your family. You chuckled from how adorable he was
"Well, we still have an entire weekend so we have plenty of time to try darling"
Authorâs note: Yay a new fic! I really hope it was worth the wait đđ«¶
I do apologise if you wanted part 2 to be a continuation of the storyline of part 1 but I honestly just thought that this would be a better story đ
Iâm going to start working on the next requests so I hope you look forward to it! Basketball bf Heeseung pt 3 is next đ€
Once again, thank you so much for taking the time to read and support my works đ©”
THE ENHYPEN HOST || 1
|| Reverse harem || ft. TXT, Minggyu (Seventeen) & BTS
PAIRING: FEM OC X ENHYPEN
WARNINGS: foul language, explicit content, group sex, humiliation, sex in public, threesome, foursoome, rough sex, red flags, immoral acts, unprotected sex, morbid jealousy, comedy, parody, possessiveness, violent quarrels, arguments, betrayals, lies, femdom sometimes.
GENTRE: +18, reverse harem, comedy, enemy to lovers, friends to lovers
SUMMARY: You moved to Seoul to start over after a bad experience, and everything seems to be going well, you even manage to work for HYBE. You discover, however, that you owe them almost a billion won, money you don't have and don't know how to recover: but don't worry because Hybe itself offers you a solution.
Your body in exchange for paying off your debt.
Do you accept?
Okay, follow me for a moment!
A little context is needed to understand the dire situation in witch I find myself.
I'm a graphic designer, I was born in Campania, Italy, but I moved very early to Bologna, still in Italy but in another region, with mom and dad who are now little more than acquaintances to me, where I spent my existence until my 22nd birthday, when I moreover found out that my idiot boyfriend was cheating on me, with his cousin.
I didn't have time to feel bad about it, because I was pretty disgusted in general. However, it wasn't that I was in love with him, I simply found myself a bit lost - with the only known relatives inhabitants of small remote little cities in the Campania hinterland, who haven't seen me in at least ten years, and a failed career as an advertising graphic designer.
Unable to maintain the hectic pace of business, not to mention the harassment and constant mansplaining I was suffering, I retreated into freelancing. By being able to manage my schedule, I could also manage me, and think about the future.
For several months I contemplated going to Spain but then one of the few friends I had left at the time, after hosting me in her house for some strange reason in Sorrento (in Campania!), always kept secret from her, proposed me to leave with her for Seoul.
It was the fashion of the moment, I had heard about it, but I was too focused on self-pity to be interested in such frivolities - as a matter of fact, while we had been planning the trip for months, I got a little obsessed myself.
She likes BTS, for me too overblown, too famous. I used to focus more on the up-and-comers, there was one band in particular, it consisted of one guy who was better looking than the other, however, not being a kpop senior yet I sometimes confused them, I couldn't even pronounce their name.
So you can imagine my excitement when, just two months after moving to Seoul, I was contacted by a Hybe agent who, after looking at my portfolio found on a website, said he was pleasantly impressed and would like something in my style, for the cover of ENYPHEN's next album, that's how he pronounced it!
After I heard him say those words over the phone I was silent, not because I was thinking about it - of course I was speechless.
It had to be some scam, it had to be! There can be no such coincidence in real life.
The man emailed me his calling card, so I could look up the information on the Internet, and a place to meet.
At Hybe's headquarters.
Are you kidding me? Ester said thus. "Do you think I would let you go alone? What if he is a maniac?"
I didn't speak Korean at the time, but I knew English pretty well, so, yes, I was able to get the job, but in the end, for some reason, my illustration was used for the SIDE B of the album, completely different, official but not primary concept version. I was quite hurt at first, but then I realized that it was already absurd to be able to work with them, I really had no complaints.
Of course, we never met either BTS or ENHYPEN, although once I went alone (I couldn't always go with Ester), I saw Beomgyu from TXT who I have a very heavy crush on, although he always gave me very strange vibes. I obviously didn't even get close to him and looked at him from a distance, however, he was in a hurry anyway, so it's not certain that he would stop.
Okay, let's move on!
After the collaboration was over, I pocketed good money, we ate takeout for at least two weeks in a row, we went in clubs all the time, while every now and then I had flashbacks of my ex-boyfriend, for whom I had begun to feel a strange empathy, as if he were mentally ill. It wasn't the cousin thing as the fact that he had no need to look for a lover - we pretty much did it all the time! It was one of the few things I did well and fucking gladly!
But maybe, I wasn't good enough?
Months passed, Ester taught me Korean, which she had taught herself, and while she was having fun with a lot of guys, I had entered a new state of paralysis. After working with Hybe I expected many requests, many contacts, would come, but instead nothing. Small jobs for small activities with small monetary and psychological rewards.
I didn't do the same as Ester not because I was demure - that adjective was never a part of me - as much as because I still couldn't understand let alone speak Korean, and not everyone knew English, so sometimes it happened that I felt uncomfortable, out of place. I managed to use the time of work paralysis to engage in study, I had to have a social life too! Independently of Ester!
Eventually I decided that for ten hours a day Ester and I could communicate only in Korean, she agreed without thinking and began the experiment. After three months I was able to speak Korean almost fluently, to the point that sometimes we did not even return to speaking Italian.
I was ready to embark on enterprising and exciting multi-ethnic relationships, socializing, and trying to understand South Korea better!
I discovered that it was a terrible place.
Not so much from the foreigner's point of view, but for the Koreans themselves, all very rigid with each other and with themselves, always competing, but also misogynistic, macho, not to mention the jokes about foreign women I heard! Terrible.
Tired of South Korea, after only a year, I talked to Ester about going back-it came out as a hypothetical, after all, I was going to do what she wanted anyway. I didn't want to be alone, and she seemed happy to live with me.
She convinced me to stay a little longer, she wanted to introduce me to her official boyfriend, a good one, really, not interested exclusively in sex! Yes, they are all like that, I had experienced it myself.
Just before I could meet him, however, the two broke up. Sad for Ester who looked devastated, but underneath happy, maybe to be able to go back to Sorrento, to breathe clean air, I consoled her for a whole night, we stayed up drinking and laughing, or crying.
Before I went to bed, in the early hours of dawn, I looked at my cell phone as usual and noticed that Hybe had texted me, again!
Sleep disappeared, I went back to Ester, who had fallen asleep on the floor in the living room, and woke her up to tell her the fantastic news, fuck, I was so excited! Who was I going to work for this time? TXT? BTS? Seventeen?
Copyright violation: that was the subject line, and oddly enough, the entire email was written completely and exclusively in Korean. I was being sued on behalf of Hybe for infringing the copyright of a Pakistan artist who had in turn sued Hybe, because of my design, and won!
What great news! I had gotten incredibly good at Korean.
"Ama, are you okay? Oh, Ama? You look pale!" Ester had said, grabbing me by the shoulders and shaking me.
"Hybe wants compensation of eight hundred million won," I had said, under my breath, incredulously, "that's like five hundred thousand euros."
"But you don't have it!"
"I know I don't have it."
"Then you can't give it to them, sue them!"
Yes, it would have been nice and easy but I had no idea how the law worked in Korea, and anyway I couldn't sue them because the contract I had signed had exactly one copyright clause in it. If I had in any way caused damage to the agency's image, through copyright infringement, I would have been called upon to compensate them one billion won, which however had been generously raised to eight hundred million, to make it easier for me, understand?
I wasn't sure what I was supposed to do. Reach Mexico? Return to Italy? Apply for a loan? And would they grant it to me? Ester advised me to talk to them directly and look for a reasonable solution, offered to accompany me, but when we arranged to meet, they told me to show up alone, or with my lawyer, although this was not necessary because we would talk about it cordially.
I knew Korean quite well now, and inside Hybe practically everyone spoke English. I'll go alone.
I met the CEO himself, a man with round glasses and a kind, smiling, serene face, Park Jiwon. He told me to make myself comfortable and congratulated me for going without a lawyer, since what he was going to propose was best heard only by me.
"Changing the illustration from SIDE A to SIDE B, that was your greatest good fortune, wasn't it?" He had said, smiling in that gentle way that was now chilling.
"I am deeply sorry Mr. Park, I have never seen-"
"I know you can't pay - he had politely interrupted me, getting up from his desk and motioning his secretary to leave. - I'm here to offer you something beneficial, in which you'll always be safe and won't have to worry about, however, it's up to you to decide whether you'd rather return the money or not."
It's called the Jyp method.
Are you curious? This is a funny story.
Korean idols, whether male or female, are people of extreme beauty. It's unthinkable that they won't touch or let anyone touch them for years on end, but that's exactly what the fans want - who feel they are in complete control of their bodies.
Creepy, I realize, but it is quite normal in some parts of Asia.
So how can these poor boys "let off steam"?
The males are given a girl to live with them, together they can have as much fun as they want but within the limits of the host's safety and preferences.
For females it is a bit different but he still wanted to explain it to me, in fact for them multiple partners are needed and these partners do not live with them, but they can make appointments, as if they were gigolos working only for them.
The reason why this is used is because of scandals, any outside relationship cannot really be monitored by the agency. If girls and boys do not need to look for a stable partner and can simply take out their sexual desires on someone, the risk of scandal decreases significantly and their popularity is safe, as are the earnings on them.
In contrast to male guests, female guests tend to be a bit more problematic, which is why only one is usually chosen.
He makes it clear up front that it is forbidden to have relationships with idols, both parties must behave respectfully, and for any complaints from the guest, the agency will take appropriate action, so it is a completely safe situation, understand?
It is called the Jyp method because it was the CEO of the music label of the same name who invented it.
What do you care, you should do it! That's what I thought too, I mean - the band in question was really Enyphen! That way you won't have to pay for it anymore and you'll be hanging out with a lot of pretty boys! That's what you're thinking, it's obvious, really - I thought it first.
Yet to say yes, just offhand, I didn't feel like it.
Mr. Park told me to think about it calmly, giving me two days.
I talked to Ester about it; she did not give me any advice.
She just told me to read the contract well, this time, in case I wanted to accept it, but still she would not judge me, and then I could present them to her - even though I still knew nothing about how the matter was going to unfold.
Clearly I agreed, it was obvious, wasn't it? Otherwise we wouldn't be here.
NEXT CHAPTER:
THE ENHYPEN HOST || 2
|| Reverse harem || ft. TXT, Mingyu (Seventeen) & BTS
PREVIOUS CHAPTER:
"She is your host, she will help you keep your house in order, she will take care of you in every aspect. - President Jiwon explains, looking at the boys in front of him. - You will take turns and since there is no extra room, Amanda will take turns sleeping in everyone's room. It is not necessary for you to have sexual relations but you are still entitled to this opportunity."
The way he speaks is honest but elegant, he explained almost everything with that nonchalance, as if it were business stuff - and indeed it is.
"What's going on?" Sunghoon asks incredulously, interrupting his superior, and noticing how the others in the band are looking at him as well, recomposes himself.
"I said she will help you with the house, but in a limited way. It is still your responsibility to take care of it 99%. - He resumes his speech, the man, with an annoyed expression. - You will have to cooperate and consider your guest a collaborator. Don't create problems and everything will be fine!" He finally exults, beaming.
"Mr. Park..." Tries to open his mouth Jake, shocked, unable to say anything else.
"Any non-consensual act will be severely punished, every week we will come for a psychological and physical checkup of the guest."
I keep my gaze down, am bitter, feel miserable, and sincerely fear whatever they are thinking of me. A rejection would be the least degrading thing, to be honest, but by now I have introduced myself, and as much as I am already regretting it, I can only face it.
"Amanda?" Tries to pronounce, almost tenderly, Heeseung, which manages to melt my embarrassment for a second so that I lift my gaze. I meet his eyes, my god, he's too close, too handsome.
"Nice to ... meet all of you!" I say, shakily, bending as far as I can to make a formal korean bow.
"Nice to meet you." Sighs Jay, I recognize his voice even without looking at him.
"So..." Sunoo sounds amused.
"Is she a prostitute? Did you at least give her medical exams?" Sunghoon blurts out surprised.
"You will stay at the seventh day. All agreed?" Jiwon, the CEO, instantly admonishes him, hitting the boy on the back of the head.
"Yes." They repeat in chorus, the others.
Yes, of course they did them to me, dear Sunghoon, but not because I am a prostitute! Embarrassment fades in earnest when I hear them say these things, maybe I prostrated myself too much - after all, I don't owe them a damn thing, they're the ones who should be thanking me, since they're going to use me. No?
"Amanda... - He repeats, with perfect pronunciation Jake. - Are you Spanish?"
"Italian..." I nod, not quite sure why.
"Ronaldo!" Jungwon exclaims laughing, advancing toward me.
"Ronaldo is portuguese.. Everyone knows that." Says Heeseung.
The situation is all too normal, how come? I almost feel at ease - I shouldn't, should I? I look around, avoiding their stares, not quite sure what to say or how to approach, but in a little while the CEO will be leaving.
"Did you bring everything?" Jay asks, very nonchalantly, as if we know each other, taking the trolley out of my hands gallantly.
I stand staring at him paralyzed, he is simply magnificent up close, I seem to be blushing all too noticeably. "No...leave it, I'll do it."
"You sleep in my room tonight." He surprises me, after firmly closing his hand around the doorknob.
"Intrepid! - Jiwon exclaims enthusiastically, patting Jay on the shoulder. - I'll leave it in good hands, if necessary you can decide to vote not to entrust the host to someone, like in reality TV, but don't take it too personally, okay? The important thing is not to make trouble."
He leaves leaving them with the words "treat her well, treat her respectfully." He repeated this several times, this made me feel a little safe, perhaps because inside I am a die-hard fan, and apart from Sunghoon, they all gave me a good impression.
There's something genuinely in their eyes that makes me feel at ease, plus, following Jay to his room, under the gaze of everyone still not realizing what's going on and mumbling, whispering to each other, makes me feel quite special.
"Do you realize what you've gotten yourself into?!" Jay asks, even before formally introducing himself. He has closed the door behind him and glares at me.
"It's not like I could do otherwise..." I explain, somewhat.
"Anything else would have been better, those are animals!"
"There's nothing improper about consensual sex." I sigh, trying to stick to my choice, even though I now feel judged and ashamed.
"It was obvious that you were okay with it, since you're here. - He says, his voice suddenly exuding a certain distrust, a revulsion. - I'm just looking out for you, and for the band."
"You don't even know me - I say, my eyes downcast, - you don't have to worry about me."
"I'm not worrying about you but about your safety. You have no idea what they will do to you."
"You talk as if they were monsters..."
"They are males, aren't they?"
Right, he's aware of that too.
"What about you?"
He seems surprised at my answer, maybe even impressed, as his expression suddenly softens.
"So am I, isn't it obvious?" He then says, brusque again.
Now that surprise is me. "It's not all rotten."
He stiffens, looks away. "Can't you sever the contract? Have you already signed?"
"Yeah, I've already resigned anyway. After this assignment I'll leave Korea and also leave this adventure behind, assuming I'm still alive."
"But don't you have parents? What will they think if something like this comes out?"
"Mr. Park says nothing has ever leaked out, and almost all the bands have guests. That should be fine."
"Were you doing this job before?"
I look at him and am offended, but maybe I shouldn't be. The reason I'm here certainly can raise similar doubts, only said this way it's certainly more tolerable.
"No, I am not a prostitute. I violated Hybe's copyright clause and have no family members who can help me raise that kind of money, and I checked, no bank is willing to give me such a loan. I had no choice, really."
Jay rubs his face wearily. "I'll make room in the closet for you, keep your things here."
Sighing relieved, the talk is shelved for the moment. "I thought certain decisions were made by the leader." I joke, approaching him who has begun to haphazardly gather his stuff to throw it somewhere else.
I stay staring at him, he is really beautiful - he notices, he doesn't seem bothered, he must be used to it. "The leader, when the lights are out, is me." He says this in a serious voice, he doesn't seem to be joking.
As he activates my feminine senses, he turns off the fan in me a bit, for some reason.
"Amanda, huh?" He pronounces too, fairly correctly, if not for the american cadence.
"You say that right." I reply in a gentle voice, and this time he's the one looking at me, though I'm not sure why.
"Are you a fan?"
"Actually yes...but I wouldn't want you to think that's why I agreed. It's more the fear of Hybe's lawyers than the beauty of Enyphen, and anyway, I don't like korean men. You guys are beautiful just to look at."
"Then you shouldn't be so quiet."
"However - I continue, amused, - they fuck well. Too bad you guys have closed minds."
"I am not completely korean." He reminds me.
I shift my pupils to him, then laugh nervously, I know perfectly well that he is not. "And do you have an open mind?"
He doesn't answer right away; he stays staring at me, which makes me nervous. "Who knows."
He's acting tough, and maybe he really is, maybe he was serious about the leader thing, but he seems to be a good person, and it's strange that he gives me such a strong impression after such a short time.
"What are you doing? Have you started yet?" He suddenly opens the door, Heeseung.
"Knock, asshole." The owner of the room tackles him.
I feel the older man's eyes on me, it's strange, they are piercing, yet he has an innocuous face. "Aren't we going to make introductions?"
"We're coming."
"Why does she put things down at your place?"
An awkward silence envelops us, for several seconds, then Heeseung chuckles, dampening the atmosphere.
"Okay, anyway, there's space at my place too, if I need to bring more stuff."
"How generous." Jay comments, waving me out, politely first.
I thank him with a nod, then walk past Heeseung who doesn't seem at all perturbed by my proximity; who knows, maybe he doesn't think I'm a pest.
After all, it would also be advantageous, if they are the ones who don't want to have relations with me I can't really do anything about it, I would have tried what I could anyway, and Jiwon should recognize that.
However, not because of any particular self-esteem as much as because I have a definite idea about men in general, I don't expect anything like that, realistically.
In the living room, still talking confusedly to each other, Enhypen are interrupted by my arrival. I feel like when I changed schools as a child and was introduced in front of the whole class on the first day.
"How old are you?" He immediately breaks the silence, Sunoo, watching me with his arms crossed.
"Twenty-three."
"Were you born in 2001?" Heeseung then asks.
"Yes."
Jake rests a hand on his hip. "How did you end up here?"
So I told them the matter, in detail, and at the end, the quietest of them all - Niki, who for some reason keeps to himself in silence - had brought beers, and we sat down, some on the couch (Jay, Jake and I), some on the floor (Niki, Heeseung, Sunoo and Sunghoon), some in the chair (Jungwon).
They asked me a lot of superficial questions, no one went into the substance of the talk, and we simply went over important memories of their journey as a band, infoing the confused fan me.
"What do your folks think?" Sunghoon asks, smiling at me, all of a sudden.
"They're dead." I answer, taking a long sip of beer.
I leave them all stunned, and rather pleased. My parents are not dead, as if they were, but I just wanted to shush Sunghoon who interacted with me only to put me on the spot.
"Excuse him, he's an asshole. He was born that way." He rubs his face, genuinely annoyed.
I pat him on the back, cheerfully.
Sunoo bursts out laughing, Jake and Jungwon follow with some embarrassment, perhaps uncomfortable with the joke. "Are you sure it's okay?" Jake asks again.
Sunghoon runs a hand through his hair, messing it up nervously. "Shit, it's not like you have to woo her. She signed a contract giving you the green light, you could fuck her here too, what's all this?"
How irritating this Sunghoon, and to say I liked him so much before. He seemed a bit mounted, it's true, but I didn't think he was such a bastard - although he may be the only one acting normal in this situation.
"Are you kidding about these things?" Jungwon asks, intimidated.
I look at him, he's quite cute, has cute dimples, too cute. I want to bite him. "There are few things I don't joke about."
"We needed a breath of fresh air in this house." Sunoo smiles smugly.
"Should we arrange shifts?" Heeseung asks very nonchalantly.
Everyone turns to him, he is the one who has uncovered the much-feared Pandora's box.
"We should, yes." Jungwon nods, briefly lifting his gaze to me, then lowering it again.
"What should we know? What don't you like?" The oldest of the band, Heeseung, asks again.
"Amanda, you won't be offended if I don't make my room available, will you? - He turns to me, Sunoo, still smiling, as if to tell me something. - I don't like to share my space, and my room is my kingdom, the only one I can have in this fucking house."
"I should... thank you, I guess." I sigh, embarrassed.
"Sunoo has someone, I have someone, too. It would be disrespectful..." Jungwon also sighs..
"So... That leaves me, Jake, and Jay?" Heeseung says.
"You don't consider me? You offend me." Replies Sunghoon, who didn't leave, just stood up.
"Come on, you don't even like her. You'd only bother her, you're also engaged." Puffs Jay, tired of his tantrums.
The peer, Sunghoon, twists his lips. "If she's here that means it's safe to fuck her, why shouldn't I? And anyway with my time I do what I want."
"Why do you talk like that?" Apparently sorry question, Jake.
Great, so he's going to keep breaking it, and I can't tell if I'm titillated by it, even, stomping on the wreckage of my feminist ideals being shattered by a moon too much like a pakistan artist never even seen, at least before the news.
"Actually...I'd be there, too." Says a deep voice, catching everyone's attention.
Jake thins his gaze. "You? What are you supposed to do with a girl?"
The youngest of them all, Niki, shifts his gaze annoyed. "Like Sunghoon, I am also entitled to my turn. It doesn't concern you what I'll do with it, that's for sure."
He keeps quiet, the young man, but when he opens his mouth he puts everyone on notice. Still, I get the impression that there's bad blood between these two, and I'd also be curious to know why.
We order takeout. I feel like a princess, I can order anything I want to drink and eat, also because from tomorrow I will have to stick to their food regimen, I certainly don't want to cook.
"You foreigners are curvy, huh?" Heeseung asks me as I finish my third can. These beers are strong.
"You can leave it if you don't like it!" I suggest warmly, a little drunk, though deep down I hope he doesn't; he is certainly among my favorites.
Yet I don't quite frame him, he looks innocent, he has the kind look on his face, but then he's the one who cares most about remembering what I came in here to do. Will he be a horny fool?
"It's not that I don't like it, it's just different."
"In Italy I'd be skinny, anyway." I say brightly.
Heeseung smiles, amused. "Oh yeah? And fat people are curvy?"
"You really want to do badishshaneing," I don't know why I just pronounced the word bodyshaming like that, but so be it.
"That's cute when you're drunk. - He says, moving closer to my face, and it's the first real almost romantic interaction so close to my face. - Remember though, you live with seven guys who haven't been able to express their sexuality normally for years, so, you do the math."
I nudge him amicably, with a confidence we certainly don't have, but I blame the alcohol. "If you do anything wrong I will tell Jiwon right away!"
"Are you friends that you call him by his first name?"
The conversation with him is so smooth that we keep joking, until the take-out food arrives. We sit at the table, I end up quite far from Heeseung, unfortunately, given the pleasant conversation, but in the meantime armed with pen and paper, during the meal, we start making notes on how to organize ourselves from now on.
Day 1
Jay, on his day I will be tidying up three of the seven bedrooms, making the beds and cleaning superficially, deep cleaning is still their problem.
Day 2
Jake, I will take care of the remaining four rooms.
Day 3
Heeseung, his is bathroom day, there are three in the house, but I will only take care of the main one, which is not inside the boys' rooms.
They all do that, once a week.
Day 4
Niki, general cleaning day. I will help around the house and cook, if necessary and if I feel like it.
Day 5
Sunghoon, although he was actually supposed to take some penalty that everyone forgot about, will be the day off from cleaning.
The days will repeat, and this way I will not disturb either Sunoo or Jungwon, who have politely pulled out. Sunoo said I can sleep over if I warn him, but even if I don't want to be with the others I can join him in the middle of the night.
"You know I'm not a problem for you, right?" Sunoo asks me, laughing with amusement.
I smile too, he is really handsome up close. "I suspected as much."
"I never tried to hide it..."
He is speaking veiledly, I am proud that I can communicate so naturally, in korean but especially with Kim Sunwoo. But why is he saying this to me? Does he trust me?
Even after eating, though very little compared to usual, the effect of the alcohol has not subsided, and the fact that they ordered soju does not improve the situation; in fact, it all starts to take a strange turn.
"Should we put on music? We are celebrating, after all." Proposes Sunoo, who continues to speak mischievously, or so it seems.
"We won't eat this stuff anymore." Heeseung comments bitterly.
"We should mark a list of things you don't like, so there won't be any problems while shopping." Jake explains, turning a thoughtful look to me.
I smile, am amused, this all seems absurd to me, plus they are far too kind. I have to say, though, that standing inches from Jake's perfect face is quite a generous reward. "I don't know korean food very well, but I eat everything in general..."
"It shows." Sunghoon comments.
Now I'm going to step on him, is that what he wants? I get up from the table noisily and point at him, menacingly, though everyone can see how I stagger.
"Are you done busting my balls?" I blurt, but judging by the way everyone stares at me, I must look really stupid.
"I haven't even started."
Jake sighs annoyed. "Sunghoon should have the tenth turn." He proposes, turning to Jay.
Maybe it is true that he is the leader in here. And it's strange to realize that.
"Yes, let's do that."
"So you prevent me from expressing myself, that's censorship."
"Nobody wants you to express yourself." Jungwon chuckles.
When the evening finally comes to an end, Jay, before escorting me back to my room, magnetically hangs the roster sheet on the huge fridge in their large kitchen. I wave to the rest of the members, now I guess I will have to fulfill my duties, but nevertheless, I think Jay will not ask me anything like that for the time being.
"How did you find yourself?" He asks me, closing the door.
Still being strongly tipsy, I smile naively. "They are polite animals, I think. Except for Sunghoon."
While I'm still talking, however, Jay lifts his wide sweatshirt, revealing his dry but well-trained chest, his broad shoulders, his beautiful arms perfectly outlined by muscles, and I can't help but continue watching such a spectacle.
"Shall I prepare things for you to take a bath?"
"A-Ah... - I realize that I stood as if dumbfounded before him - thank you! I can do it myself if you tell me what..."
"I'll take care of it." Sigh.
"You.... are definitely the more polite one."
"Don't get your hopes up, about me. I'm the same as everyone else."
"A good person would say exactly that."
I'm a flood of positive vibes, feeling really good, and I know it's partly due to the alcohol but I really felt good today. I should tell Ester all about it.
Jay approaches me as I sit on his bed, looking down at me with his eyes less kind, with the corners of his mouth lifting in a way that is anything but friendly. What, is he trying to scare me now? I don't think so.
"Are you in the habit of drawing your opinion from first impressions?" He asks me, his voice really warm, I feel like I can touch his vocal cords with my ears.
"No... it's just that..."
"You sound naive, though you desperately try to hide it."
"But..."
"And tell me, Amanda, what do you think will happen tonight?"
Silence, an honest silence accompanies his question.
"Why do you think I led the way into my room? - He still smiling, I stop, though. - You have more value when you haven't been touched yet, right?"
"D-Do I look like...a virgin?" I mumble, genuinely embarrassed and deeply offended, even stuttering.
"You've never been touched by them. You know... I believe that the method you told us about tonight can work well in bands where there is no deep-seated resentment among the members as a base."
"I-I don't understand what you're getting at." I did it again.
"I'll have you first, don't get me wrong, but - he tells me, so quiet, as he strokes my cheek and his hand is beautiful, elegant, warm. - I worked hard."
NEXT CHAPTER:
THE ENHYPEN HOST || Trailer
|| Reverse harem || ft. TXT, Mingyu (Seventeen) & BTS
I had prepared this trailer in my native language, but unfortunately it doesn't work very much since they prefer to read BL however I worked a lot on it, almost eight hours, I will try to republish it in english even though I know my english is really bad, thanks anyway if anyone will watch it!
READ HERE:
THE ENHYPEN HOST || 3
|| Reverse harem || ft. TXT, Mingyu (Seventeen) & BTS
PAIRING: FEM READER X ENHYPEN
WARNINGS: foul language, explicit content, group sex, humiliation, sex in public, threesome, foursoome, rough sex, red flags, immoral acts, unprotected sex, morbid jealousy, comedy, parody, possessiveness, violent quarrels, arguments, betrayals, lies, femdom sometimes.
GENTRE: +18, reverse harem, comedy, enemy to lovers, friends to lovers
SUMMARY: You moved to Seoul to start over after a bad experience, and everything seems to be going well, you even manage to work for HYBE. You discover, however, that you owe them almost a billion won, money you don't have and don't know how to recover: but don't worry because Hybe itself offers you a solution.
Your body in exchange for paying off your debt.
Do you accept?
PREVIOUS CHAPTER:
READ THE FIRST CHAPTER:
"I'll wait for you to sober up a bit." Sighs Jay, laying towels on my arms doorways toward him.
I sincerely laugh, visibly nervous. "They call you mr. kindness?
"Look at your condition, doing it nowâŠ. - he tells me, lowering his gaze as he strokes my cleavage exposed by the plunging neckline of my humble t-shirt with his index finger. - It would be so easy."
"I don't have to if I don't want to." I remind him, dazed, now less by the alcohol than by him.
My breath is suddenly short, even though I'm not looking at his face I can see his neck, his pronounced jaw, the way his skin fills with breath, puffing up his broad chest, even too much seen so closely.
"True, but since you won't be able to refuse for another four days, I'd really take it - he explains almost in a whisper, as his fingers move over my neck, then pick up strands of hair to tuck behind my ear - on the personal."
"Not⊠care."
"Do you really want to lose your only ally here? In fact, the strongest."
I smile amused, isn't she going to have inferiority complexes or something? The situation in the house didn't seem that desperate at all, but it's true that I haven't spent even twenty-four hours in here and Jay doesn't seem like a fool to me, though, I meanâŠ
I suddenly lift my gaze: shouldn't I think better of it instead? After all, I'm going to sleep with someone else sooner or later anyway, and it's not certain that "this" is intended as a bargaining chip for others as well - so if there really was a strange situation in this apartment, I could at least think of myself with an ally.
"Do you understand? You will give weight to my words when you see it."
"What's going on? I can still ⊠try to get out of itâŠ."
"That made you give up so quickly? And I was trying to persuade you nicely." He grins in surprise.
I shift my eyes in embarrassment. "You're putting pressure on me."
"I know." He says, and his hands begin to slide down my exposed arms. His touch is slow and heavy, I can feel every millimeter of my body under his fingertips.
"T-Then stop doing that."
"I think I will - he says. - If that's the situation, I should just take advantage of it, right?"
How? How dare he? First he offends me, then he calls me an object practically, then he decides to take such liberties, like lifting my t-shirt a few inches from my bra, and in all this, I don't react. It's not the alcohol, I know.
I can smell him perfectly, it's not perfume, he smells like a man. He hasn't showered yet, probably, but his fragrance is aphrodisiac as it penetrates my nostrils and seems to engulf me in a spell.
And to say they make a lot of memes about his hygiene - if only they knew how untrue it is!
Jay grabs me by the hips, lifts me onto the sink. Before he kisses me he looks at me, perhaps still seeking my consent, but my eyes are already full of him and I don't care enough whatever he thinks of me to pull back. I'm the one who instinctively pushes my lips against his, he doesn't pull back either, instead he tightens his tapering fingers behind the back of my neck, pressing my head against his face.
He bites my lips, caresses my hips, kisses my neck. I barely catch my breath between kisses, he's especially passionate, I don't quite understand what's going on but I feel like I'm on fire, like I have a fever. Deep down, I didn't think I could ever be in a situation like this, realistically.
To be able to see the pores of his skin, to feel his touch, to know what his lips taste like, it's all simply divine.
"Are you at least good at it?" He whispers, pressing his mouth to my ear as he clings to the elastic of my black leggings.
"Let's hope so." A shy tone comes out in my voice.
I hear him chuckle, it's pleasant, I don't know why.
"Hold on to me." He says, handing me his shoulders to which I meekly cling, he uses the opportunity to slip off my pants, I am left in my underwear in seconds. He looks into my eyes, then at my breasts, I feel it even fuller and more beautiful under his eyes, then he places his hand on my hip, grasping it.
"Don't⊠look at me like that." I whisper with shame.
"I like it to the point of annoyance."
I stare at him, feeling like smiling but for some reason not following my instincts. "Really?"
"I don't tell lies."
He unhooks my bra and caresses my modest breasts with his cheek. He bites the nipple rather aggressively, to the point that I gasp in pleasurable pain, but he abruptly uses his tongue to treat the wound, and only confused, stifled moans come out of my mouth.
"Really? From now on," I say, bravely sinking my fingers into his hair, clutching him to my chest for him to keep licking, to make me gasp like this, "if you tell even one lie, I won't believe anything you've told me."
"The all-or-nothing rule is fallacious, you know?" He asks, amused, as he sucks my breast, squeezes it, massages it.
I am completely defeated, voluntarily surrendering to his will.
After taking me in his arms like I don't weigh, he pushes me against the wall. We kiss again, and I am increasingly addicted. His kisses are impetuous, his tongue is expert, moving slowly, and as a few drops of pleasure slip between my thighs I can feel his fingers exploring my intimacy.
He puts in only two but they are enough to make me gasp again. I cling as if desperately, I don't do it on purpose, but it is hard to enjoy so much in such a position, and although his grip is firm and he holds me even with his leg as his swollen sex rests in my thigh, I still feel precarious.
He's different from all the guys I've been with; it's like I'm experiencing new sensations. It's not like I've never had a one-night stand with a beautiful boy, as in this case, and it's nothing more than that (aside from the fact that he is an established celebrity from one of the most famous bands in South Korea), sure, but maybe deep down I'm living every fan's dream of this guy.
I'm not a little girl anymore, I delude myself it's different but this situation is really dangerous, didn't the Hybe agents foresee this? I find it hard to believe that a rich, independent woman would still be able to handle something like this.
What if I became so infatuated with them that I wanted to ruin them? Well, maybe the Hybe goons would kill me.
But maybe that's okay, because then the woman loses so much value that she can never be anything to them - or even a problem for the company. What will remain will be the end of a delulu era and a few tears, but it will still be a funny page in my life, albeit a dangerously borderline one.
"I'll put it in, okay?" He says, pressing his lips to my cheek, he's laughing, still doing it.
I nod, lost in him now.
"You don't talk much, duringâŠ" He says, as I feel him rest his cock on my opening, then willingly let it slip a little between my large lips, which moisten it.
"I would just say - I moan, surprised to feel him enter suddenly and before I can finish the sentence, using my fingernails to grip his bare skin - obscenities."
"I want to feel them."
Man, man.
It's a little girl thing, isn't it? My heart is pounding.
I don't have time to notice because his pelvis literally punctuates the rhythm of my breathing, I feel him enter me with ferocity, it's as if he uses his whole body to pound into me, I feel full to my sternum.
I hold on tight, I don't want him to stop, I really don't want him to stop.
"S-SlowerâŠ" I try to say, slurring my words.
"And why?" He whispers amusedly, as if he already understood.
It sounds bad to say I'm desperate, doesn't it? I am desperate because of him, I never want him to stop, I need this moment to last longer, I want to feel him in my belly, along with the butterflies I haven't had in so long, he shakes them all.
He lifts me abruptly, to better weld his grip, but what I sense is only how he pulls his length out of me, inserting it again and abruptly inside me, trembling because of him.
My breathing is desperate, my gaze blank, he is desperate. He's not lucid either, I can see it in the way he squeezes his eyes shut, the way he breathes erratically, the drops of sweat that bead his forehead, too focused on the pleasure we are sharing.
Is the clock still ticking? I don't understand it, I don't know anymore.
"Ah⊠Jay⊠- I swallow, my mouth is full of saliva, like I'm hungry, resting my chin on his shoulder as his steady, assaultive strokes bounce me back onto him holding me by my thighs, resting his hands on my buttocks as he steals one kiss after another - moreâŠmoreâŠ"
"Please ask." He whispers so close to my ear again.
"PleâŠplease âŠ"
He means it, maybe because I asked so pitifully, but he manages to go even faster than he has so far, and I don't understand how he doesn't sound the least bit tired after all this time holding me up.
I can't control my voice anymore, I feel him deeper and deeper inside me, the more he moves the more my breathlessness increases. It may be because he is a dancer, a professional, but what kind of stamina is this?
I can't even control my body anymore, I start to convulse, I need to stretch, he's going too fast, so fast I can't even hear my own thoughts. I see him take on a strange expression, very focused but also in pain. I am too focused on his beauty to realize it - ""luckily"" he notices and puts me down.
He's pulled it out, holding his majestic cock with his hand, breathing deeply. I am confused, guilty.
I was too involved to remind him that I take the pill on Hybe's orders.
I look at him wearily, as strands of hair dampened by sweat and the warmth of the bathroom, which normally shouldn't have such a high temperature without even having bathed, slip past my distraught eyes.
"Oh, what an ass." He says in a relieved tone.
"W-What?"
"I didn't want to come yet." He explains.
Yes, it's great, but I can't look away. What is⊠that stuff? Was it really that big? Is that why I felt it all the way to my sternum? Should I stop staring at it? I can't, anyway.
"Do you like it?" He asks, still holding it up and turning his body toward me.
Guilty.
"So what do you sayâŠ" with his gaze he points to his cock, big and veiny, perhaps the first I've seen of this kind, in Korea.
He doesn't say anything else, his smirk is enough for me to realize that I will bend on my knees, prostrate myself to him helplessly, it doesn't matter anymore who he is, or I am, there is nothing else in this moment, in the world.
It is strange, my heated skin makes contact with the cold floor but not a shiver. The heat is inside my body, burning like a forest has just been given to the stake, every inch of my skin is on fire because of him.
I can smell my scent mixed with his as soon as I take him in my hand, and as I languidly lift my gaze to his, Jay caresses my head. He doesn't push it, he doesn't need to, he knows I'll do what I can, I want my lips to be able to touch his pubes, although judging by the thickness and partly by the length, that will prove to be a tall order.
"Good." He says, as I begin to lick him, moving his hand from my hair to my face.
Why? That annoying fluttering again. No Amanda, don't let your daddy issues take over, deal with it in a mature way, don't brood over it.
I do what I can, it's not easy to take it all in my mouth, my hand tightens around the base, moving with the movement of my lips, for a second I swallow over half its length, and a second later I pull it out with difficulty, as lines of saliva build bridges between me and him. I want to go deeper, I want to have more.
I hear him moaning, differently than before, now he is not exerting any force, pressure, he is completely free to surrender to the pleasure and as he lifts his chin making almost guttural sounds, I can only continue, inch by inch, to have more and more.
Perhaps I don't want him to think me inexperienced, perhaps I want him to have a good memory of it so that I can once again take advantage of him, of his body.
When I suffocate, literally, because of him, I see him burst out laughing as gently pulls my head away from his sex. "You did good, now let me do it."
Did he laugh at me? I failed, I guess.
And so he grabs both my hips, spinning me around, this time my back is to him and I can't look at his face, a little sorry. At the same time, however, feeling him knead my ass, as his intimacy presses against mine again, reddened and swollen, because of him, erases all doubt.
"Are you on the pill?"
"A-Ah⊠- I stammer, continuing to do so in front of him, starting to annoy me - yes."
"That's great. You know, you shouldn't tell other peopleâŠ" He advises me, though it doesn't have the dispassionate tone of a recommendation at all, but of threatening advice, as he plunges it into my humors, suddenly.
I groan, it's inevitable. "M-Maybe I will, m-mâŠ.maybe I won'tâŠ"
That no from me is enough for him to gather my hair, twisting it in his hand, tightening it like a rope, pulling it, but I feel no pain. "Now you don't beg anymore?"
He pulls me to himself, arching my back I can feel his size even more, inside my belly, inside my body. "NoâŠ"
Jay doesn't answer, at least in words, because he begins to charge animalistically into me, he is more comfortable, he can force his legs up and you can feel it all, the force I mean. My body bounces like lifeless on the rhythm of the song that produces his. Yes, because his every movement is music to me at this moment.
After long, intense minutes, what comes out of my mouth are inhuman verses, a mix of tiredness, weakness and total addiction. My body is devastated, because of him. I feel like convulsing, he holds me by the arms, I have my cheek resting against the now-warm marble of the sink.
I hear him gasp louder, then hold back, I know what is happening, I can feel it because my belly has just warmed up. After a long stream of warm pleasure inside me, Jay stays still, breathing or trying to at least.
I am exhausted, to the point that as soon as he slides out of me, I fall to my knees. I am devastated, physically as much as psychologically, because it hasn't felt this good in a long time, no, maybe it never has. It's a first for me, in a way.
"Are you⊠okay?" He asks me, as he lifts up his black pants, which have fallen to his ankles the whole time.
"YesâŠ"
"Really?" He holds out his hand to me, seeming to recover.
I still have his humors dripping down my inner thigh, but he looks at me as if nothing has happened. "Really."
Afterwards, he explains to me how to use the bathroom, we manage to talk normally, or rather, he acts normal, and this sincerely gives me the feeling of being a colleague, wanting to be nice. I spoke little, still in shock.
"If I'm already asleep when you come back, wake me up. I'll move."
"I'll try not to." I smile weakly, still tired.
"If you touch me when you sleep, it's okay. Just not too close."
"I'm not going to-"
He freezes me, puts a finger over my mouth, presses it so that I stop moving my lips. "Lock up, anyway."
When I walk him to the door, Jay heads to his room but I can't help noticing there's someone else across the hall, I turn away when I sense his presence closer.
"Have you started yet?" He asks, surprised but amused, I think.
"AhâŠno. I mean-"
"Even if you are here for that, you could have waited a while."
I was wrong, I'm a pest to him, too.
It's not that I'm surprised, they may be handsome and famous, but they are men, and men are strangely too equal to each other, as if in an unspoken camaraderie. There will be different ones and there will be good ones, I'm sure, but I haven't met any yet, so they must be very few.
However, being a fan myself, I feel bad about it. I mean, it's normal for me to feel bad about giving such an idea to people I like so much. Besides, I had a different idea about him, I thought that he himself would be the least critical - but why did I think that?
At the very least, I reflect, seeing them like this will make the mystical and pure aura that hovers around them fade away in my eyes.
"I do what I'm here to do." I answer him, suddenly fearless, my pride is blatantly wounded.
"It was just a advice, why do you get hot?" Heeseung asks, laughing and moving closer.
"I'm not warming up."
He is one step away from me when he stops. "Don't wear it, I read it ruins tits." He advises me again.
I chase the direction of his gaze, right - even though I'm dressed I'm not wearing a bra, and judging by my nipples, it shows. "ButâŠ"
"You wore it before, didn't you?"
Now I look him in the eye, it devastates me but I try to maintain some form of dignity by remaining serious.
I am too embarrassed to realize how beautiful he is up close.
"What do you want?"
"I'm giving you another advice."
I step back into the doorway, not quite lucid enough for him to make fun of me, and no matter how much just looking at him makes me feel like the center of a tornado, he's annoying me.
Heeseung puts his foot in the door before I can close it. "You don't listen to advice, do you?"
"Are you enjoying yourself?"
"Actually, I feel my privacy has been violated by a stranger."
"Then ask them to send me away, maybe they will listen to you. You're quite authoritative, aren't you? You're Lee Heeseung."
He smiles, as if pitying me, but why should he? "By the way, you said you were a fan, who is your bias?"
Ah. I didn't expect this one, he really changed the subject, putting me in an uncomfortable situation.
Suddenly my hands begin to tingle and my body to boil-essentially, by spending time with Jay, I have normalized that these people in front of me are Enhypen, and that I am still obsessed with each of them.
Why am I blushing? Am I an idiot?
"I don't have it."
"Liar, you took a long time to answer."
"N-No, I mean it."
"Ah, you don't say that because it's really me?" He asks me, with an innocent expression and a dazzling smile, I seem to melt in front of him.
I giggle in confusion. "You wish."
"So you don't want to go against the others? Is that why you won't tell me? Look, I'm not a snitch."
Is he trying to convince me as if I were a child? Ah, that's annoyingly adorable.
"Why do you want to know?"
"Because it seems like an interesting experiment. An engene, in our dormitory, to have free access to every member - she nods, raising her eyebrows convincingly, I continue to stare at the perfect shape of her smiling lips - she will try to conquer her bias, no? I'd like to observe him."
I laugh, genuinely. Can I believe that he doesn't know? Or is it precisely because he knows that he wants to observe him?
Conquer? But who am I supposed to conquer in my situation? It's hard enough to find a normal guy with an open mind, should talented kids who expect everything to be owed to them be?
"Are you kidding me?"
"Just a little." His laughter fades into a warm smile.
And of course, he knows.
"So why did you want to know?"
"Because I'm curious, by nature I guess."
"Then I'm sorry to disappoint you, but you'll never get an answer."
He removes his foot, not seeming at all impressed by my knockout response, but whatever, I close the door without even saying goodbye. Now that I am finally alone, leaning against the sink again, I look at myself in the mirror.
My heart is about to burst, my brain is the on the verge of its worst short-circuit, my muscles are trembling.
Did this really happen? All of this? With Jay? With hisâŠbody? And that fits into the korean standard? What about Heeseung? Wasn't he a little too handsome? I can feel it, at this rate I'll end up going crazy.
NEXT CHAPTER:
enhypen smut links
~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~
heeseung
-heeseung bending you over and fucking you fast after you kept distracting him
-riding heeseung on the couch
-heeseung teasing you with his fingers and dick before fucking you
jay
-jay teasing you with his cock before shoving it into your tight cunny and fucking you good
-jay fucking you rough after he he notices one of your guy friends flirting with you
-sensual sex with jay after a nice dinner out
jake
-jake making you play his game while he fucks you from behind
-jake gets needy and pulls your panties down to fuck you while you sleep
-jake eating your pretty pussy
sunghoon
-sunghoon fucking up into you until you both cum together
-sex with sunghoon in missionary
-sunghoon rubbing your pretty pussy through your panties
sunoo
-sunoo fucking you so good, you quite literally float
-having sex with sunoo in a tiny skirt
-slowly rubbing your pussy against sunooâs cock
jungwon
- jungwon slowly undressing his pretty girlfriend to eat her out before fucking her in all different positions
-jungwon teasing his dick against your pussy
-jungwon overstimulating himself while fucking you because it just feels so good
feedback would be greatly appreciated since this is my first time posting it doing something like this.
like and reblog :)
YOUâRE PATHETIC âȘïž
âïœĄïŸâïžïœĄđ summary: Jay and you go to the same church school. He and his friends make fun of you for actually following the rules. You think he hates you, but little do you know about his obsession.
pairing ᯠpark jongseong x fem!reader
â starring: newjeans' DANIELLE
cw ᯠnsfw, cursing, corruption kink, hard dom jay, sub reader, unprotected sex, talk about religion, masturbation (jay), mention of porn magazine's, jay and reader go to a church school, jayâs 20 and readers 19 turning 20, breath play???, face fucking, p in v sex, jay degrades reader in one scene, reader is clueless, jay & reader are inexperienced, reader mentions pee (doesn't know she's abt to cum), lmk if there's more
p.s. ᯠin no way am I trying to mock anyone's religion. I mean no harm this is all fiction and in creative fun. If you are not comfortable with this topic, please do not read and look for something else. also, this story is supposed to take place in the 80's keep in mind that's why there is no texting.
taglist ᯠ@anonant @luvnicho @nannetsz @star4rin @lovelysparklyfart @aileeeeeeeeeeeee @jakehooni @26796i @woozixo @kim2005bomi @minseongsworld @sunkislove
series ᯠ80âs love
There he was for the third time this week, fist pumping his cock with the swollen red tip sticking out. Moaning your name like it was some sort of ritual because he couldnât stop thinking about you and your pigtails. Oh, how much he wants to tug on them and push you to your limit while fucking you hard. He really shouldnât be doing this and if his parents found out heâd be in so much trouble but that doesnât stop Jay. It didnât stop him when he was 14 so why would he stop now at the age of 20.
âYea- oh f-fuckkâ he grunts as white ropes spill out of him onto his hand. His breathing is unstable as he closes his eyes imagining how youâd clean him up so well. Youâre so vulnerable and pure, thatâs what Jay loves most about you. Constantly following your parentâs rules like a good Christian girl, but Jay always wondered if he would be able to change that. Minutes pass by and youâre the only thing flooding his mind.
He flinches as the front door opens letting him know his mom is back from the store. Jay groans wiping his hand with a napkin and yanking on the nearest pair of sweats before rushing to wash his hands. Wiping his wet hands on his sweats as he runs downstairs taking the bags from his momâs hands. He begins to set the heavy bags on the kitchen counter taking out the groceries.
âThank you. Oh, guess what that girl.. the one with the pigtails. We saw her and her family at church on Monday. I saw her at the store today and she helped me carry my bags to my car. Sheâs cute and seems like a good girl⊠hmm?â Jays head rises suddenly not interested in what his mom bought.
âOh, ___?â his mom snaps pointing at him meaning he guessed right. âSheâs annoying and such a crybaby. Iâm not even worried about girls right now mom.â He hates how nervous he gets talking about you. The more he tries to conceal his feelings the more they pour out. His mom just laughs putting some groceries in the fridge. âHey! Be nice.â
Her laughter dies down as she remembers something. She looks up at him her look suddenly showing some disappointment. âI thought I told you not to skip church school yesterday. -â I know Iâll go tomorrow, Mom. âPark Jongseong Iâm serious. Youâre a Christian man you need to continue on the right path. Youâre a good kid you always have been.â Jay just looks away and nods not wanting to argue with his mom. His mom is trying to study his expression wondering whether to drop the conversation or not.
She sighs before speaking again. âWell, go upstairs and shower then come help me cook and set the table.â his mom softly tells him rubbing his shoulder. Jay listens dragging his feet across the floor and up the stairs.
Your white sneakers hit the floor as you walk in the halls, skirt slightly swaying. Books pressed up against your chest like someone will steal them. Danielle throws her arm around your shoulder, and you flinch looking up before smiling. You guys walk to your locker telling her updates on your new pet bunny.
Jay watches you from across the hallway while his friends complain that heâs not paying attention. âDonât worry guys heâs just trying to get his dick hard before he gets home.â Jake laughs bending over and holding his stomach.
Glaring at Sunghoon for laughing too, Jay hits the back of Jakeâs head shutting him up. âJake donât be mad you canât get any bitches because you and your 2-inch dick are literal pussy repellents.â Sunghoon's mouth drops, looking back and forth at the two guys. Jake rolls his eyes poking the inside of his cheek with his tongue thinking of a comeback.
âYeah, thereâs no coming back from that⊠sorry man.â Sunghoon pats Jakeâs back pressing his lips into a thin line. Jake shakes his head mumbling something about getting Jay back one day. The bell rings reminding everyone to start making their way to the chapel.
All the students along with Jay and his friends are entering the chapel taking their seats. Jay looks around, his eyes meeting the back of your head as you sit on the other side of the chapel next to your friends. You sit with good posture and your hands on your lap as you look forward, attention already on the teachers upfront.
The prayer begins catching everyone's attention except Jay's. He doesn't take his eyes off of you because you're all he sees. During the prayer he would continuously steal glances at you. An hour passes and he's still hypnotized by your presence. Feeling someone tap his shoulder he looks to his left and is met with Sunghoon letting him know to get up. Jay didn't even realize the prayer ended.
You're in front of him and his friends as students walk out of the chapel. Jay softly tugs on your ponytail and asks "Oh is sweet little ___ dropping the good girl act? With a skirt that short seems like you're begging to be looked at as a slut." Sunghoon and Jake just chuckle at Jay's comment.
You turn around looking at him angrily "Y-You⊠You shouldnât say words like that. Itâs not⊠something a g-good Christian would do. Actually, unlike you Park Jongseong I have a future I'm looking forward too. While you're too busy ogling at women I am focusing on my studies." you huff telling him in a matter-of-a-fact tone, but you still sound so small. Like a puppy whoâs been kicked. Tears fill your eyes as you rush to the bathroom. Your friends give Jay a dirty look and run to the bathroom to comfort you.
Damn thatâs the first time sheâs said anything back.. he thinks to himself. He follows you when his friends are distracted and knows your friends left the bathroom. As he gets closer to the bathroom, he can hear your sobs. Jay walks in clearly not caring that it's a restroom for women only and bangs on the stall that your locked in.
You flinch staying in the same position. "Why do you hate me so much?" You ask Jay with your trembling voice, and he feels his heart break a little. "What nonsense are you talking about. Can you-... Can you just come out of the stall." Jay responds keeping his cold act up.
There's silence for a couple minutes until he hears you shuffle to your feet and unlock the door. Your eyes are slightly red as you look up at him and hands tugging down your skirt. Jay sits in silence wanting to clam up because he knows you're watching him. "'I don't hate you ___" he admits staring at the ground.
Your eyes stay on him with your eyebrows scrunched together and he continues. "I hate that I can't stop thinking about you. I hate that no matter how much I distract myself you're always in my mind. I hate how I try to get your attention and you never care. You only try to please your teachers and parents because you want to be a good girl so bad."
Your eyes widen at his confession mouth opening but you shut it right away not knowing what to say. He grabs your ponytail, and you whimper. "Now what? Hmm? ⊠What do you have to say to that?" He stares at you, and you feel like he's looking into your soul. You look everywhere but his face because you feel too intimidated.
"I- well... thank you? um I appreciate-" you stop talking when you hear Jay scoff, and you look back up to see him biting his lip. 'seriously' Jay whispers under his breath. Sucking in a deep breath he let's go of your hair.
"Can I show you something?" Jay finally speaks up and you nod eagerly. He grabs your hand putting it on his crotch and you gasp softly. You squeeze your legs together, unsure of why you did that. "Is... is that your... you know. Thing?" you ask him, he laughs and nods.
You know you should take your hand away, but you can't. Your thighs are still pressed together as Jay yanks your hand off of him. He starts undoing his belt as he tells you "I can just walk out of here if you want. We can act like nothing happened but the way you're squeezing your legs tells me you probably don't want that huh?"
You just reach out to his pants slightly tugging at them trying to signal for him to pull them down. "What happened to you huh? What about your parents? You didn't learn this in church" Jay questions you with a fake pout on his face as he pull his pants and boxers down.
My Parents? How would they feel if they saw me like this...? you think to yourself but that doesn't stop you from slowly going on your knees like Jay tells you to.
You stare at his cock wide eyed and guilt filling your body because your mouth waters. "I- um I really shouldn't be doing this. My parents will be so upset." you admit twiddling your thumbs. So, when Jay stares at you with the same unimpressed look and shoves your head closer to him...
You open your mouth, tongue slowly poking out like you're scared of his cock. What are you even supposed to do? You lick his tip, and he groans lightly making your eyes light up. You feel so dirty, but you don't want to stop anymore. Your lips wrap around the tip sucking it like a lollipop and looking up at him.
"Come on baby. Stop playing around and take it." Jay harshly comments pushing your head further down. Your eyes squeeze shut as you gag around his length. He controls your pace holding your ponytail continuously dragging your head up and down his cock. Never in a lifetime would you have thought that you'd be doing this but something about him just makes you want to do whatever he wants.
As his moans grow louder you sit there letting him use you how he pleases. Tears fall down your face snot coming out of your nose as you gag even more while Jay groans. You can't breathe and start tapping his thighs, but Jay just seems to get more aroused.
Something fills up the back of your throat. Your eyebrows scrunch together, and you try to pull back, but he keeps your head steady, nose on his pelvis. You look up at him with teary innocent eyes and he's moaning. His hips buck once more before he lets you pull your head away and once you do; heâs looking down at you.
You're panting loudly and the white liquid spilling out the corners of your mouth. âSwallow it and stick your tongue out.â Jay tells you. His eyes are piercing through you, so you swallow sticking your tongue out showing him. He groans rubbing your cheeks.
Jay picks you up from the ground, hands on your face before kissing you. You're unsure of what to do I mean you don't know how to kiss but it doesn't bother Jay. "Are you okay? Was I too rough? Did I hurt you?" Jay asks concern in his eyes it's like a totally different person from before. This is foreign to you, Jay's usually rude.
A smile grows on your face as you nod at him feeling the blush creep up on your face. "I- I really liked that." You look at the floor and he smiles at you grabbing your hand. Your smile drops when you hear the bell signaling that you're supposed to be in class.
You rush picking your books up and before you can leave Jay grabs your arm and pecks your lips. You push him off getting embarrassed and he smacks your ass as you walk out.
The speed of your heartbeat starts to increase as you wipe your eyes and mouth. Did you really just do that? You tug your ponytail to make it tighter as you run to your class. what were you thinking?! you can't do that again; you'll confess to Father Eri- wait no... no you can't confess...
It's been a month. You've been ignoring jay since the incident that happened in the bathroom. When he makes smart comments, you just walk away pretending you don't hear him. You made a deal with yourself to never tell anyone about what happened and that it will never happen again.
Currently you're sitting in your bunny's play pen cooing at her and playing with her. Small beads of sweat slide down your back after rearranging your room so Lola can have space for her little playpen. As you tie your hair up into a messy bun your mom calls you from the kitchen, so you pick up Lola and head downstairs.
"There you are hun! I need you to go in the garden and pick some fruit please. The Park's are coming over in about 30 minutes." Your mom says as she sets 6 plates of breakfast. She lightly hums a song from church playing on the radio.
Your eyes widen at her words and suddenly you're more conscious of the fact that Jay will be in your house. "The Park's? Mom but I have no time to get dressed and why are they coming over? Since when were we friends with th-" Your mom's soft sigh cuts you off as she wipes her hands on her apron before taking a couple steps closer to you.
"Don't be rude ___. They are very sweet people I bumped into Mrs. Park at the grocery store, and we arranged something. I have your clothes picked out they are in the bathroom. Quickly pick the fruits and get ready." your mom tells you kindly but sternly, so you grab a basket from the closet. You turn looking at the clock before walking outside with Lola.
While you put the last pieces of fruit in the basket Lola hops around you trying to eat some strawberries. You look down at her smiling picking her up and quickly rinsing a strawberry giving her one.
You walk inside setting the basket on the kitchen counter. 20 minutes... you rush upstairs kissing Lola's head and putting in her cage making sure the door is secure. You open your closet grabbing your towel and make your way to the bathroom.
The warm water hits your body, and you think back to that day in the bathroom. You feel like it's hot down there. You squeeze your legs together wanting to cry because you don't understand the feeling that's been going on for the past month. "___!! Hurry they are going to be here in 10 minutes!!" your mom yells from outside the bathroom.
You rush out the shower quickly changing into a white sundress your mom set out for you. You settled on putting your hair in pigtails using your favorite bow hair ties and quickly putting on some makeup. As you make your way downstairs there's a knock on the door. You open the door and you're met with Mrs. Park smiling sweetly next to Mr. Park and Jay.
Your mom comes greeting them as you hug Mrs. Park and bow. Your mom asks you to set the table as she goes outside to show Mrs. Park the new flowers she planted. Your dad talks to Mr. Park and Jay in the living room as you get some juice out to put on the table. "Honey come here for a second." your dad calls.
Trying not to physically sigh as you turn around walking towards him. Your hands are shaking you can feel Jay staring at you. "Jay got a pet bunny just like you hun!" he informs you and you look up at him suddenly interested. "R-really? What color is it?" you ask him.
"He's black and has a white spot on his eye." Jay answers smiling slightly when he sees you gasp. You didn't know Jay would be the type to own a bunny. "___ I didn't know you had a bunny. How old is the bunny?" Mr. Park talks to you as you nod your head.
"Yeah! She's 8 months and her name is Lola. I got her a month ago!" Mr. Park smiles at you asking for tips on how to care for a bunny since Jay isn't much of an expert. "Why don't you go upstairs with Jay so he can see Lola?" your dad proposes the idea and suddenly your mouth is dry. Jay tells him he'd love to see Lola.
"Dad" you mumble, and he looks at you laughing. Your dad tells Jay and his father. "Sorry ___ can be shy. Come on it'll be quick." You sigh walking upstairs as Jay follows you. Your dad never lets you bring anyone in your room so why would he let Jay. The walk up the stairs is silent as your dad's continue to talk.
Once you get in your room you close the door walking towards Lola's cage, but Jay just stares at you. "Were you ignoring me?" Jay questions you and you can't seem to make eye contact with him. He grabs your hand gently and you look up at him. You can't tell how Jay is feeling, you thought he'd be fuming but he looks almost sad. "W-what we did... it was wrong I know. It should have never happened... but I can't stop thinking about it."
You stare at his lips biting your nails, you quickly peck his lips. Jay looks shocked as his hands immediately find your waist. He pulls you in for another kiss moaning into your mouth. Starting to feel bold you place your hands on Jay's thigh and begin to whine. Pulling away from the kiss he mutters "You've been feeling needy for me? I have been needing you... so much."
Jay is not satisfied with the nod of your head. "Say it. Tell me that you need me." Foreheads pressed together as you look up at him studying his features. You whisper, "I need you... please."
He kisses you one more time before pulling down his pants and boxers. Jay gently reaches under your dress pulling down your underwear. The tiny bear patterns make him smile as he walks closer to your bed tossing your underwear on the floor. What he hasn't noticed is you staring at his cock you forgot how big he is.
"You're gonna put that down here?" You pull your hand down to your bare core shock all over your face and Jay just chuckles pecking your lips. "Jay I- I... that's not gonna go down there. 'S too big."
He turns you around and softly pushes you down to your knees. Guiding your upper body on your bed and kicking your legs open. He gets behind you spreading you apart. You put your arms behind you, hands trying to cover your lower body.
Jay grabs them and puts them on your lower back holding your wrists with one hand. The other trails down to your slit feeling how wet you are as you gasp. "Fuck... are you gonna be good for me and take it... hmm?" Jay asks and you whimper subconsciously rubbing your core on his hand.
Jay rubs his tip on your slit and slowly pushes it in. Tears prick your eyes, and you gasp loudly, one of your restricted hands try to grab Jay's wrist. He groans pushing more in as you tighten around him, pushing some of him out. "I'm sorry baby, you need to relax, okay? If you relax, I promise, I'll make you feel good." Jay coos at you.
He reaches down rubbing your clit and you softly begin to moan. He's able to push his entire length in. His head drops and he's trying to hold in his orgasm. Your warm walls make him never want to leave. He continues to rub your clit and starts to move giving you no time to adjust. He notices your face all scrunched up and tears streaming down. You feel so full it makes you feel like you can't breathe.
The burning sensation begins to feel like pleasure. You feel an overwhelming amount of pleasure. "Jay you- I... ahhh so good!" Jay removes his hand from your clit shoving two fingers in your mouth. "Fuck this cunt is so tight ugh" His thrusts are sloppy and inconsistent. To be honest Jay has no clue what he's doing, sure he and his friends talk about porn magazines they secretly found and kept, but he's never had sex.
His pace speeds up and his thrust are harder. The room feels hot and you're both sweating while the sound of skin slapping fills your room. Jay removes his hand from your wrists grabbing one of your pigtails and tugging on it. "Wait jay I think 'mm going to pee! Stop I have to pee!!" you yell at him hands grabbing your bedsheets for dear life, but he doesn't stop instead he goes faster.
You clench around him cumming all over him. Jay starts to see a ring of white appear at the base of his cock. You're in a daze everything is muffled as tears continue to fall down your face.
"Who knew you could be so dirty huh?" Jay whispers in your ear tugging even harder on your hair. Your sobs are muffled by his two fingers. His hips stutter as he cums and he falls on your back.
You two stay still trying to catch your breath. Jay gives you small kisses all over the side of your face. He plays with the hair ties that holds your pigtails. he notices that both hair ties have little bows on them cute.
"Can you... wear pigtails again? I... I like how they look on you." Jay nervously asks and you turn your head back to look at him. A dusty pink creeping up on your cheeks as you nod.
The door slams open "What are you gu-" shit.
@enhypens-hoe 2024 - do not steal, copy, or translate.
divider creds áŻâ @/xxbimbobunnyxx
đno limits: park jongseong
part one of the no limits duology / the limits series
pairing: jay x afab!reader word count: 17.5k
synopsis: jay was finally able to open up his restaurant and it being more successful than he could have hoped. You decided to try the new restaurant everyone kept talking about, falling in love with it immediately and even crushing on its owner. You become a regular and get to know jay quickly. as jay becomes bold and finally asks you on a date and brings you back home with him, he fails to tell you he shares the space with his sister, three best friends and his five month old nieceâŠ
genre: strangers to lovers, uncle!jay, smut
warnings: swearing, alcohol, overprotective jay, multiple unprotective sex scenes, dom!jay, breeding kink, daddy kink, fingering, oral (m. + f. receiving), cum eating, hair pulling, aftercare, semi public sex in a dark corner of a club, MINORS DNI, lemme know if i missed anything <3
â° this is a spin-off to the main series, please read parts one-three before reading this one. they are tagged under the title â°
âąÂ·.·no limits spotify playlist'·.·âą
Jay rubbed his hands together, âOkay everyone, are you ready?â
âJesus man!â Heeseung snapped, using his hand to fan his face from the summer heat, âJust hurry up, itâs just us no need to be so nervous.â
âThatâs what I am saying,â Sunghoon agrees, also fanning his face, âToo damn hot outside.â
Jay knew he had zero reason to be nervous, but how could he not? He was fixing to share one of his biggest achievements (besides ya know, graduating college with not just his computer science degree but also his culinary and business degrees) with his friends, his family, what is not scary about that?
âJongseong, my sweet son,â his mother said, rocking his niece on her hips, âWe are excited to share this moment with you, itâs all okay.â
Jay relaxed at his motherâs words until his sister opened her mouth.
âJay, just hurry the hell up,â she rolled her eyes, âI am sweating. I can feel it rolling down my back.â
Jay narrowed his eyes at her, âStinks, no one asked for that gross detail.â
Before she could say anymore, Jake wrapped his arms around her from behind, âBaby, heâs nervous let him take his time.â
Thank you, Jake, finally, someone gets it.
âDad, want to help me with the sign?â Jay asked, finally deciding to get it over it.
He nodded, going to the other side of the door, holding the string that led to the banner that was covering up the sign to his restaurant, âOn three?â
Jay nodded, his hands shaking as he held the other string, âOneâŠâ
âTwo,â his father smiled.
âThree,â Jay said finally, both the strings being pulled and the banner falling to the ground.
His eyes quickly dart to his family and friends, their eyes widening and smiles growing wide.
His sister and Jake covered their mouths quickly, tears filling their eyes, âYou named it Hwa YoungâŠâ his sister softly said.
Jay nodded, wiping his sweaty hands against his jeans, âYeah, I named it after HwaâŠâ Jayâs voice trembled, âWas just going to name it Beautiful Little Flower, but thought her actual name would be more meaningful.â
Jay adored his niece just as much, or even a bit more, as he adored his little sister, the two of them being the most important women in his life along with his mother. Using his niece's name for his restaurant was too perfect to pass up.
âBrother,â Jake said, walking over to him, reaching his hand out for Jay to take it, and he did, âI canât believe you did this man.â
Jay pulled his best friend into a hug, rocking each other back and forth, âItâs all for my family.â
Jay could finally say heâs gotten used to calling Jake his brother-in-law, even if he and his sister werenât married yet, it kinda felt nice to call Jake his brother officially.
âJongseong,â his sister cried, practically yanking her fiancĂ© out of the way and hugging him herself, âI love you so much, big brother.â
Jay now felt his own tears swelling in his eyes, âI love you too, Stinks.â
One by one the rest of his family hugged him, giving him all the congrats he could ask for. Jay fully and truly felt the happiest in this moment.
Hwa cooed and reached her arms out for him.
Never mind, this was the happiest moment he could ever ask for.
Jay retrieved Hwa from his mother, hugging her tightly to his chest and planting kisses all over her face, causing her baby giggles to fill his ears.
âShow us inside now???â Sunghoon asked, anxiously waiting to see how it looked and honestly wanting to get out of the heat.
âWhat Sunghoon said!â Heeseung joined in, âUnlock the doors!â
He rolled his eyes, âGod, you lot are so annoying.â
Jay took the keys from his pocket and officially opened the door for the first time since the restaurant was finished.
âI welcome you all,â Jay said with a smirk, his nerves finally disappearing, âTo Hwa Young, the best cafe restaurant of food from all over the world all in one place.â
The smiles from his friends and family helped boost his ego, knowing damn well they already loved his cooking and knowing they were all fixing to love it even more.
â
You didnât think the line to the new restaurant in town was going to be, quite literally, wrapped around the building. The whole parking lot was completely filled with everyone and their mommas here in line.Â
You should have expected this though, the restaurant has only been open for about a month and the news on it has been crazy. Itâs made almost every food article with five-star ratings. No wonder this place hasnât slowed down at all.Â
The line was slowly moving and you were so close to the door you could already taste the food you wanted to order. Shifting your weight back and forth on your feet you didnât think your stomach would last much longer until a line of people left the restaurant doors, and the line you were in moved faster.Â
Thank fucking christ.Â
Soon enough you made it past the doors, the cool air condition sending shivers down your spine in pure bliss from getting out of the summer heat. You took the time to glance around the restaurant. It was a beautiful blue-green cafe-style feel with the fancy life of a normal restaurant. Whoever the owner is, he knows what he is doing. Making this place feel so warm and welcoming and at the same time is fancy and professional. He had big brains, for real.Â
Your eyes now darted to each waiter and waitress, seeing a flash of long red hair shoot across from the kitchen to a table, tray of food in hand. Your best friend.Â
Yunjin gave her customers big smiles and told them to enjoy their meal, her eyes lifting to see you and another big smile on her face, making her way towards you.Â
âYNNIIEEE!!!â She set the empty tray on an empty table and quickly pulled you into a hug, âI am happy you finally made it here!!!âÂ
You hugged her back, squeezing her tightly and rocking her back and forth, âI waited in line for like an hour.âÂ
She quickly pulls back, folding her hands at your shoulders, âReally?!âÂ
You nod, giving a small smile.Â
Yunjin quickly glances around the restaurant, âThere arenât any empty tables in my section,â she glances off to the right side of the building, âYouâll have to sit over there.âÂ
You pouted but accepted it anyway. You came here specifically to see your friend and to get served by her. Well, you wanted to see this place too. Yunjin has hyped up this restaurant and her boss for the entire time sheâs worked here. Plus again this place has been given five-star reviews, probably ten if it were allowed.Â
âThereâs still plenty more time for me to come see you,â you comforted her, resting your hands now on her shoulders, âBut I am starving sooooo.â
She giggles and leads you to the table, âYouâll be well taken care of here, I promise you.â She gave a wink before rushing back off to her section of the restaurant.Â
You twisted your fingers in your hands, glancing between every other waiter and waitress, curious as to who would be the one to serve you.Â
Yunjin quickly made her way to the kitchen, double-checking the tickets on the rack and glancing at the trays of food. Her eyes glanced up to finally find who she originally came back here to look for.Â
âJay!âÂ
Jay kept his eyes locked on the order slip in his right hand, glancing back and forth between the tray in his hand and the piece of paper to make sure everything was there, âWhatâs up?â he finally answered her.Â
Yunjin slides to his side, glancing up at him with a smile, âMy best friend is here, the one Iâve told you about?âÂ
Jay starts walking away, âCongratulations. Let me know how she likes it here, and have her give us a review.âÂ
Yunjin pouted but followed quickly after him, âSheâs not in my section.âÂ
Jay set the tray down on the counter, placing a few utensils onto the plates and double-checking once again that everything was in order, âTake her order anyway.âÂ
Before Jay could pick up the tray again, Yunjin was slipping it into her hands, Jay glared at her, âSheâs in your section. I want her to get the best experience here. Youâre as best as it will get.âÂ
Jay already had other customers to make sure and keep up with, along with keeping up with the kitchen and all his employees. Plus Yunjin was more than capable of bouncing back and forth between sections. Yet Yunjin winked at him and ran out with his tray.Â
Jay followed quickly behind her, âGive it back.âÂ
âNope,â she sang, pointing a finger across the restaurant, âSheâs right there. Show her how good this place is.âÂ
Jay rolled his eyes and pulled his notepad, silently cursing to himself that he needed to invest in tablets to take orders, âMaybe I need to offer her your job too while I am at it.âÂ
Yunjin gave him a wink, âNo you wonât,â and she walked away.Â
Jay sighs, walking over to the table Yunjin pointed at. Reaching his hand into his pocket to pull out his pen and write down the table number. Putting on his boss/customer service mask.Â
âHello! Welcome to Hwa Young, IâmâŠâÂ
Jay lost every ounce of thought process when you looked up at him. Your beautiful eye color shines so brightly under the sunlight coming in from the windows. Your smile sends him into cardiac arrest. He just stares at you, taking in every inch of your beauty. Youâre friends with Yunjin? This beautiful human being sitting in front of him was friends with his Yunjin?Â
You stared back at him, taking in his pretty brown eyes and the way his blonde hair was slicked back, the dark of his natural hair slowly peeking through his skin. Small strands of his hair fell into his face, complimenting his tan skin even more.Â
Jay blinked a couple of times, and looked down at his notepad, âWelcome to Hwa Young, I am Jay, the owner of this restaurant and Iâll be taking care of you today.âÂ
TheâŠOWNER?!? Yunjin put you in the owner's section?!?! You already knew your face was blushing at the beautiful man before you. Already knew your best friend was standing off into the distance with a smirk on her face.Â
You kept repeating to yourself to look away from him, to look back at the menu and tell him what you wanted. But you couldnât look away from him, just like he kept staring back at you.Â
Jay didnât know what came over him and why he was so speechless. Heâs been with pretty girls before, slept with plenty of them, and has served just as many in his restaurant. But whatâs so different about you? Everything was telling him to sit across from you in this booth. But he had a job to do, and other tables to take care of.Â
He blinked a couple of times and shook himself out of his daze, âNew here?âÂ
His words brought you back to reality, forcing you to finally look at the menu, âYes, first time actually. My best friend works here.âÂ
âYunjin? Yeah, she told me you were here. She talks about you a lot actually.âÂ
You looked back at him for a split second and then whipped your head around to find your friend, seeing her peeking her head around the corner of the kitchen door, âSounds like something sheâd do.âÂ
Jay chuckles, his nerves finally settling down, âIt is. Sheâs great though. Very hard working and one of the best waitresses I have.âÂ
You smiled at him at the praises he gave your best friend, feeling more relaxed, âOkay Mr. Bossman,â you teased, âWhat is the best thing here?âÂ
Jay smiles, âEverything,â you roll your eyes at his cockiness, but know he fully means it. The man was running a five-star restaurant that was a month old. He knows what heâs doing, âHow about I surprise you with something?â He asked, leaning his hands on the table, âSound good?âÂ
You nodded, but then quickly shook your head, âHow much will it be?â You completely forget you paid your rent this morning, coming here with a mission to try the cheapest thing.Â
But Jay just kept his smile wide, âItâll be on the house. Canât have a pretty girl who is best friends with Yunjin pay for her first visit, can we?â He gave you a wink, âDonât worry about a thing, YN,â and he slowly backed away, keeping his eyes on you until he turned around and walked to the kitchen. The flash of red hair ran in after him.Â
It surprised you that he knew your name, but then you remembered Yunjin ran her mouth about you. Making you now wonder what all Jay knew about you.Â
Once Jay was in the safe space of the kitchen, he leaned onto the countertop, placing his hand on his chest and pulling the fabric of his black dress shirt between his fingers.Â
âSooooo,â Yunjin sang standing in front of him and tilting her head, âHow did it go?â
Jay gave her a death glare, âWhat are you pulling here?âÂ
Yunjin gave him a look of confusion, holding her hands up, âMe? Planning something?âÂ
Jay hardened his glare.Â
Yunjin sighs, resting her arms back down to her side, âI really am not planning anything. I just want my friend to have a good experience here.â Jay stared at her more, âOkay!! Fine! I was totally hoping youâd fall head over heels for her and take her out.â
Jay stood up straight, âI am firing you,â he said to her and walked over to the cook, quickly writing down a meal heâs praying youâll love and hooking it into the rack, âThis needs to go out ASAP.â The cook nods, giving him a âYou got it boss.â and a smile.Â
âYou wonât fire me,â Yunjin challenges, âBut come on, I saw the way you looked at her.âÂ
âI donât know her,â Jay retorted, walking to the back office and dropping into his chair, sliding his hand through his hair.Â
âThen get to know her.âÂ
âYouâre still following me? Get back to work.âÂ
âJay,â she said leaning her elbows on his desk, âIf you donât take her out, Iâll ask Wonbin to take her out.âÂ
Jay rolls his eyes, âWonbin?âÂ
She shrugs, âHeâs been talking about wanting a girlfriend for a while, might as well. Or I could always ask one of your friends the next time I see them here.âÂ
âNo!â The way Jay was so quick to reject the idea of one of his friends taking you out made Yunjin smile even more, âNo, to it all. If something is going to happen, itâs going to be natural, stop playing matchmaker. Get back to work.â
She frowned, but nodded anyway, walking away, âSheâs a beautiful woman, better take your shot before someone else notices.âÂ
Jay rubbed his temples. Oh how very aware he was of how beautiful you are. Knowing Yunjin was right. Jay made quick work of piling up your meal and dessert onto the tray and taking it out to you.Â
Your smile at seeing the food made his heart sink. Sending his brain thinking about the way youâd smile at him for cooking for you, if it would be the smile you have now or even bigger, brighter.Â
âHere we go,â he said, setting the grilled lemon chicken sandwich and chocolate cheesecake down in front of her, âThis is my go-to meal,â he smiled, âI hope you enjoy it.âÂ
You try to not let your saliva spill out of your mouth at the food in front of you, âIt looks fantastic.âÂ
Jay couldnât help but continue to smile, pulling his notepad and pen out, âIf you ever need anything,â he said tearing the paper from the pad and sliding it onto the table to you, âOr if you just want to talk or get VIP treatment here, give me a text or call.âÂ
You took the paper in your hands and stared at the number. You smiled at him, âI will. Also, tell Yunjin to mind her own business.âÂ
Jay laughed, âTrust me, I plan to.âÂ
â
You didnât know what scared you more:
1: the amount of times youâve shown up to the restaurant. Â
or
2: the hours youâd spend sitting at the exact same booth every time talking to Jay in between him having customers.Â
or
3: the amount of free food youâve gotten.Â
Probably the third option if you had to be honest. Youâve become a regular here at Hwa Young, slowly working your way through the menu of fine dishes and bakery items. Loved every single thing Jay has put in front of you and never once made you pay a single dime of your money. Youâve tried to pay every time but Jay always refused, âCanât make a pretty girl pay, plus a friend of Yunjin is a friend of mine,â he would always say.Â
But who were you to complain? Free food always tastes better anyway.Â
Youâve been coming and going as you please to Hwa Young for about a month now. Slowly learning the names and faces of the other workers and even the other regulars. The restaurant finally slowed down as well, being only busy during peak hours.Â
During that month, you and Jay got closer. You learned his favorite colors, how he loves playing the guitar, and even sang a bit too. Learned where he found his love of cooking and wanted to share that with the world. How he triple majored in computer sciences and business with his culinary degrees. The man was SMART. He told you how he worked on the side with his best friend at a software developing company when he wasnât running the restaurant, to use his computer sciences degree. You learned all the little things about him that made up who he was, and you loved every moment of it. The small attraction grows into true genuine feelings.Â
You realized you felt more than just the attraction while texting him one night. You were struggling with some family problems of your own, asking if you could rant to him. He called you not even a second later.Â
âYN, whatâs up? Talk to me.âÂ
You ranted to him without a second thought, feeling so at ease and comfortable with him. Telling him the high expectations theyâve set for you. How they hate that youâre a florist and want to own your own flower and garden shop one day. How they want you to return back to college and be a lawyer, to follow in your father's footsteps as one since you were the only child and don't have that older or younger sibling to take up that mantle for you. You expressed to him how much you hated it, how you sometimes felt you would have no choice but to give in to them.Â
âYN, donât feed into that bullshit!â Jay snapped over the phone call, and the sound of wind blew through the speaker, telling you he was outside, âYou are your own person, if owning a flower and garden shop is what makes you happy, then by all means, please do that.âÂ
Those words, those exact words made your heart flutter and you knew that your feelings for this man were strong.Â
Which is how you ended up at the restaurant the same days he was. Even if he was in the kitchen cooking that day, you still showed up. Sending Yunjin, Wonbin, Niki, or Danielle to let Jay know you were there, and one of them sending a plate of food out to you and him sending a text to enjoy your meal and heâd come out and see you soon.
Today was one of those days with him in the kitchen. Yunjin waved at you as you walked in and sat at your normal booth, waving back at her. Sweet Danielle also waved and mouthed sheâd go get Jay for you.Â
Jay flipped his baseball cap backward, using his forearm to wipe the sweat from his face and quickly rewashing his hands before jumping back to the grill. It was Friday night and customers would be piling in soon. He was on a mission to make sure everything went out on time and everything went smoothly tonight. Making sure all the kitchen staff had their heads screwed on tight and in order.Â
Danielle skipped into the kitchen, leaning her elbows on the countertop, staring at Jayâs back, âYNNIE is here!âÂ
Danielle didnât need Jay to turn around to know he was smiling wide, âIs she?âÂ
âYes!â She sang with a tilt of her head, âI donât know why youâre acting so surprised that sheâs here, if you are she is too.âÂ
Jay finally turned around and indeed, had the biggest smile on his face, âIâm always surprised when sheâs here.âÂ
Danielle raised a brow, âOppa, just ask her out already.âÂ
Jayâs heart sank at the same moment Yunjin and Niki walked into the kitchen, hearing what Danielle said.Â
âYes hyung, I dunno if I can deal with both of your flirting anymore,â Niki said, making a face as if he was about to throw up, âItâs gross.â
Jay glared at him, âThen the next time I see you flirt with that pretty senior girl from your school Iâll tell her how badly youâve been pinning.âÂ
Niki straightened up, narrowing his eyes to Jay, âYou wouldnât.âÂ
âTry me.âÂ
Niki smiles then, âFlirt all you want!â He pops a ticket to the rack and turns on his heels, âJust ask her out already.âÂ
Jay opened his mouth to fire out a retort, just for Yunjin to chime in, âYou should though. Itâs been a month.âÂ
Jay rolled his eyes, âDid anyone ask you?âÂ
Yunjin shrugs, âSheâs my best friend, you wouldnât know her if it werenât for me.âÂ
Jay didnât have anything to say to it. It was completely true. How could he fight her back on it?Â
âAnyways!â Danielle said, âWhat are you making for her tonight?âÂ
Jay thought it over, âProbably something healthy tonight, gave her something really greasy the other day.âÂ
Yunjin scrunches her face, âMaybe bringing her was a bad idea.âÂ
Everything in Jay wanted to scream no, that it wasnât a bad idea. But just glared at her and then at Danielle, âAre you two leaving Niki and Wonbin on the floorâŠalone?âÂ
The two girls quickly shot out of the kitchen, realizing leaving those two boys alone wasnât a good idea.Â
He quickly made the order on the ticket Niki dropped off and then made your dinner, carrying both plates out, stopping at Nikiâs section first to drop off that order and then finding you in your normal spot.Â
The restaurant was starting to fill up, he had to be quick.Â
Jay set the plate in front of you and slid into the booth with you, forcing you to move over.Â
âThereâs another side of the booth, donât you know?â you teased him, taking the sandwich he prepared for you into your hands, âYouâd have more room.âÂ
Jay just shrugs and smiles at you, âAm I not allowed to sit beside you?âÂ
You take a bite of the sandwich, releasing a groan at the deliciousness of his cooking and swallowing the rest down with your water, âI mean, you can sit here if youâd want.âÂ
Jay rests his jaw on his hand, his heart doing flips at seeing how much you enjoyed him cooking for you. The happiness on your face every time you were here. The sound of your voice to further proves how happy you were being here and when on a call with him. It had him thinking maybe he should actually ask you out. Finally, take you on a date. To make you feel that happiness because of him completely, and not just by his cooking or talking with you over the phone. To actually spend time with you.Â
âHow much do I owe?â you asked, setting the half of the sandwich you had left onto the plate, âIsnât it about time that I pay?â
Jay pretended to think about it, âHmm,â he glanced up at the ceiling, then across the building, and finally back at you, giving you a smirk, âNo.âÂ
You roll your eyes, âCome on, Jay. Stop giving me free meals.âÂ
He shook his head and stared into your eyes, wanting so badly to pull you to him and kiss you. But heâd hate for the first kiss to be in his restaurant with him covered and smelling of food grease and sweat.Â
One of the cooks called for Jay from the kitchen. His eyebrow raised, âI know for a fact he didnât just call for me across the restaurant as if I couldnât fire him the moment I got back there.âÂ
You giggled, noticing a small strand of his dyed blonde hair fell out from the hole of his baseball cap. You reached up, twisting it around your finger then tucking it back into the cap.Â
Jayâs heartbeat quickened, finding that one of the cutest things youâve ever done so far. His employee's words rang through his head and before he knew it, his mouth was open and was saying, âWhy donât we go out tomorrow night?âÂ
Your face flushed, âL-like on a date?âÂ
He nodded, âYeah, go out on a date with me, YN.âÂ
The two of you stared at each other, smiles so wide, and small laughter escaped your lips as you nodded back to him, âYeah, I would love that, actually.âÂ
Jay couldnât hold back smiling wider as he stood up from the booth, âIâll text you the details later tonight after we close. Text me your address.â He gave you a wink and walked away.Â
âHey!â you shouted at him, âHow much is this food?!âÂ
âFree,â he said over his shoulder, passing by Yunjin on the way back to the kitchen, âMake sure she doesnât pay.âÂ
Yunjin saluted him, her eyes now darting to you and wiggling her eyebrows.Â
Guess she didnât mind her business after all.Â
â
Jay tried his damndest to not stare at the cleavage spilling out of your emerald green dress or notice how fucking sexy your thighs looked squished together at how you rubbed them together out of nervousness. Jay knew his body temperature was more than likely through the roof. If youâd taken a thermometer under his tongue it would break at how hot he felt at that moment. It took everything in him to not stare at you on the car ride here. He almost fell down the steps of your apartment complex when he saw you in that dress with your hair pulled into a cute ponytail. Jay never tripped up on his words (or even his own two feet) before. No female has ever had him at a loss for words, no female has had his heart beating so fast he was afraid it would burst from his chest. What were you doing to him?Â
Your dress wasnât even fancy fancy, just a pretty normal everyday summer dress that you fitted with a pair of white Converse that were scuffed up and a bit dirty, but you only dressed this way because you didnât think Jay was bringing you to the fanciest restaurant youâve ever seen.Â
âJay,â you bumped his shoulder with yours, taking him out of the thoughts of the multiple different ways he wanted to bend you over in that dress. He placed a hand on your back and looked down at you with a smile, âYou sure this is okay?â you asked, eyeing the other couples and parties in the restaurant then looking down at your dress, âThis plus must be expensive and I feel underdressed.âÂ
Jay wasnât dressed too fancy either, just in a black button-up dress shirt with black slacks with his dress shoes. It wasnât fancy like some of the other men in this restaurant, but who cares? You two fit the description the restaurant said on their website. Plus, Jay just so happens to know the owner of this restaurant, so heâll raise all kinds of hell if you two get kicked out.Â
âDonât worry, YN,â he said, âYou look sexy, donât need to worry about your looks.âÂ
You wanted to glare at him but kept your face stern. He knew that wasnât what you were worried about, âJay.âÂ
Jay chuckles, pulling you closer to him and resting his hand on your waist. He had to admit, he loved being intimate with you like this. Another feeling he wasnât used to having. You were fucking him up, thatâs for sure. âYouâll come to learn thereâs no limits when it comes to me,â he didnât take his eyes off you, âPrincess treatment only.âÂ
You had to look away, biting your lips to keep from smiling so wide. The way he said that made you think he intended to take you out again, on keeping you around. And by god, you hoped so.Â
Jay hasnât felt like this in such a long time. Maybe late high school years were the last time he felt like this about someone, to the point of feeling like his chest was going to cave in.Â
âJay Park,â the host called, signaling it was finally their turn to be seated.Â
Jay gently pushed your bag with him to move forward, âThatâs me,â he said, giving the host a smirk, âCould you also possibly send Mr. Kim out? Iâd like to say hello.âÂ
The host raised a brow, âIâm sorry, who are you?âÂ
Before Jay could answer, a man who mirrored Jayâs outfit but with a white dress shirt, slightly rolled up his sleeves and gave a big smile, âHeâs the owner of Hwa Young, who has had five stars consecutively since opening.âÂ
The host swallowed and looked down, âMy apologies.âÂ
Jay disregarded him, walking over to the one who you were assuming was the owner of this place, âKim Seokjin,â Jay said, shaking the manâs hand, âPleasure seeing you again.âÂ
âWell, the pleasure is all mine!â Jin laughed, âCongratulations on your restaurant being a success, Iâll have to stop by soon again.âÂ
Jay nods, âIâll cook an amazing steak for you.âÂ
Jin clapped his hands, âPlease, I love your steak! I actually got excited to see your name on the waiting list for tonight, I hope you find my restaurant lovely.âÂ
Jay nods again, âI knew I had to come try it out finally.âÂ
Jin looks over at you, âAnd who might this be?âÂ
Jay smiles even more, pulling you closer but more in front of him, âThis is YN, sheâll be joining me tonight.âÂ
âAhh!â Jin takes your hand, giving it a soft squeeze, âI hope you find this place enjoyable too!âÂ
You shyly nod, âI bet I will.âÂ
A few shouts happen from the kitchen and Jinâs smile drops with a sigh, âDuty calls.âÂ
âI know how that is,â Jay said, shaking Jinâs hand once again, âSee you later man.âÂ
Jin starts to walk off, âOf course! Also! Tell your sister I said hello!âÂ
And then he was off and out of sight.Â
âFollow me to your table,â The host said, leading the two of you to a table and leaving you with the menus.Â
âI didnât know you had a sister,â You said, looking around the restaurant even more, feeling ten times worse about what the check would look like after the meal was over.Â
âUhh, yeah,â he says, looking over the menu. He realized he hadnât mentioned his sister much, âSheâs who my best friend is engaged to, sorry I never made that clear.âÂ
You washed over with embarrassment, remembering how he had told you about her and maybe you just didnât put two and two together. âDonât apologize,â you quickly said, sliding your leg to wrap around his under the table, âI remember you talking about her now.âÂ
Jay looks up at you, his heart doing flips at your smile. At the way your ponytail falls over your shoulder and how your breasts are justâŠout.Â
He forced himself to look back at the menu, feeling his slacks tightening against him.Â
You caught him multiple times throughout dinner staring at your chest. He shifts his legs away from yours only for you to chase after them. It made you feel good knowing he was looking at you like a dessert he couldnât wait to devour. You werenât the type of girl to go chasing after sex but with Jay? He was making you want to chase anything that had to do with him. You could tell by his eyes he wanted you to.Â
So who were you to not take this opportunity to tease him?
You kept rubbing your legs against him, folding your arms in a way to push your breasts together or lift them up and Jay clocked each and every moment you started to make after that. Watching how youâd flip your hair off your shoulder to expose your neck more, how youâd run your fingers down your exposed arms slowly in a way of showing him how youâd touch him.Â
It took Jay everything to get past this dinner, silently begging the waitress to hurry with the check so he could pay and bang you later.Â
He followed behind you as you walked out of the restaurant, his eyes staring at how the dress hugged your waist, showing the outline of your hips and ass, how the ends of the dress blew in the wind and hit your thighs. He couldnât handle it anymore. You teased him the entire night. And he wasnât going to just let you off the hook.Â
You barely made it to the car before his hands were on your hips and twirling you around, pinning your back against his car, âYou think you can just tease me the whole night and walk away from it?â he whispers, pressing his hard length against your stomach, face inches from yours.Â
This is what you wanted, but you still couldn't stop from acting surprised. You figured he would have at least waited to jump your bones when he dropped you off at your apartment.Â
âDonât look so surprised, baby,â he pressed his cock harder against you, âYou started this.âÂ
So you just smile at him, âYou kept staring,â you teased more, âHow could I not get back at you when you have a staring problem?âÂ
Jay chuckles, taking your chin between his thumb and index finger, âYouâre lucky I love them bratty,â he lifts your chin up inching his face closer to yours, his lips brushing yours, âIâd like to tame that bratty attitude of yours.âÂ
Your knees buckled, but with his weight on you, it stopped you from falling to the ground in front of him, âThen tame it,â you whispered.Â
He didnât waste another moment, pressing his lips so fiercely against yours, moving together in perfect rhythm. His fingers slid from your chin to your jaw, cupping your face as his thumb rubbed against your cheek. The hand at your waist snaked up to your breast, squeezing and loving the way the plush slid between his fingers. He moans against your mouth, pulling away and resting his forehead on yours, âIâd love to tame you in my bed,â he breathed, hand reaching for the car door handle, âGet in the car.âÂ
The drive to his apartment felt like it took forever when it was only a short ten minutes. His lips were back on yours before the door to his apartment even closed. His hands were already pulling down the straps of your dress as he slid out of his shoes and you kicked yours off, leaving them at the front door as he dragged you down the main entrance hall. He stopped to push you against the wall, sliding the top half of your dress down to your waist, revealing the matching emerald green lace bra. You giggled at the look of pure pleasure on his face as he bent down to kiss the tops of your breast, his thumb looping between the fabric of the other and grazing your nipple. You softly moaned at the touch, your thighs rubbing together.Â
Jay removed himself from you, pulling the dress over your hips and down to the floor. Jay was in complete awe. You planned for this by the pure fact you were wearing a matching laced bra and underwear set. His cock twitched against his slacks. He didnât want to wait anymore. He takes your hands and pulls you towards him, lips and tongue finding home in your mouth as he drags you further into the apartment, leaving your dress forgotten about at the entrance.Â
Jay fumbled with the door handle to his bedroom, finally getting it open and dragging you in, closing and locking the door behind him. He pushed you onto his bed, loving the way you looked against his bedsheets. You too were growing impatient, reaching behind you to unclasp your bra, dangling it in front of him before tossing it into the void of his room.Â
âFuck, baby,â he smirks, sliding his tongue against his cheek, his hand working on the buttons of his dress shirt, âSo impatient for daddyâs cock?â You nodded, cupping your breasts and squeezing them, eyes pleading with him. His shirt hit the floor in the same motion of getting on his knees in front of you, taking your thighs and pulling you to the edge of the bed and his fingers digging into the laced fabric and pulling them down your legs. He hissed at how wet you were, seeing how it pooled from your heat, âSo fucking wet, so fucking pretty,â he whispers, rubbing his knuckle against your clit.Â
You arched your back at his touch, squeezing your breasts tighter, âJay,â you moaned, âPlease.âÂ
âHmm, please what, princess?âÂ
âDo somethingâŠâ you begged.Â
He slid two fingers into your cunt, your back arching more and a gasp escaping your lips, âYou sound so pretty,â he cooed, slowly pumping his fingers in and out, âBe a good girl for daddy and youâll get what you want, okay?â you nodded, and his movements stopped, âUse your words.âÂ
âYes,â you gasped, rocking your hips against his fingers to feel the friction.Â
He completely pulls his fingers from your pussy, âYes what?âÂ
âYes, daddy,â you whimpered at the loss of his touch, âIâll be a good girl.âÂ
Jay smirks, sliding his two fingers back inside, âGood girl.â Jay loved how submissive you were to him. How fast you folded under his touch. God, it was so fucking hot. Driving him crazy. He kept his eyes locked on the way his fingers slid in and out of you, the lewd, wet sounds your pussy made when heâd push them in, and how you were moaning for him? It was obvious no man has ever fucked you good. Hasnât fucked you right. But Jay was fixing to change that.Â
He latched his mouth to your clit, sucking and licking at the sensitive bud, pumping his fingers faster, curling them after finding your weak spot, and hitting it repeatedly. Making it his mission for you to cum on his tongue. You clenched around his fingers, and he chuckled, âGetting close, baby?âÂ
âY-Yes, da-daddy,â you whimper, moving your hands down your body and tangling them in his blonde hair, âPlease let me cum, daddy, Iâve been good.âÂ
Oh, fucking hell I am done for.Â
Jay switched out his fingers for his tongue, working his thumb in fast circles at your clit. You pulled his hair, chanting out his name as his tongue pushed in and out of you, licking every inch of your heat until the knot snapped and you came on the muscle. Jay moans against your cunt, licking up every last drop of your cum, âFuck you taste so good, baby.âÂ
You smiled between your pants, lifting yourself up on your elbows to look down at him, his hooded eyes were filled with so much lust, endearment, and happiness. He smiles as his eyes trace from your leaking cunt up to your face, his hands now unbuttoning his slacks and standing up, dropping both the slacks and his boxers down to the floor. Your mouth watered at the size of him, so wide and long, so gurthly. âIâm going to breed the fuck out of this cunt,â he smirks, pumping himself with his right hand as he crawls on the bed, forcing you to scoot up further onto the bed, âBe a good girl for daddy and spread those legs, ya?âÂ
You bit your lip and spread your legs as you were told, him crawling over you and lining his tip to your entrance, he gave you one final look, his eyes asking for permission. You nodded, âPlease, fuck me daddy.âÂ
Jay chuckles and smirks at you again, slowly pushing himself into you, both of you releasing a gasp when he bottoms out, âYou feel so good,â he groans, slowly sliding himself out, and quickly snapping back in. He didnât wait to give you time to adjust to his size, he couldnât wait. You feel too good and so tight around him. Squeezing his cock with such pleasure, how could he not move? Wanting nothing more than to split this cunt apart with his dick.Â
Jay worked himself faster inside you, taking your hands and pinning them above your head, leaving kisses on your neck and trailing them up your jaw, nipping at the skin as he did so. You wrapped your legs around his waist, squeezing them tightly, âF-feel s-so good d-daddy,â you moan, tilting your head to the side to give him more access to your neck.Â
âHmm, fucking you so good you canât speak without a stutter?â he pumped himself faster, completely taking your hands in his, squeezing them tight, âHavenât ever been fucked this good, have you?âÂ
You shake your head, âOnly you.âÂ
âFuck, yessssss,â he hisses, his hip bones knocking into yours, surely leaving bruises to appear in the morning. Jay lifts up, removing your legs from his waist and flipping you over, raising your hips up and shoving your face down into the pillows, âFuck you look so pretty face down ass up for daddy,â he growls, digging his fingers into your waist as he fucked into you, wrapping his legs around yours to spread them out wider. He knew he wasnât going to last much longer, not with how tightly your cunt squeezed around him, âFinna cum, baby,â he breathed, âGonna fill this pretty cunt so full of my cum,â he flung his head back, âWanna breed this pussy so fucking bad.âÂ
âCum inside me,â you lifted up to look at him, seeing how fucked out his face was, how blown out his pupils were, his bottom lip swollen from how hard he must have been biting it to keep himself calm, âBreed me.âÂ
âFuck,â he groans, âBaby donât talk like that to me, youâre driving me crazy.âÂ
You pushed your ass up against him, wanting to feel him as deep inside you as possible, âPlease.âÂ
He couldnât hold out anymore, not with you begging for him to cum in you. He was folding. Jay's thrusts got sloppy, giving it a good two more pushes and he was spilling into you. His hips smacked to your ass, trying to break the barrier of keeping him from completely tearing your pussy apart as he came deep. It didnât help that you were pushing back against him as if you, too, wanted him as far and deep as possible.Â
Once he came down from his high, he laid his chest to your back, rolling you both over to your side and pulling a blanket over your bare bodies. His cock was still buried in your cunt, but you didnât care. He held you close, hands gently tracing up and down the side of your waist as he left soft kisses on your shoulder, âGet some rest, YN.â You didnât realize how tired you were until those words. He finally slipped out from you, quickly climbing out of the bed and slipping out the room but quickly returning all the same with a warm towel in his hand, âLet me clean you up first.âÂ
Jay pulled back the blanket, and spread your legs, gently pressing the warm towel to your heat, wiping you clean. You felt so loved in this moment. Youâve hooked up with plenty of guys before, but none of them has taken care of you like this afterward. Or hell, take care of you during. It was different, a good different, but it still didnât stop you from asking him why.Â
Jay just laughs, âI told you thereâs no limits when it comes to me, princess treatment only.âÂ
Also because youâre making me want to do things Iâve never done for anyone else.Â
This was also a first for Jay, doing aftercare for someone. Usually, after he fucks he kicks the women out of his room and goes on about his day normally. But you? You make him want to take care of you.Â
Once you are clean, Jay tosses the towel into his dirty clothes hamper and climbs back into bed with you, pulling you close to his chest and making sure you are covered enough with the blanket, pressing a kiss to your forehead. And soon enough, you both fell asleep.Â
â
You woke up the next morning before Jay did. You slowly rolled over to see him lying on his chest, both arms pushed underneath the pillow and soft snores escaping his lips. You smiled at him, gently pushing his dyed hair from his face.Â
Your stomach growled, a bit too loud for your liking, scared it would wake him up, but he just kept snoozing. You slowly climbed out of his bed, taking his boxers and pulling up up and over your hips and taking it upon yourself to open his drawers, taking out a gray sweatshirt and pulling it over your head. It was an oversized fit, but it was comfy and smelt like him.Â
After everything Jay did for you last night, the least you could do was make breakfast for him. He owned a five-star restaurant and was an amazing cook, he had to have plenty of things to make for breakfast. You carefully tipped toed to his door and slipped out, thinking about the possible things you could make. Some sausage and bacon and eggs. Maybe pancakes or wafflesâor even bothâwith some syrup and butter. Your mouth watered at all the breakfast food items.Â
Before you could turn the corner of the hallway, you smelt food alright being made and your foot kicked something on the floor. You quickly looked down to whatever it was you kicked to seeâŠa baby toy??
You quickly looked up as you rounded the corner, seeing four pairs of eyes on you and a baby sitting in a high chair in the kitchen.Â
You felt your face heat up. Who are these people?! What are they doing in his apartment? Why is there a baby here? Did he secretly have a kid and not tell you? The baby had his nose, and she even smiled like he does with one corner of the lip curling upwards. You all just stared at each other, specifically the woman sitting in front of the baby.Â
The silence is broken when the male standing behind the woman laughs, his head whipping to the dark red-haired male sitting across from the woman at the table, and the other one at his side, âYou both owe me a hundred bucks!âÂ
The woman turned around and faced the one behind her, slapping his arm, âYou took a bet on it?!?âÂ
The slap didnât even faze him as he kept smiling, âFuck yeah I did!âÂ
She turned and faced back at you with concern on her face, âI am so sorry about them.âÂ
You were at a loss for words, mostly out of pure confusion.Â
âHey, baby,â Jayâs soft voice said, him appearing at your side and leaning against the archway of the wall, âWas wondering where you went.âÂ
One of the males cleared their throats, and Jayâs smile faded as he turned and looked at everyone in the kitchen.Â
The woman crossed her arms, narrowing her eyes down at him, âGot something to tell us?âÂ
Jay shrugs, trying to play off this awkward situation, âNo?âÂ
The one with the moles on his face stood from the table, also crossing his arms, âWe have rules here.âÂ
Jay was the one laughing now, âThis is my apartment.âÂ
âYeah, but we all pay the bills here too!â The woman snapped, âThe three stooges even took a bet on you, big brother.âÂ
Big brotherâŠThatâs his sister.Â
You quickly looked at him, pleading with your eyes for him to explain. He sighs, placing a hand on your back, âEveryone this is YN,â he takes a deep breath in, âYN, this is my sister __, her fiancĂ©, and my best friend Jake is behind her. Heeseung is the redhead and Sunghoon is the other. These are my roommates and childhood friends.âÂ
You looked at each of them and it made sense. You noticed last night there were more doors on either side of the hallway. You should have known he had roommates. You just didnât think it was the same people he talked about to you. Your eyes fell back to the baby girl, her chewing on the spoon she held in her small hands.Â
âAnd that precious bundle of joy,â he said pointing a finger to the baby, âIs Hwa Young, my niece.âÂ
Hwa Young. He named his restaurant after his niece.Â
Any worry finally left you. Watching as Jay walked around you and up to Hwa, her little smile growing big the closer he got to her. Her arms reaching out and cooing for him. Jay picked her up from the high chair, holding her tightly to his chest and pressing kisses all over her small face. Her hands grasped at his white shirt for dear life as her giggles filled the apartment.Â
You studied themâall of themâ as they watched Jay and Hwa. You could tell by the looks of endearment that everyone in that kitchen was a family, and you were the outsider.Â
âYN!â His sister called to you and waved you over, âPlease come join us, itâs not every day my brother lets us meet his dates.âÂ
You slowly walked across the living room and into the kitchen, getting a better look at the people around you. Jay and his sister looked so much alike, mostly in their noses. It was obvious Hwa got the Park nose gene. Jake wrapped his arms around her shoulders, leaning his head against her. Hwa had his eyes and a lot of his facial structure, an exact copy and paste beside the nose. âJay actually never lets his dates stay overnight,â Jake said, clearly poking fun at Jay, âWe made a bet on if you were still here or not.âÂ
Jay shot daggers at his best friend, âWhy the fuck are you three making those stupid ass bets?!âÂ
Sunghoon shrugged, âKind of hard not to when we all wake up to see an extra pair of shoes and a green dress in the hallway.âÂ
Fuck. The dress. You and Jay both had the realization of the forgotten dress, looking at each other with embarrassment.Â
âMaybe next time, donât leave clothes in the main entrance, stupid ass brother.â his sister teased, sticking her tongue out at him.Â
Jay stuck his tongue out back, âShut it, stinks.âÂ
The kitchen became loud, but so full of life as the five of them bickered back and forth but still laughed and smiled all the same.Â
âYN,â his sister calls for you, slinging Jakeâs arms off her shoulders and standing from the chair, âDo you need extra clothes? You can borrow some of mine.âÂ
You nodded, smiling at her, âIâd like that actually.â She took your hand and dragged you into what you assumed was her and Jakeâs bedroom. A small crib sat in the corner of the room beside a dresser. She pulls out a pair of sweatpants and panties, âI donât know how you feel about wearing another female's underwear, but I donât mind at all. Itâll just be until we can wash the clothes you came here in.âÂ
You accepted the clothing, âNo this is perfect, thank you for being so sweet to me.âÂ
She smiled, âI apologize for my brother, you lookedâŠshocked to see all of us. Iâm assuming he didnât tell you.â
You shook your head, âI knew of you guys, just not thatâŠâ
âWe all lived together?â you nodded again, âYeah, Jongseong is very protective, to say the least. He more than likely didnât tell you upfront because of that protection.â You gave her a confused look, what could Jay be so protective about?Â
âItâs about Hwa and __,â you turned to see Jake walking in, âJay is super protective over his sister and niece. Honestly, probably even you too, considering you stayed overnight.âÂ
You tried to not blush, âI am assuming thatâs not something that happens here?âÂ
They both shook their heads, âJay normally kicks them out right after,â his sister sighs, âBut youâre different. He talks about you all the time.âÂ
Okay, NOW you were blushing. He talked about you? You couldnât believe it.Â
Jay yells something at Sunghoon about messing up pancake batter, causing the two in front of you to laugh.Â
âGuess we should go back to make sure he doesnât kill Hoon,â Jake said and pressed a kiss to his fiancĂ©'s forehead.Â
âWelcome to the circus, YN,â she said, giving you a wink, âI am actually really happy youâre here. Thereâs too much testosterone in this place.â
Jake chuckles as you both follow him out of the room, you slipping into the bathroom to change into the clothes she gave you and returning back to the kitchen. You watched the five roommates banter back and forth. Teasing and laughing as breakfast was being made. Little Hwa sat in her chair eating cereal without a care in the world.Â
It was obvious the bonds these five had ran deep. You kind of felt bad to just stomp on in. But they all accepted you. Teasing Jay about you and you about him. After a while, you too started teasing and laughing along with them, as if you, too, grew up with them.Â
Jay wrapped his arm around you, resting his arm on the back of the chair you sat on, his thumb making figure eights on your shoulder, âItâs not too late to back out, you know,â he whispers to you, his eyes glued to Heeseung as he picked up Hwa and spun her around, placing a kiss to her cheek. You felt Jay tense up and stayed that way until Hwa was being held gently to Heeseungâs chest, âThereâs still time to bounce out.âÂ
You looked up to him, placing a hand on his knee, âIâll gladly join this circus.âÂ
Jay smiled and pulled you in for a quick kiss. The other men groaned and made gross sounds, âShut up! Specifically you Jake! I donât wanna hear it!â Jay snapped.Â
Everyone laughs. You could indeed get used to this little chaotic circus.Â
â
Youâve bounced in and out of the Park/Sim/Lee residence over the next couple of weeks. You felt at home there, mostly after getting to know each of them a bit better. Specifically Jayâs sister. She was probably the happiest one to have your presence there.Â
You and Jay have also gone on multiple dates since then and have not only made love to you in his bed but also your own, taking care of you each and every time. It was pure bliss, truly.Â
The only issue wasâŠheâs yet to ask you to be his girlfriend. Which honestly, didnât completely bother you. But at the same timeâŠdid? Youâve seen the way other women look at him when the two of you go out. You see how they drool over him at his restaurant. To say you were jealous was an understatement. Jake has told you the old stories about them going out to clubs and bars during their college days. How they were back in high school. Jay was always a heartthrob. You wanted that power to call him yours. Of being his. To go out and be able to show him off to the world. To hit up clubs, bars, and parties with him wrapped around you.Â
And thatâs exactly how you found yourself here in your current situation, all because you opened your mouth to his sister, her ears perking up at the words: clubs, bars, and parties.Â
You fiddled your thumbs as you were sandwiched between Heeseung and __, with Sunghoon, Jake, and __âs best friend Shotaro, sitting across from you.Â
Jay stood at the edge of the table, his pen touching the notepad, âRun that by me one more time,â he said with a dead calm.Â
âI said, corn lover,â his sister said through her teeth, âLetâs go out tonight. Itâs Friday.âÂ
Jay just stares at her and looks down at his notepad, âYou have ten seconds to tell me what you want for lunch or else I am walking away.âÂ
âDude,â Heeseung groans, throwing his head back against the booth, âWe havenât hit up a club in so long!âÂ
Jay drops his hands to his side, âYeah because we have jobs and a baby to look after.â His sister just shrugs and crosses her arms, clearly pouting, âWho would watch Hwa?â Jay finally asked, breaking at his sister's will. She just smiles, glancing back at him. He snapped her name, âWho. Will. Watch. Hwa.âÂ
Thereâs that protectiveness over his niece.Â
Jay shot his eyes to Shotaro, âI am guessing you arenât watching her.âÂ
Shotaro smiled and shook his head, âNope. I am coming with.âÂ
Jayâs eyes shot to Jake, âYou better speak up about who is taking care of my niece before I strangle you.âÂ
Jake raised up his hands, âDude, you think Iâd just leave my daughter at home or something?â
Jay kept quiet, but his stare was relentless.Â
âOh, for fuck sake,â his sister groans, âMom and Dad are watching her tonight. They are driving in within the next couple of hours.âÂ
Jay relaxed and let out a sigh of relief knowing Hwa would be taken care of by someone he trusted. His eyes finally land on you, âAre you okay with going out?âÂ
You nod, âIt wasâŠkind of my idea.âÂ
Jay smiles softly at you, âFine, Iâll go.âÂ
âYes!â The five of them chanted, leaving Jay to walk away with a roll of his eyes.Â
âHey!â Sunghoon yelled after him, âI am fucking starving! Come back here!âÂ
Jay flips him the bird, âI already know want you hooligans want, fuck off.âÂ
Laughter fills the booth you all sat at. Jayâs sister hugs you and rocks back and forth, âItâs going to be a blast!âÂ
â
You crossed your arms, standing closer to __, your eyes searching the club.Â
You all arrived a little over an hour ago but it didnât take long for Jay, Jake, Heeseung, and Sunghoon to be on the dance floor with alcohol in their hands. Shotaro wrapped his arm around her shoulder, rocking her back and forth to the club music as he took a sip from his beer can.Â
âWhy arenât you two out with the others?â you asked, clinging to her other side, eyes finally landing on the boys on the dance floor. They laughed and sang to the music and drank their alcohol, tossing their hands in the air and jumping when everyone else did.Â
She smiles at you, âAs youâve been told, those four are attached at the hip, they do everything together. Iâve been out with them enough times to let them have their moment first, theyâll come running back when they get it out of their systems.âÂ
You just nodded, seeing how obvious it was that this friendship ran deep, that you were still an outsider.Â
âDonât look so sad, YN,â Taro nudges you, âTheyâll come running when they miss the girls, they always do.âÂ
âItâs mostly when one of them breaks off, the others follow like ducklings or head back to me,â she laughs, âBut things are different now, youâre with us.â she wraps her arms around you, squeezing you, âYou make my brother happy, I havenât seen him like this before.âÂ
You werenât sure what to say, so you just smiled, feeling happy that you made a change in him.Â
âAnyway the real question is why arenât you two drinking?â Taro asked, raising a brow, âI feel alone over here.âÂ
You wanted to drink, but you were expecting to do it by Jayâs side or even with __, but she wasnât drinking, so you just clung to her side.Â
âWell,â She started, giving a small shrug.Â
âYou arenât pregnant again are you?!â Taro quickly pulled her to him, âPlease tell me if you are!âÂ
âNo!â she snapped, pushing her best friend slightly, âBut we are actively tryingâŠwhen we can. So I do not want to have any alcohol in my system.âÂ
It made sense. So Shotaro nods and wraps his arm back around her, âWhatever you say, princess.âÂ
You find the boys in the crowd again, seeing a hoard of girls now focused around them, âGuess they wonât be coming back to us soonâŠâ you sigh.Â
She looks out into the crowded dance floor and laughs, âWe have beautiful men, what can we say?âÂ
Jake gave the females a small, âSorry ladies, I have a fiancĂ© and a child. Iâm a taken man.â He shrugs his shoulders, making eye contact with __, âActually sheâs standing over there and I miss her, so bye!âÂ
Heeseung groaned at the loss of Jake, but reached his hands out to the ladies, âWe wonât leave ya lovely ladies here, dance with us.âÂ
They laughed and cooed as they surrounded themselves around Jay, Heeseung, and Sunghoon. But Jay was off on another planet.Â
He was watching you.Â
He watched as Jake arrived at you three, his arms wrapping around his sister and kissing her, watching how you smiled at them.Â
The women in front of Jay placed their hands on his biceps and shoulders, talking to him, but their words went in one ear and out the other. He was too focused on you.Â
Before you, Jay would dive right into whatever these girls were offering him. To drink and get drunk and either take one of them to his bed or find himself in one of theirs. But ever since he saw you, itâs only been you.Â
You made eye contact with him, your smile fading seeing how the other girls clung to him. But Jay only smiled at you, taking the girl's hands and pulling them off him, âSorry, I have to go,â the girls pouted, asking him to stay, âI belong to someone else,â he said, his eyes filling with endearment for you, âSheâs waiting for me.âÂ
Sunghoon grabbed the girls, pulling them towards him, giving Jay a wink, âGo to her.âÂ
Jay pushed his way through the crowd, eyes still locked on you. He loved the cute little black skirt you were wearing, loved how it fitted so tight against your thighs, shaping your hips perfectly. Love how the black tank top was also fitted, cupping your breasts nicely and showing off a bit of your tummy. It was sexy and he had to admit, he was jealous knowing his friends and other men in this club were seeing you like this. So dolled and hot. It was making his temperature rise and his pants to grow tighter. He wanted you. Not just in a sexual way at this moment, but all of you. You do something to him, drive him crazy, and heâs falling hard for you.Â
He crashed hard into you, pulling you so tightly against him, hands cupping your face and pressing his lips to yours. Even though he was only away from you for a short time, he missed you. You could taste the alcohol on his lips mixing with the taste of his vanilla chapstick and the smell of his cologne. It was intoxicating, making you drunk just off him.Â
His sister, best friend, and Shotaro all cooed at the two of you, âHow cute!âÂ
Jay chuckles against your lips then rests his forehead against yours, sliding his hands down to your hands, intertwining his fingers with yours, âLetâs get away from these heathens,âÂ
âHeathens?!â his sister scoffs, âAs if!âÂ
Jay smiles at his sister, quickly reaching over and ruffling her hair, âYou'll always be a heathen, stinks.â Before she could start protesting, Jay was pulling you off to the other end of the club, his friend's laughter fading out as the distance grew.Â
âWhere are we going?â you asked him, squeezing his hand tighter and smiling so wide.Â
âAway from public eyes, or well, my family's eyes,â You raised a brow, confused. But your question came with the answer when he pulled you into the corner of the club, pressing your body against it, face making contact with the cool wall. Jay snapped his hips against your ass, rubbing his hard cock against you, âI need you, I canât wait much longer,â he ran his hands down your waist and to your thighs, âYouâre so sexy, I hate knowing everyone else is seeing you in this outfit.âÂ
You purposely dressed this way, not for everyone else, but for Jay. You wanted to look good for him, wanted him to fall to his knees for you, and it seemed to be working.Â
He placed kisses on your neck, breathing your scent in, âFuck I love it when you wear this perfume, it gets me going.â You also purposely wore this perfume. It was Jayâs favorite and every time youâve worn it he always ended up balls deep inside you. He loves it and canât get enough of it, âYou make me so crazy, baby.â
Jay needed to feel youâŠright now. His hands worked their way back up your thighs, pulling the skirt up and over your hips, quickly working fast to unbutton his pants and push them and his boxers down far enough to pull his length out, rubbing the tip against your clothed cunt.Â
âJay,â you gasp, pressing your fingers into the wall, âSomeone might see.âÂ
âItâll be quick,â he moans in your ear, âItâs very dark in this corner, no one will even notice,â his index finger pulling your panties to the side, feeling your slick pool onto his fingers, âPlus you're already so wet for daddy, what kind of man would I be to not satisfy his woman?âÂ
His woman?
Jay pumped his index finger in and out of your cunt, licking his lips at how wet you were, he didnât even need to prep you. Jay wasted no more time, lifting your hips high enough and prodding your entrance with his tip, slowly pushing in until the tip kissed your cervix, âFuck youâre so wet for me,â he moans again, taking a deep breath in before sliding all the way out and pushing himself back in, âso fucking wet.â Jay was able to pump himself inside you with ease, leaning his chest to your back and hands resting at your hip, pushing you down with each thrust he made. If this was to be a quickie, then he needs to be well, quick.Â
You bit your tongue in an attempt to drown out your moans, probably not needing to anyway since the music in the club was so loud, but still you did it anyway, being scared of getting caught. But Jay was loving this, relishing in the pleasure of the possibility of getting caught. It was exciting. âMy girl, being so good for me, taking me like this.âÂ
âBut,â you gasp, âIâm not your girlââ moans out in pleasure from him picking up speed, âgirlfriend.âÂ
Jay was taken aback at your words, what do you mean you werenât his girlfriend? Youâve been seeing each other for a while now, was it not so obvious you two were together? Jay realized then maybe you just need that reassurance, that physical label. Which was fine, Jay didnât mind making it official official. He would be so happy to do so. Anything for you.Â
âBaby, youâre mine, got it? Weâre dating. You belong to me, and I belong to you.âÂ
You smirked, resting your body completely against the wall and hiking your ass higher, giving your boyfriend more access to fuck into you harder. And Jay did, he picked up speed and slammed his hips into you harder, squeezing your hips and digging his nails into your skin as you clenched around him, âBaby, I wonât last much longer if you keep squeezing me like that, please keep squeezing me, fuck it feels so good.âÂ
You clenched around him again and his moans filled your ear, his head resting against yours as he panted and chanted out your name, his thrusts becoming sloppy but unrelenting. You welcomed his seed as it spewed inside you, painting your walls like an art piece.Â
Jay smirked as he slowly pulled out and replaced your panties and pulled down your skirt, âLetâs return to the others now, ya?â he asked, readjusting his pants back into place, âI want to show off my girlfriend.âÂ
You took your hands in his, smiling at him as he led you back into the heart of the club.Â
â
âAbsolutely not,â Jay said, waving his hand at Jake to move out of the way from the TV, âYou make the perfect window, MOVE!âÂ
Jake rolled his eyes and crossed his arms, âCome on man please!âÂ
You were lying on the couch with Jay, sitting between his legs with your back to his chest. The two of you were enjoying a horror movie of a masked killer when Jake stepped into the frame.Â
Jay flung his head back into the armrest, âDude, ask someone else.âÂ
Jake clicked his tongue, âIâve asked everyone. Hee and Hoon are obviously at work, Shotaro is out of town for today for his job, youâre the only one who can watch Hwa tonight.âÂ
Jake was desperate and it was obvious, âWhatâs got you so desperate for?â you teased, wiggling your eyebrows, âGot a hot date?âÂ
You love that youâve finally gotten closer with everyone in the apartment to the point of joking and teasing like they do with each other. You can even just randomly show up, knock on the door and they let you in like you belong there. You and Jay also have been officially a couple for three months now, and life with Jay has been perfect. Youâve never been this happy.Â
Jake smirked, âI do, actually.âÂ
Jay groans, âYou just want to fuck my sister, brother. Not allowed.âÂ
Jake narrows his eyes, âI am engaged to her? I knocked her up?? Iâm allowed to fuck her? Brother I havenât had sex in almost two weeks, Iâm desperate here.âÂ
âDude,â Jay snapped, âStop talking, I donât want to hear it.âÂ
The two boys started their normal banter. You found it cute, honestly. Seeing Jay all worked up and being overprotective while Jake does all the teasing.Â
âJay,â Jake said, putting his hands together in a praying format, âPlease, we donât trust anyone else with Hwa but you and YN. Plus if you say no to me, __ is just going to beg you, and you canât say no to her.âÂ
Jay knew he was right, he couldnât tell his sister no. Never was able to, clearly, sheâd never listen anyway, hinting at the fact she broke the off-limits rule and fucked his best friend and well, here they all were now.Â
âWeâll watch her,â you answered for Jay, âEnjoy your time with __.â You didnât mind watching Hwa, it honestly gave you more time to spend with her. She was always either attached to Jake, __, or Jay. Sometimes with Heeseung and Sunghoon, but mostly with her parents and uncle.Â
Jay pinched your thigh and was ready to protest, but the deed was done. Jake clapped his hands, âThank you so much!â Jake raised his hands in victory, walking towards his room, âIâm getting so pussy drunk tonight.âÂ
âSim Jaeyun!!â Jay snapped, taking a pillow from behind him and tossing it across the room at Jake, completely missing from Jake sliding to the side and rushing into the room, his laughter being heard from the other side of the door, âFucking prick.âÂ
You giggled, âJay, let him have his fun.âÂ
Jay scoffed, âHe just wants to get her pregnant again.âÂ
You sat up and turned to look at him, âIs that such a bad thing?â you teased, âYouâd be an uncle to two.âÂ
Jay did kind of like the sound of that, mostly if his sister would have a boy and all the things heâd teach that kid and show him how to be cool. But heâd be done for if sheâd had another girl. Jake would probably keel over too.Â
So he waved off the idea, âAs exciting as that sounds, this apartment was only meant for four people, thereâs six living here. We donât have the space for a seventh.âÂ
You crawled on top of him, straddling him, âItâs seven including me when I am here.âÂ
He smirks at you, hands now rubbing up and down your thighs as his cock starts to harden, âBut you donât live here.
You traced your fingers up and down his biceps, âThis is basically my second home,â you lean forward, brushing your nose against his, âSo I am the seventh.â You living here with him didnât sound like a bad idea, he wouldnât have to miss you so much. Youâd easily just move right into his bedroom with him. The idea was so tempting.Â
Jay lifted his face up, brushing his lips against yours, âYou going to help pay the bills?â he whispered, sliding his thumbs up to the hems of your shorts, slipping them under, âSince youâre the seventh here.âÂ
You softly kissed him, then rubbed your nose against his, âNo limits with you, remember? Princess treatment only.âÂ
Jay chucked, taking your neck with his hand and bringing your lips back to his, deepening the kiss. Oh, how bad he wanted to take you back to his bedroom right now. But the front door opening and the sounds of his sister scoffing took that temptation away.Â
âIs this how you felt when you caught me and Jake?â she scrunches her nose, resting Hwa against her hip, âNo wonder youâre always grumpy after, this is gross.âÂ
Jay just shakes his head, rubbing his thumb against your neck, âGet used to it. If I had to deal with it, you have to deal with it too, stinks.âÂ
Hwaâs coos and giggles had Jay smiling, his heart feeling with so much warmth. Jake came out of the room right after, Hwa reaching her arms out for her father, âHello my sweet girl,â Jake cooed at her, bringing her close to his chest and kissing her chubby cheeks, âHow was running errands with mommy?âÂ
âWe did all the fun little shopping!â She said, pinching her daughter's cheeks, âAll that fun stuff and now weâre going to have fun with Uncle Jay and Aunt YN, now arenât we?âÂ
Aunt YN�?
âYeah, a lot more fun than what youâll be having.â Jay teased, lifting you off him and standing from the couch. The moment Hwa saw Jay walking towards her, her little arms stretched out, little fingers flexing into a fist and back out, speaking little babbles as if saying âUncle Jay! Hold me!â He took her in his arms, rubbing his nose to her small one, her giggles filling the apartment.Â
âRight,â his sister said, âYouâll be having a lot more fun than us.âÂ
âObviously, because Uncle Jay and Aunt YN know how to party, isnât that right?âÂ
You were still being thrown for a loop at being called Aunt, but you nodded anyway.Â
Soon enough it was just the three of you in the apartment. Both you and Jay sat on the floor with Hwa as she played with her building blocks.Â
âAunt YN, huh?â you said, finally deciding to bring it up.Â
Jay helped Hwa stack her blocks just for her to push them over and giggle, waiting for him to restock them, âOf course,â he says so casually, âYouâre here enough to be considered one. My sister wouldnât have addressed you as such if she didnât think youâd fit that title. Heeseung and Sunghoon get called Uncle as well. Plus you love Hwa just as much as the rest of us, itâs perfect.âÂ
You felt your heart warming up at the thought of it, being a part of this little family. Hwa looked over to you, as if she could read your mind, and she smiled, holding her hands up to you. Now you know why Jay is always so ready to burn the world for this little girl. You picked her up and placed her in your lap, her little giggles making your heartache in such a loving way. You pulled her hair from her face, and placed kisses on her soft face.Â
Jayâs heart immediately beat faster, his hands dropping the wooden block. Oh, he was in love with you. Seeing the way you were with his niece just now was the final piece to the puzzle for him. Heâs in love with you.Â
âLetâs have a baby.âÂ
You whipped your head up to your boyfriend, âWhat?âÂ
Jayâs eyes dropped from yours to Hwa, watching how her little fingers wrapped around yours, âDid I stutter?âÂ
Your face heated up and you awkwardly laughed, âFunny joke, Jay,â you looked back to Hwa, holding her tighter, âWeâve only been together for a short while, kind of early to be talking about kids, no?âÂ
Jay moved closer to you, taking your chin between his fingers and forcing you to look up at him, âI donât care how short of time Iâve known you, it would be worth all the while having a baby with you.âÂ
You just smile at him, âJay, give us a bit more time, we can discuss having children down the line.â Jay chuckles, kissing your lips then sitting back down, âBesides,â you sigh, âYou still need to meet my parents.âÂ
Ah, the parents. The two people who do nothing but give you hell. Jayâs face of pure irritation was on display, showing you how he didnât like the idea, but he knew it was important to you, so he relaxed his face with a sigh, âName when and where baby, Iâll be there.âÂ
You nodded, making a mental note to call your parents later, being distracted by little Hwa and her yawns, her trying to force her eyes to stay open.Â
âI think itâs time for someoneâs bedtime,â Jay whispers, taking Hwa from you, âIâll go put her down.âÂ
Jay disappeared into Jakeâs and __ bedroom and returned back into the living room just as quickly, carefully shutting the bedroom door behind him. Jay hasnât been able to get the image of you pregnant with his child out of his head ever since he mentioned it. And oh man, did the picture look sexy. Jay started to realize why Jake felt the way he did about his sister because itâs the way heâs feeling about you.Â
It made him hard, truly did. His shorts were growing tighter against him. His eyes were glued to your mouth and how your lips relaxed into a soft pout as you stared off at TV. Jay started palming himself and dropped down onto the couch, âHey, babe?â You turned and looked at him, heat flushing your entire body. Jay barely had sat down on the couch and already had his shorts and boxers pulled down, hand pumping his cock, âWe have a problem,â Jay gasped at his own strokes, âI need you to fix it, got too horny thinking how sexy youâd look with my baby in you.â Your mouth watered and rubbed your thighs together. You loved how pretty his hand looked as it rose up and down his shaft, how his veins popped out. Taking notice of how when his hand reached the top, precum would slowly pump out the tip and leak down the side, âCome suck me off, princess, be a good girl for daddy.âÂ
You didnât even have to think twice before you fell to your knees and took his length in your hand, tongue stretched out and flatting against the head, licking up the dripping precum. Jay hissed, flinging his head back against the couch, âDonât tease me,â he warns, hand getting tangled up in your hair, âBe a good girl and Iâll fuck you soââ his words were cut off by you taking him fully in your mouth, your nose touching his pelvis, âHoly fuck baby.âÂ
His fingers clenched tighter in your hair, moving with the motion of you bobbing your head. Jay forced his head down, mouth slacked and panting, watching how your perfect mouth sucked him so good. It was driving him insane. Mostly when youâd flatten your tongue to take more of him down your throat, your gag reflex sending vibrations onto him. Jay was definitely jealous of whoever you gave head to first, because whoever that man was got to experience pure heaven firsthand.Â
His hair was starting to fall into his face, his free hand reaching up and pulling it back, giving him back his direct line of sight to look at you, only to be surprised at already seeing you staring back at him. âOh, fuck,â he hissed, loving the tears that swelled in your eyes and how you batted them at him, not slowing down your pace at all.Â
You were going crazy at seeing how blown out his pupils were, how they looked down at you with such pleasure and as if you were the one who put the stars in the sky. Youâve never had a man look at you like this, with so much want and need and pleasure. He has such as much effect on you as you have on him.Â
âFuck, princess,â he moans, âJust like that, yeahâfuckâjust like that.â This was the best head heâs ever received, and it pissed him off at how fast he was fixing to cum, wanting to relish more of the warmth your mouth gave him but at the same time wanting that release. He was so back and forth, but to his dismay, his cock twitched and threatened to shoot his load, âIâm fixing to cum babe,â he whispers, pressing your head down onto him, âIâm cumming.âÂ
His warm seed shot at the back of your throat, your tongue still rubbing against his shaft as he bucked his hips slowly, chasing out his high.Â
Once he came by from reality, he pulled your hair, forcing you off his dick and to look at him, âDid you swallow?â you opened your mouth and stuck your tongue out, showing his cum nowhere in sight, âGood fucking girl.â He continued to yank you by your hair, pulling you up into his lap and pressing his lips to yours in a kiss, âWanna head to your apartment once Jake and my sister return? I want to fuck you and be as loud as possible.âÂ
You nodded, feeling your panties continue to soak from your juices. You prayed for them to get back faster.Â
â
Jay bounced his leg, not out of nervousness, but pure anger. Your parents sat across from the two of you, eating their dinner like you two werenât even in the same restaurant as them. The plan was to meet your parents at this restaurantâthat your father choseâat six thirty. You and Jay arrived thirty minutes earlier so your parents wouldnât have to wait but saw they already arrived and ordered their meal. So now you and Jay sat in silence, waiting for your meals to arrive.Â
âWould it have killed you to wait for us?â you said with cool calm, making sure the ice that your words were laced with hit them hard, âIf you were showing up early you could have called me.âÂ
Your mother glanced up at you, eyes somewhat apologetic, but still filled with no care whatsoever, âYN, honey, you know your father runs a tight schedule. He has a lot of things to do.âÂ
âItâs Saturday,â you hissed, âLast time I checked, Dad has the weekends off.âÂ
Your father dropped his fork onto the plate, piercing his eyes at you, âI am a very busy man, YN. Youâre lucky we agreed to this dinner tonight.â Jay locked his jaw and clenched his fingers into his slacks, who the fuck does this man think he is? âBut, this is for you, so I apologize for arriving early and ordering before you two arrived. Honestly, I just wanted to enjoy my meal before we⊠discuss.âÂ
Yeah, discuss my fist plowing through your fucking teeth, old man.Â
Jay was trying to keep calm, to keep a good poker face. These were your parents, he needed to be on his best behavior for you, mostly with how youâve told them how they both are. Jay fully understands now why you try so hard for them, they have such high standards.Â
Your father took one last bite of his meal and wiped his face with his napkin, âSo, Jay, was it? Tell me about yourself.âÂ
Here we goâŠ
Jay took a deep breath, feeling calmer after feeling your hand rest on his knee, âYes sir, I grew up in a smaller town about an hour from here. I own and run a restaurant and work part-time with my best friend at hisââÂ
Your father waved him off, âI already know that bullshit, I meant tell me something about yourself that would help make me believe youâre good enough for my daughter?âÂ
Excuse me?
Jay stared blankly at him, âI donât quite understand what you mean, sir.âÂ
Your father sat back in his chair, crossing his arms, âDo you think youâre actually worthy of my girl? That your little restaurant and part-time job as a software developer would be good enough?âÂ
âWith all respect,â Jay said leaning forward, resting his elbows on the table and clasping his hands together, âI made enough money to support your daughter and be financially stable.âÂ
Your father chuckled, âYeah, only because you have your sister and best friends living under the same roof as you, in an apartment, might I add. With your niece living there too. You have support.âÂ
What was he trying to get at here? âI am very close with my family and best friends. It made more sense for us to stay togetherââ
âYN this is exactly why you should have continued going to law school,â your father scoffed, waving off Jay again, âSo you donât end up stuck in a ratty apartment with multiple people.âÂ
âExcuse me?â Jay said as calmly as he could, âMy apartment is anything but ratty.âÂ
Your father kept his gaze on you, âMy daughter only deserves the best, nothing as low as your income and living situations.âÂ
âDad!â you snapped, âThereâs nothing wrong with the amount of money he makes or his living situation.âÂ
Your father shrugged, finally looking at Jay, âYN, he canât even keep his natural hair color,â he pointed a finger at Jayâs blonde-silver hair, âAnd his ears are pierced, is that a type of hooligan you want to see yourself with? Stuck in an apartment with multiple other people and a baby? He wonât be able to support you, mostly when you go back to law school and quit your low job at that gardening shop.âÂ
Jay stood to his feet, fists resting on the table, âWhen she goes back to law school? As in forcing her?âÂ
Your father smirked, âYes, Iâd be paying for it. She needs to follow in my footsteps.âÂ
âBut she doesnât want to,â Jay snarled.Â
Your father sighs, looking at Jay with such disappointment, âYou and your fucked up family wonât ever be good enough for my daughter.âÂ
You quickly grabbed Jayâs arm, using all your strength possible to keep him from walking around the table. Jay was livid. âTalk shit about me all you want, but donât you dare speak ill of my family!âÂ
âJongseong,â You called for him, your voice being enough to force him to sit back down in the chair.Â
âI am in love with your daughter,â Jay said calmly and your heart stopped, he loved you? It wasnât the way he wanted to confess his love for you, but he was desperate to have some advantage over your father, to prove himself, âI may not make millions, but I make enough to give her the life she wants, a life filled with happiness and no worries. I will always support her dreams and protect her with my life and it goes the same for my family, they love and adore her. I may not have a big fancy house, but I donât want that. I love the little apartment I share with my sister, my niece, and my best friends. I wouldnât ask for a better place or people to live with, and if that apartment is where YN wants to spend the rest of her life in, Iâd be more than willing to make that happen, and if she wants to be a florist and own her own shop? Iâd spend every drop of money I earn to build her a shop.âÂ
You slid your hand down to his hand, twisting your fingers with his and squeezing his hand. Jay looks at you and gives you a small smile, rubbing his thumb over the top of your hand, âI love her, so much. No amount of money or where she came from will ever change that. Sheâs my soulmate, I am lucky to have her.âÂ
Your motherâs heart was skipping a beat, face softened at the two of you. She quickly looks over at your father, placing a hand on his bicep, âDear, they are happy.âÂ
Jay looks back at your father with pleading eyes.Â
âNo,â he said with a stern voice, âLove isnât enough. Not when itâs clearly obvious he only wants whatâs between her legs to whore aboutââÂ
You werenât able to stop Jay this time. He moved too fast for you to even register what was happening. One moment your father was sitting in his chair, the next he was on the floor, Jay on top of him with his fist connecting to your father's face.Â
ThisâŠThis was Jayâs protection. Youâve heard the stories of how Jay has fought multiple guys growing up when theyâve hurt or talked ill of his sister and friends. Jay was a protector and stood by it.Â
But this time was different, this was your father he was beating the shit out of, not some random boy on the street.Â
âJay!â you yelled, rushing to him and grabbing his shoulders to pull him back, âStop!âÂ
Jay lifted his fist up, ready to throw another punch but stopped because you asked him to. He took a few deep breaths, staring at your father's bloody nose, âDonât speak about her like that ever again.âÂ
Your father just smirks, grabbing a handful of Jayâs dress shirt and using all his strength to punch Jay back in the face, the ring your father always wore cutting a gash on Jayâs cheek.Â
Jay moved to hit him again, but your cries and hands pulling and pleading with him to stop forced him to stand up and back away. His hands found home on your waist and pulled you close to his chest, eyes burning holes in your father.Â
He stood up with the help of your mother, wiping away the blood from his nose with his sleeve, âNo daughter of mine will date such a delinquent! Iâll have his restaurant shut down!âÂ
You pushed Jay off you and stormed to your father, digging your index finger into his chest, âI love that delinquent and I will continue to date him with or without your permission. And you wonât do such a thing as close his restaurant. I know about your dirty deeds as a lawyer, Iâll expose your bullshit so fast!â
âYou wouldnât dare,â your father pressed.Â
âFucking try me.â you spat, stepping away from him and giving your mother one last look with apologetic eyes, and walking away, pulling Jay behind you.Â
She loves me??? She loves meâŠ
Jay couldnât believe it, âYou love me?âÂ
You pulled him out of the restaurant and let go of his hand, âTake me home.âÂ
Jay followed behind you, knowing you were anything but happy right now, âBaby, letâs talkââÂ
âTake. Me. Home.â You stood at the passenger side door of his car, hand on the handle waiting for him to unlock it.Â
Jay felt his heart sink, scared shitless about what was to come. He brushed your hand out of the way, unlocked the door, and opened it for you, closing it as soon as you got in.Â
He just heard you say you loved him indirectly, and now he was terrified he was about to never hear you fully say it to him.Â
â
The ride back to your apartment was silent, and with each trembling step up the stairs to your front door, Jay grew more scared. Heâs never been more scared of anything in his entire life. Losing you? it would end him.Â
He took you leaving the door open as you walked in as a good sign that he was welcome to come in, so he did. Carefully closing the door behind him and locking it, his hands sweaty as he opens his mouth but no words come out. He knew he had to say somethingâanything.Â
You disappeared to the bathroom and returned back out with a first aid kit, âSit down, please.âÂ
Jay nods, pulling the kitchen table chair out and sitting down, watching you with careful eyes as you pull a chair up closer to him, opening the first aid kit and pulling out some ointment, alcohol wipes, and a bandaid.Â
You cleaned your hands off and then grabbed another wipe, bringing it to Jayâs cheek and softly dabbing at the cut, âHe got me pretty good, didnât he?â Jay said, trying to make light of the situation, his smile only fading when he saw you werenât entertaining it. You continued to clean up the wound, dabbing the ointment on the cut and carefully sticking the bandaid to his cheek. He grabbed your wrist before you could move away from him, âBaby, talk to me. Please.âÂ
You looked into his cocoa eyes, âYou hit my father.â You pulled your wrist from his grasp, closing the kit and standing up walking back to the living room.Â
âWhat was I supposed to do, YN?â He scoffs, chasing after you, âLet him continue to speak about you like that? To let him talk about my family like that?âÂ
You turned to face him, âYou could have used your words, not your fists.âÂ
âRight,â Jay chuckles, âBecause talking to him was doing so much.âÂ
You knew how your father was, words never meant shit to him. It was always about the money and status. Your father knew using his words was going to be enough to piss off Jay, itâs why he did it, more so in the hopes it would get you to see Jay wasnât worth it and come back home and fall into the nice pretty line he wants you to walk. You hated that line.
âYou donât understand!â you shouted, âHe could ruin your entire life!âÂ
âI donât give a damn about that!â Jay snapped back, âI know who I am! I have everything I already need and if he decides to try and fuck that over? I say let him try.âÂ
You run your hands through your long hair, getting more stressed by the minute, âI just wanted tonight to go perfect. I wanted my family to see I was happy that I was okay and prayed my father would see that and it would be enough.âÂ
Jay took a step closer to you, brushing his fingers down your cheek, but you took a step back, âWas happy? Was okay? Are you saying you arenât?â Jay felt like he had the world on his shoulders weighing him down, ready to crush him into the ground.Â
You shrugged, crossing your arms over your chest and hugging yourself. You didnât know what else to say at this moment. All you wanted was to prove to your family you were perfectly well off without their help, that Jay was who you wanted and nothing would change it. But Jay letting his emotions get the best of himâŠ
âPlease donât leave me,â he was quick to say, your eyes widening at him, concern on your face that he even thought for a second youâd leave him. Jay was now inches away from you, his hands cupping your face, âI cannot breathe without you. When youâre away from me I feel as if I have no air, that every ounce of it escapes my lungs when youâre not around. I meant it when I said Iâm in love with you. My world would end if I ever lost you.âÂ
You wrap your arms around his waist, pulling him closer to you, âJay,â you whisper, âYouâre not going to lose me all because of a small fight. Youâre stuck with me.â Jay lets out a shaky breath, resting his forehead against yours. He fully understood how Jake felt when he almost lost his sister, how his heart became a pit of despair and ache. âI love you,â you finally said to him, âI donât want to live without you.âÂ
Jay kisses you suddenly, pulling you as close as possible to his body, âI love you. Please donât ever let anyone ever tell you how to live your life,â he said between kisses, âI support you through everything.â
You smile against his lips, âFuck everyone but you, youâre the only one who gets me.âÂ
He smiles back, sliding his hands from your face to your hands, âFuck everyone but you.âÂ
Jay leads you to your bedroom, his lips finding home on yours again the minute he lays you down. His hands gently roamed all over your body as he one by one removed your clothing as your hands removed his.Â
Sex with Jay always left you breathless, but the way he was making love to you right now made you feel dizzy and even more breathless, breathing air into your lungs with each kiss he planted on your lips. Feeling on cloud nine with each thrust he made into you as his hands clasped together with yours and pinned them down against the sheets.Â
He was careful with you, not rough or fast but slow and gentle but still so full of love. He wanted to show you just how much he was in love with you. Yeah rough sex was fucking fantastic, but genuine love-making sex made him feel so whole. Your soft moans of love and pleasure made his body tingle and goosebumps form on his skin. He loved you so fucking much and he prayed you could feel the love he has for you.Â
âI love you,â you whisper to him as if you could read his mind, âI love you.âÂ
Jay squeezed your hands and rocked his hips a tiny bit faster, âI love you. I love you. I love you.âÂ
Jay chanted his love for you the entire night and continued so even after he came and laid against you as you slept.Â
â
Jay pushed his sunglasses back on his face, sweat dripping down his cheeks as he pulled you to him, his arm wrapping around your shoulder and you wrapping your arms around his waist.Â
âIt only took a year,â he said, giving you a big smile, âBut we finally did it.âÂ
âJust in time for the summer too!â Heeseung laughed, wrapping his arm around your shoulder and Jayâs arm, âYNâs Flower and Gifts!â he smiled, âHas a nice ring to it.âÂ
Sunghoon popped up behind you, resting his chin on the top of your head, âJust in time for the wedding too!âÂ
âAinât that the truth,â Jake sighs, â__ was taking way too long to pick out flowers.âÂ
Shotaro glances at Jake, âYou both get married next month?!?âÂ
Jayâs sister pinches Taroâs arm, âListen, I needed the most perfect flowers!! And YN just happens to be the one who is going to give them to me.âÂ
You smile at her, âDamn right!âÂ
âYou should have seen the flowers she took care of at the shop she worked at!â Yunjin said, clapping her hands. âYN was born to be a florist!âÂ
You blushed at your best friend, âStop!âÂ
âNo!â she sang, pulling you away from Jay and into her arms, âIâm so proud of you!âÂ
Itâs been a year since you and Jay started dating. A year since youâve found home within his family. It was crazy, silly, and chaotic, but it was perfect.Â
Not only is Jayâs restaurant as busy as ever and he still worked with Jake part-time too, but he also co-owned your flower shop. When this man said there were no limits with him, he meant it. âI can use your flowers for when we redecorate the restaurant, and we can cater for you when you hold events.â It was the perfect partnership, truly.Â
âDa-Da!â Hwa cooed, her little legs carrying her over to Jake from her grandparent's side. Jake smiled at her and scooped her up into his arms kissing all over her face.Â
âFuck,â Jay sighs, âI still canât believe sheâs already walking and starting to talk.âÂ
âYouâre telling me!â Jake said, pulling his fiancĂ© to his side, âWe canât believe it either.âÂ
âNor the grandparents!â Jayâs mother said, âI remember when the two of you were born, and now youâre both all grown up and I have a grandchild of my own.âÂ
Jay smiled at his mother and father, loving seeing how happy they were for this whole family.Â
Heeseung and Sunghoon watched Jake and __ cuddle Hwa, Sunghoon nudging Jayâs shoulder, âWhen are you two having one?âÂ
Jay shot him a glare, âDonât tempt me.âÂ
You roll your eyes and cling back to your boyfriend, âShould we show them inside?âÂ
He looks down at you, âExcited much?â Â
You held your finger to your lips, âSuper.âÂ
He nods, handing you the keys to the front door.Â
âEveryone!â you shout at your family, âI welcome you to YNâs Flower and Gifts!â you unlocked the doors and flung them open, leading them inside the shop.Â
With eyes wide and smiles on their faces, they each trailed around the shop, giving you their congrats and hugs. Jake, __, and Hwa looked around for flowers for their wedding and it honestly made you really happy that youâd have some big part of their wedding.Â
Jay wrapped his arms around you, laying your head on his chest, âIâm proud of you, ya know,â he said, squeezing you tightly, âThis was all you.âÂ
You giggled, squeezing him back. You take a look at every single person in your shop, and your heart fills with so much love, âWas this crazy? Are we crazy?â You couldnât help but feel a bit crazy. Everything you could have wanted came true, how could you not feel crazy?
Jay lifted his sunglasses up, pulling back his hair as they rested atop his head, âBaby, I donât feel so crazy when youâre around.â He took your chin between his fingers and had you look up at him, âI love you.âÂ
You smiled, standing up on your tiptoes to reach his lips. Maybe you werenât so crazy after all.
âtags: @kangnina @ikeuverse @alvojake @jwnghyuns @iicehoon @lhspeachie @kwiwin @jaeyunq @enhaz1 @wondipity @lilyuwon @arunabrak @seunghancore @aileeeeeeeeeeeee @brownsugarbaybee @nshmrarki @rapmonie2047 @all4moi @all4yoi @heerinnie @lhsvibez @sunghoonmybf @jeiluvey @parksunghoonsgf @velvtcherie @strawberrywonz @in-somnias-world @heexzbae @luvnicho @zeeloveshee @simjyunnie @niniissus @sk8terhoons @pockettwinzz @honeybunnee @simjaeyunramyeons @fakeuwus @eneiyri
most to least likely in enhypen to have a daddy kink? <3
Fatherless Behaviour: Enha Edition
Cw: Language, nsfw, +18, daddy kink, ddlg themes, edging, breeding kink
Now you're speaking my language
â âč - Jay
If there's one thing that everyone in his life is certain of, its that Jay is wholeheartedly and irrevocably obsessed with caring for his girl. It came natural for him to refill your water bottles when you found yourself immersed in your study notes during odd hours of the day; the way he'd tuck your braids behind your ear when you were reading on the couch. It even manifested in him cooking for you, a routine that you both fell ceremoniously into the very moment you moved into his apartment.
You watch from your position by the counter as your boyfriend meticulously plates his obscenely artistic rendition of scallops and risotto. His brows are furrowed and his pert lips are clamped shut as he focuses on work. His exposed arms lend you the sinful view of your nail marks left from when he beant you over the second you arrived after work. Promising to eat you out after you both had an actual meal.
He's so incredibly in charge as he glides about the kitchen, and you only realize far too late that Jongseong was already placing your food in front of you while he stood at a safe distance on the other side of the island separating you both.
"Dinner's served, Princess- put the phone down yeah?" You click your phone off, feeling your stomach erupt into a swarm of moths, butterflies and every other winged creature that exists.
"You spoil me." You tease, suddenly feeling uninterested in eating anything that wasn't him.
"You deserve to be spoilt." He says with a light shrug, as he turns to busy himself with cleaning up. You don't ask if he's going to join you because he rarely ever does, always concerned with making sure you eat first.
"My friend's say you spoil me too much-" you look down at your food while innocently picking and prodding at your meal.
"Might as well call you 'Daddy', they said," a clash of dishes in the sink invite a flurry of coughs from Jongseong who raises his head. His eyebrow is quirked.
"Should I?" You ask, completely enamored with the way he leans back against the counter with his arms folded as if he were humoring you, "Should you what?"
"Call you that?"
"I dont suppose any human being would like to be called 'That'" Jongseong says, striding slowly towards you with his hands behind his back. "Be more specifc. What do you wanna call me-"
"I dont feel like having supper right now," your eyes crinkle with mischief, "Daddy." The second those words leave your mouth, solidifying a new web in your already intricate relationship, Jongseong stands behind you. His front is pressed against your back. You're almost in risk of slipping off the barstool but he has you- hand wrapped around your front, pulling you backwards until his cock is firmly pressed into your back, letting you know just how turned on he actually is.
You must not be in the mood to eat dinner since trouble is the only thing you apparently seek.
"Fuck dinner, since apparently you're concerned with something else." He lowers his face to your hair, rubbing his hand along your face like his most coveted possession. "Tell Daddy what else your friends say about us..."
â âč - Sunghoon
It'd happen quite unceremoniously, quite surprisingly while Sunghoon is reclined against the headboard.
Reading.
Reading with his book in his one hand, while the other is splayed around you, fingering you to dangerous orgasm. Your legs are forced open by the invisible weight of his words alone, warning you of the consequences if you dared snap your legs shut while he's busy 'taking care of you,'
"S-Sunghoon, please..."
You should have cum 15 minutes ago, when you innocently asked your boyfriend for a little bit of attention away from his book. 5 chapters later and Sunghoon was still lazily rubbing at your clit, playing with your wetness while his brows furrowed as he followed along with the story.
Sunghoon snickered along with whatever he encountered in those inky pages while you lay in between his legs, utterly damaged. Your hips stuttered upwards as his long fingers swiped across your clit once more. A gasp wrenched itself from your throat.
"F-Fuck, D-Daddy I'm gonna cum-"
Its the first time his head snaps away from the book and he watches with wide eyes as you come undone on his fingers. He's far too enamoured to stop you, far too enamoured to keep you from slipping over the edge any longer. Sunghoon's face is absolute stone, his parted lips being the only indication that he's even slightly surprised.
"U-Uh, I'm sorry- it just sorta slipped out-" before you could ever even finish your sentence, Sunghoon is pushing you off his lap, discarding his book on the floor.
"Hoonie- what're you-"
"Getting rid of your birth control." He answers back robotcually.
"Didn't know you were trying to get pregnant but I'm down if you're down."
He flushes your birth control down the drain.
â âč - Heeseung
Kink had been a revolving door of conversation between you and Heeseung since the very moment you had sex. It was not uncommon for you both to randomly bring up sexual topics with each other because you were still in the weird and sticky learning stage of your relationship. Heeseung was especially very vocal about the little things you did that drove his mind into sordid places. It was natural for him to randomly say, "Wait that was so hot," or "Fuck do that again," especially when you found yourself, as you currently were, beant over the kitchen counter.
Heeseung had expressed how attractive he found it when you engaged in domestic activities around the house so in actual fact, you should not be surprised that he had your tits pressed against the cold marble counter and your panties stuffed in your mouth because Heeseung loved how much of a slut it made you look for him. "This is such a pretty dress, baby-" Heeseung is absolutely insatiable as he fists your skirt over your ass, rutting into you like he couldn't bear to be apart from your body.
"The moment I saw you-" He's slurring his words together, so utterly caught in lust and you can feel his drool land on your ass. "The moment I saw you I knew I had be inside you, Princess-"
You'd never been particularly affected by nicknames at the best of sometimes, however, it was something about the way he said it -so natural and cute like he truly believed you were his little princess- that had your inhibitions melting away.
"F-Fuck Daddy-"
"Oh my god, I'm gonna cum-" Heeseungâs hand lands on your back, pressing you further down onto the counter as he cums prematurely inside you. "F-Fuck!" He huffs. "WHY WOULD YOU SAY THAT!? WHERE DID YOU LEARN THAT-"
"Hee, I h-havent cum yet, please-"
He reaches his hand between your bodies, jerking himself off against your folds as he says, "call me daddy again and I'll be ready to fuck you in no time-"
â âč - Jake
While not nearly as much of a ddlg indulger, Jake strikes me as the kind of insatiable boyfriend that constantly has his mind in the gutter. So anything you say, no matter how innocent or veiled in a joke it might seem to be, I feel like Jake would somehow find a way to bring the topic back to sex. Innocent Daddy namedrop included.
He's be laying on the bed tapping away at the screen of his phone utterly consumed by a mobile game and if you ask him whether he completed an errand you asked him to run for you, and he mumbles 'yes' and you immediately reply wiyh "Thanks Daddy,"- yeah, his mind is going to unsavoury places.
Jake would discard his phone to the side, and immediately start undoing the drawstring of his sweatpants.
"What is going on right now?" You'd ask as he pulls you onto his lap, immediately cupping your breasts in his palms with his face buried in your neck.
"Daddy huh?"
"U-Um" He'd force your hips to start moving against his lap, all while whining, "You can't just say stuff like that..."
â âč - Sunoo
You'd have to catch him in the height of an orgasm in order to get any sort of reaction from it. "Oh my god, Im gonna cum," while he's jerking himself off to your tits, and you sinisterly mumble, "Just like that, Daddy-" hed cum on the spot, but only because you're really hot, DEFINITELY not because you elevating him to a posution of sexual power had any wffect on him. He would be sulky immediately after lile, "Why would you say that!?"
"Why did you cum from it, Kim Sunoo."
Otherwise, I don't imagine that's his vibe. He gets to call you baby, but he does NOT wanna be called Daddy half the time.
â âč - Jungwon
He feels like a weird in-between. He'd choke on his water if you whispered, 'Thanks Daddy,' in his ear at one of the team Dinner's but I can imagine him being just as turned on by you calling him baby too.
He falls apart later on when you're both together, alone. Kissing up the side of your neck while he needlessly mumbles, "Call me that again, please?" More wet kisses. "Call me daddy again?"
live for this on god
the enha universe (masterlist)
welcome, to the enha universe!Â
in this universe, the seven boys live their own respective lives as normal everyday people. a fuckboy, a boss, a roommate, a stepbrother, a best friend, a co-worker and a bad boy. follow them as they have fun, learn, grow, break some poor hearts and of course fall in love⊠with you.
warning/genre; fluffffff! angst! crack! super cliched storylines! smut & perhaps kinky shit đ€Ș (obviously only for hyung line!)Â
the hyung line kinks
the enha universe spoilers
the enha universe asks
!latest update! eight (niki nishimura)
Keep reading
Gawd damn-
i want him so bad itâs not healthy anymore
likeeeee thats my manđ«Š
Yes đ
(Iâm a little mixed {{like mixed feelings}} because- itâs literally twtâ one wrong move and youâre offending someone đđđ)
should i make an nsfw acc for enha on x?
AAAAA NO I ACTUALLY CRIED AT THE END đđđ
Please, Please, Please | P.JS
criminal!jay x good girl!reader
warnings: angst, slight fluff, smut (mdni), multiple sex scenes, unprotected sex, oral (m&f rec.), multiple orgasms, fingering, car sex, cliffside bj, white dragon, slightly toxic!jay at the beginning, possessive, crime (obvs), mentions of robbery, theft, guns, money laundering, violence, blood, overall criminal behaviour from multiple parties, tough love, confrontation, touch her and you'll die, anything else lmk!
w.c: 34k (sorry)
synopsis: synopsis: visiting your tax fraudulent dad in prison and nothing was new, except the boy being carted in to the police station in cuffs. when you follow your connection on a reckless whim, it opens you up to a world filled with crime, love, and realisations about who you are.
a/n: hi! this was heavily anticipated and i went back and forth on this for a long time regarding making it a series or keeping it a one shot. In the end, i decided to make it just one thing. i really do hope you like it, i tried to set the pace as best i could with the little wordcount blr will give me so i am praying it's okay! anyway, enjoy! as always, reblogs, comments, etc etc are all appreciated and loved <3
âNow be a good girl for me, Y/N,â your dad gushes, his eyes tired and hand placed against the glass. He looks like half the man he was before stepping into this place.
The greyness of the prison seems to leech the colour from everything around it, leaving only the stark contrasts of shadows and light, along with his navy and white uniform. The fluorescent lights inside cast a sickly pallor on your father's face, accentuating the lines of worry and regret etched into his once confident features.
He was a self-made man, once the toast of the town, known for his business acumen and seemingly Midas touch. But behind the facade of success, he had been entangled in a web of deceit. It all began with a seemingly harmless decision to bend the rules - just a little. He had justified it to himself as a necessary measure, a way to keep the business afloat during tough times. It was just a bit of creative accounting, he had thought. But what started as a small indiscretion soon snowballed into a full-blown scheme of tax evasion.
For years, he had hidden his tracks well, moving money through a labyrinth of offshore accounts, shell companies, and falsified records. His lifestyle had grown ever more lavish, the fruits of his ill-gotten gains displayed in a sprawling mansion, luxury cars, and vacations to exotic locales. Yet, the more he accumulated, the more paranoid he became, always looking over his shoulder, fearing the day when his carefully constructed house of cards would come crashing down.
And crash it did. An anonymous tip-off to HMRC triggered an investigation that swiftly unravelled the elaborate fraud. The evidence was damning â millions of pounds in unpaid tax, laundered funds, and fraudulent claims. The trial was short and sharp, the verdict inevitable. The judge's gavel fell with finality, marking the end of his freedom and the start of his journey behind bars.Â
Luckily, or unluckily depending on how you view it, he only got five years in prison which is unheard of for someone who committed such a lavish crime with lots of money involved. So far, he has served four and a bit out of five years and is set to come home in 6 months.
However, that freedom is still a while away, and the only way you can see him now is through this thick glass panel, speaking to him through a telephone. The visitation room is grim and impersonal, with rows of metal chairs bolted to the floor, and a cacophony of muffled conversations echoing off the hard surfaces. The phone is cold in your hand, a lifeline to the man who once seemed invincible.
Your dad's prison uniform hangs loosely on his frame, the drab, coarse fabric a far cry from the tailored suits he used to wear. He shifts uncomfortably on the small stool, the shackles around his wrists clinking softly with every movement. Every visit you have with your dad, itâs always the same jargon; âBe a good girlâ, âStay out of troubleâ, or, âDonât be bad like your dad.â Itâs always a useless reminder because, for 20 years of your life, you have never once gotten into bother.
From a young age, you have been the epitome of a model child. You always listen to your parents, excel in school, and never once give them cause for worry. Your teachers often remarked on your diligence and kindness, always quick to help a struggling classmate or volunteer for a school project. While other kids might have dabbled in teenage rebellion, you stayed focused, driven by an internal compass that always pointed towards doing the right thing.
You are just so scared of disappointing your father.
Even at University, you stay away from parties and stay focused on keeping your head straight, making friends with people of similar character to you - if they even are still your friends. Most of them dipped on you once your father got convicted, not wishing to be associated with a criminalâs daughter, or more importantly, a girl with no money.
Little did they know that you were very much still wealthy thanks to your dadâs extra-sneaky antics.
Now, sitting across from your father in the sterile confines of the prison, you feel a pang of sorrow mixed with frustration. His reminders to stay out of trouble feel almost insulting, a stark contrast to the reality of your life. You have always been the one to shoulder responsibilities, to pick up the pieces and move forward.
Sometimes, you wish you could just do something out of character, something others would deem reckless.
âDad, Iâve never been in trouble,â you remind him gently, trying to hide the sting of your words. âIâve always been a good girl, remember?â To a fault, sometimes.
He sighs, the weight of his guilt evident in his tired eyes. âI know, Y/N. I justâŠI worry about you. I donât want you to end up like me.â
âYou donât have to worry,â you say firmly. âIâm not you. You made it perfectly clear the path I need to be on.â
Your words sting into his chest, but his face never shows it. Youâre right anyway, you have always lived up to his impossible expectations. Instead, he nods and relents, dropping the subject altogether. Just in time, too, because the guard quickly steps in to wrap up the visit.
âTimeâs up,â the guard announces, his tone brisk and indifferent.
You both hesitate for a moment, savouring the last few seconds before the separation. âI love you, Dad,â you say, your voice soft but resolute.
âI love you too, Y/N. Be strong,â he replies, his hand still pressed against the glass.
With a final nod, you place the phone back on the hook and stand up, feeling the weight of the situation pressing down on you as you walk away. The sound of the door buzzing open and then locking behind you is a harsh reminder of the reality you both face.
Stepping out of the visiting room, a tumult of emotions surges within you - sadness, frustration, and a lingering sense of helplessness. Each step feels heavy, as if the burdens of your father's past are pressing down on your shoulders. The overhead lights in the corridor cast a stark, cold glow, reflecting off the polished linoleum floor and intensifying the sterile atmosphere of the prison. You hate it here, trying to avoid the place as much as possible, only visiting your dad maybe once every five months.
Itâs not that you donât love him but this place isnât built for someone like you.
As you navigate the maze of hallways to head to the exit, a sudden commotion draws your attention. Two guards are escorting a man into the facility, his wrists bound behind his back with handcuffs. He walks with a defiant swagger, despite the firm grips on his arms. His black slacks and tight-fitted black polo shirt cling to his muscular frame, giving him an air of unrefined power. His hair, meticulously gelled back, now shows signs of disarray from the rough handling, with a few rebellious strands falling across his forehead.
"Fucking calm down, I'm walking with you," he growls, his voice dripping with sarcasm and defiance. The deep timbre of his words reverberates through the corridor, causing a ripple of tension among the guards and onlookers.Â
You pause, momentarily taken aback by the scene unfolding before you. The man's audacity and the raw edge in his voice contrast sharply with the controlled environment of the prison, sparking an unexpected intrigue. Certain prisoners cause scenes, but never have you seen it up close, only hearing about it through the words of your father.
As the guards march him up the corridor, his dark eyes lock onto yours for a brief moment. His face is strikingly beautiful - dark eyebrows framing his symmetrical face and dangerous eyes that seem to pierce right through you. He looks more like a model than a felon, and the incongruity of his appearance in this setting sends a jolt through your system.
His gaze trails down your body as he gets closer to you, slow and deliberate, igniting a rush of heat that spreads from your cheeks to your core. His eyes linger on your curves, and you notice the way he licks his lips, a predatory smile playing at the corners of his mouth. The intensity of his attention makes your breath catch, and for a moment, the world narrows down to just the two of you in this stark, fluorescent-lit hallway.
âHey, darlinâ, howâs it going?â he asks as he passes, his tone nonchalant but menacing, the kind of menacing that makes your pulse quicken and your skin tingle.
âMove along,â one of the guards snaps, shoving him forward. But even as they push him into a room, he cranes his neck to keep you in his sight for as long as possible. His eyes burn with defiance and amusement, and he smirks, the expression filled with a dangerous charm that leaves you momentarily breathless.
The door slams shut behind him, and the spell is broken. Youâre left standing in the corridor, your heart racing and your mind reeling from the unexpected encounter. The raw magnetism of his presence lingers in the air, intertwining with the myriad of emotions already churning within you.
âMaâam, please come this way,â a guard gestures for you to step through the gated door. Numbly, you follow his direction, your mind still preoccupied with the intensity of those dark eyes.
You step through the gate, hearing the metallic clink as it locks behind you. Making your way to the front desk, you feel a strange mix of adrenaline and bewilderment coursing through you. You remove your visitorâs badge and place it on the desk, your fingers lingering on the smooth plastic for a moment.
âWho was that?â you ask, trying to sound casual, though your voice betrays a hint of the curiosity you feel.
The guard behind the desk, a burly man with a no-nonsense demeanour, looks up from his paperwork. âPark Jongseong,â he replies, his tone matter-of-fact. âHe's a series regular here. It's best not to catch his attention; he eats girls like you for dinner.â
You swallow hard, the guardâs words sending a shiver down your spine. âEats girls like me for dinner?â you repeat, more to yourself than to him, the gravity of the warning sinking in.
âYeah,â the guard nods, his expression grim. âHeâs got a reputation. Charismatic, but dangerous. You donât want to be on his radar.â
You nod, thanking the guard before turning to leave. The encounter with Park Jongseong, brief as it was, has left a deep impression. You replay the guardâs words in your mind, a cautionary tale that echoes with the reality of the world youâve just stepped out of.
But youâre so over listening to everyoneâs advice, allowing your body to rule your head for a moment. Maybe this is your chance to break free from the shackles of your life and enter a new world of freedom.
Even if it is with someone behind bars.
_____
You sit in the visiting room, the sterile environment starkly contrasting with the elegance of your outfit. You're wearing a pastel blue Versace dress, its delicate fabric clinging to your figure in all the right places, the intricate design showcasing a blend of sophistication and subtle allure. The dress features a fitted bodice with delicate lace details, the skirt flowing gracefully to just above your knees. The soft, cool hue of the dress enhances the warmth of your skin and the high neckline adds an air of modesty.
Your heartbeat feels like a defining accessory, pounding in your chest, a constant reminder of your anticipation. Normally, visiting your father doesnât elicit such a reaction - your heart maintains a steady rhythm, the meetings imbued with sadness and routine.Â
But today is different. Today, you aren't here to see your father. You're waiting for the man who shared a fleeting moment with you two weeks ago, the memory of his intense gaze still fresh in your mind.
The minutes tick by slowly, each one amplifying the tension coursing through you. Your eyes keep darting to the door, waiting for it to open and reveal the man whose presence had left such an indelible mark on you. The guards move about their routines, the clinking of keys and distant echoes of conversations creating a backdrop to your restless thoughts.
This is a bad idea, probably your most foolish one, but you had to see him just once more to truly understand the leap your heart performed when you looked at him for the first time. You have never gone against your fatherâs wishes of staying out of trouble, but this was an itch you couldnât ignore, the pull towards the felon all too real.
Your emotions are a chaotic cocktail of anticipation, fear, and excitement. The adrenaline rush is almost dizzying, your heart pounding so hard you can feel it in your throat. The logical part of your brain is screaming at you to leave, to not get involved with someone so dangerous, but the other part - the part that felt an inexplicable connection - canât bear the thought of walking away without understanding what it is about him that draws you in so powerfully.
You glance down at your hands, noticing how they tremble slightly. You clasp them together in your lap, trying to steady yourself. The fabric of your dress feels soft and cool against your skin, a contrast to the heat coursing through your veins. You shift in your seat, trying to calm your racing thoughts, but every small sound in the room heightens your awareness, keeping you on edge.
As each second drags on, the waiting becomes almost unbearable. Doubts creep in - what if he doesnât remember you? What if this was all just a meaningless encounter for him? But then you recall the intensity in his eyes, the way he looked at you like you were the only person in the room, so why wouldnât he remember you?
You tell yourself that this is more than simply gratifying a passing curiosity; it's about understanding the electrifying connection you felt. It's about breaking free, even if only for a moment, from the bounds of your usual, routine existence.
Your fatherâs voice echoes in your mind, warning you about the dangers of straying from the straight and narrow path. Youâve always been the good girl, the one who follows the rules, but something about Park Jongseong makes you want to throw caution to the wind. Thereâs a thrilling allure in the forbidden, in stepping outside your comfort zone to explore the unknown.
When the buzzer sounds around the room, you jump slightly even though you have heard that klaxon indicating the unlocking of the door numerous times over the years. But this isnât a polite chit-chat with your dad; this is a meeting with a man whose crimes you don't know the extent of, nor how dangerous he truly is, all because you got fanny flutters.
The prisoners filter through, each one going to their respective visitors with longing and hurried speed. Then, Jongseong waltzes in, his hands cuffed in front of him. His navy, ill-fitted trousers, paired with a tight white v-neck that showcases just enough of his chest to let your imagination run wild and non-styled hair give him a dishevelled yet irresistibly handsome appearance. His dark eyes scan the room, exuding a sense of confidence and dominance.
You shift in your seat, crossing your legs over as you try to compose yourself and stop tears from escaping down your legs. Prison boys have never done anything for you, but Jongseong is on another level of attraction.
The room feels hotter, the air thicker, as your anxiety spikes like youâre playing a brutal game of emotional volleyball and you are always on the losing side. Jongseong whispers something to the guard beside him, his voice low and smooth but indecipherable. The guard glances your way, then points directly at you, making your heart race even faster, like youâre suddenly under the spotlight of an interrogation room.
Jongseongâs eyes land on you, and a smug smile spreads across his face. There's a flicker of surprise and confusion flashing across his features, but it quickly vanishes, replaced by that same predatory gleam you remember. He strides over to you with a casual arrogance, his every movement exuding confidence.
As he reaches the booth, he throws himself into the seat opposite you, the long chain connecting his hands and feet skate along the floor. He leans back, his eyes never leaving yours, the cuffs around his wrists clinking softly with the movement. The intensity of his gaze makes you feel as if the rest of the room has faded away, leaving just the two of you in this charged, electric moment.
Reaching for the phone, he places it against his ear and waits for you, chewing his gum leisurely, his eyebrows raised in an expectant arch. Your body remains still, paralysed by the magnetism of his presence, his pupils like black holes, sucking you into his hold. For a few beats of your heart, you canât move, his gaze pinning you in place with an almost hypnotic intensity.
Finally, you gather the courage to lift the receiver, your hand trembling slightly as you bring it to your ear. The action feels monumental, the weight of the phone a tangible connection between you and the enigmatic man before you. As soon as you do, Jongseong smirks, leaning his elbows casually on the ledge behind the glass panel.
âNow who are you?â he inquires, devouring your appearance with trailing glances.
â...My name is Y/N,â you reply so softly he almost doesnât catch it coming through the receiver.Â
"Well, Y/N, to what do I owe the pleasure?" He drawls, his voice a low, lazy murmur tinged with amusement. His eyes gleam with a mix of curiosity and wickedness, and the leer never leaves his face.
You remain silent, the words caught in your throat as you grapple with the swirl of emotions and thoughts racing through your mind. His half grin widens and he tilts his head slightly, still chewing his gum with a slow, deliberate rhythm.
âOkay, let me rephrase,â he says, his tone shifting to a mockingly thoughtful one. âWhat is a little lamb like you, requesting to see a big bad wolf like me for? Do we know each other?â
The question hangs in the air, heavy and charged, his eyes narrowing slightly as he studies your reaction. You can feel the pulse of your heartbeat in your ears, a relentless drum that amplifies the tension between you. His words, laced with a blend of sarcasm and genuine intrigue, challenge you to respond and also hurt your chest a smidge. You have been thinking about this man who you saw for a maximum of 20 seconds for the past fortnight, dreaming about him and finding ways to get a visitorâs badge to see him and you probably havenât passed his mind once.
Taking a deep breath, you find your voice, albeit shaky. âNoâŠwe donât know one another,â you admit, suddenly realising the insanity of this whole ordeal. You begin to bite your lip and inwardly curse yourself for being so reckless.
âThen why are you here? ... Fuck, are you the lawyer they keep trying to pounce on me?â The sudden defensiveness in his words gets your attention, the sharpness of his voice creating a tremble in your legs. He is slowly putting his guard up the more he looks over your expensive outfit, drawing conclusions about you in his mind as he mistakes you for someone he would rather jab himself in the eye than see.
Quickly, your eyes widen, and you shake your hand up in defence. âNo, no, no. Iâm not a lawyer,â you explain, rushing the words out of your mouth to halt the wall he is placing between you. âI just-I want to get to know you.â
He pauses, the tension in his posture easing slightly, but his eyes remain wary. âGet to know me?â he repeats, his tone conveying scepticism and enlivened curiosity. âAnd why is that, darlinâ?â
You swallow hard, your heart still racing and now paired with an uncomfortableness in your underwear as he calls you the endearing nickname, his accent filtering through your ears like your favourite song. âI donât know,â you confess, looking down at your lap.Â
Itâs pathetic, you know it, but you donât know why. Well, you know you had to see him because your brain is insufferable and will not let you forget anything of the manâs existence, but that is all the reason you have come to see him, all it took for you to want to delve into his life. If you told him that, he would either see you as pathetic or easy prey.
âYou donât know?â he echoes back to you with a laugh, his body fully unguarded once again. His tongue swipes across his bottom lip. It is at this moment that the penny drops as to who you are, his finger starting to wag as he leans back in the chair with an elated beam on his face.
âYou were here when they carted me in.â The fact sits between you as it kisses a blush over your face in embarrassment, his realisation of your identity now suddenly making you wish that the ground would open up beneath you and swallow you whole. âDid you like what you saw that much, you just had to come see it up close?â
Jongseongâs eyes glint with amusement, the smugness radiating off him like heat waves off asphalt. He leans back further, making himself comfortable, his chains clinking softly against the chair. His body language oozes confidence, the kind that borders on arrogance, and his grin stretches wide, revealing perfectly aligned teeth that contrast heavily with the dark intensity of his gaze.
âLook at you, all flustered,â he teases, his voice dripping with satisfaction. âI mustâve made quite an impression, huh?â
Your mind races, searching for an answer that feels as elusive as he is. He chuckles softly, the sound rich and full, vibrating through the phone line and into your very core. âItâs okay, you donât have to say anything,â he says, his tone almost gentle now. âYour eyes tell me everything I need to know.â
His self-belief is unshakable, a fortress built on years of navigating the rough waters of his life. The smugness in his manner is not just arrogance but a well-honed weapon, a way to keep people at bay while drawing them in. He knows the power he holds, and he wields it with a finesse that leaves you both disarmed and intrigued.
âOkay,â he leans forward again, his face so close to the glass panel that you wish it would disappear, allowing you to admire his features without the glare from the overhead lights as they dance annoyingly on the shield. âLet me tell you a few things about me. My name is Park Jongseong, although you already know that, don't you, darlinâ?âÂ
He pauses, his gaze lingering on you with a disconcerting intensity as you shift uncomfortably under his scrutiny. How else could you have possibly arranged a visit with him? The question flashes across his face, a flicker of confusion in his eyes. After all, as far as he knew, only family could visit him and fuck knows where they are. So how did you manage to worm your way in?
You swallow hard, your throat suddenly dry. He nods knowingly before continuing. "I'm 22, been in and out of here about four times. I love romantic walks on the beach, and before you ask, it was car theft." The words hang in the air, heavy with implication.
His words send a shiver down your spine, a mix of excitement and trepidation. His casual confession answers most of your unspoken questions, including the big one: why he was here. The revelation that he wasnât in for something more sinister like murder eases some of your apprehension. Your heartbeat steadies and you feel a strange sense of relief mixed with the undeniable pull towards him.
The glass between you seems to distort, creating a shimmering mirage. Every word, every glance is charged with electricity. It's reckless, dangerous, but the allure is intoxicating. He studies you, his eyes drinking in your flushed cheeks and trembling lips. Leaning closer, he whispers into the phone, his voice a husky caress, "You're fucking beautiful. I could eat you alive."
The words are a cold reminder of the guard's chilling warning. Yet, instead of fear, you feel a thrill of defiance. Before you can stop yourself, you whisper back, "Why don't you?"
Surprised by your own boldness, you feel your face heat up even more. Jongseongâs eyes widen slightly, a flicker of astonishment crossing his features before a slow, wicked grin spreads across his face. âYouâd like that, huh?â he asks cheekily, poking his tongue to his cheek.
He spots the cross hanging around your neck and shakes his head in disbelief. âDarlinâ, youâre a good girl, I can tell. So why the fuck are you trying to play with me?â
His question hangs in the air, challenging you. You can feel his eyes boring into you, waiting for an answer. The intensity of his gaze, combined with the unexpected boldness that had surged through you moments ago, leaves you speechless for a second.
"I..." you begin, your voice trembling slightly. "I don't know. Maybe because for once, I want to do something reckless. Something just for me."
He chuckles a deep, throaty sound that reverberates through the phone. "Oh, so youâre saying Iâm just for you? That I can give you what you crave?â His voice is dripping in seduction and you are pretty sure youâre dripping on the stool youâre uncomfortably shifting on. âYouâre playing with fire, little lamb. You sure you can handle the heat?"
The challenge in his tone ignites something inside you. You nod slowly, eyes locking onto his. "I'm not afraid of being burnt." You are, in fact, scared of a little heat but the thumping of your heart and the lightness of your head right now is a feeling you want to experience again and again, and you know for certain that the only person in this world that can give you this exhilaration is the criminal in front of you.
Jongseong's eyes hold a captivating potency as he leans in closer, his breath ghosting over the glass. "We'll see about that," he murmurs, a low, dangerous promise. "But be careful what you wish for, darling. Once you step into the fire, there's no turning back." His words hang heavy in the air, a tantalising mix of threat and allure.
Just then, the harsh clang of a metal object against the door shatters the intimate atmosphere. "Visiting time's over!" a guard's voice booms through the room. A wave of disappointment washes over you, a bittersweet pang as the realisation of impending separation hits you hard. Time flew by far too fast and you felt like you didnât even get to scratch the surface of what you wanted this meeting to be
The playful arrogance in his eyes softens, replaced by a vulnerability you hadn't expected. "Hey," he begins gently, his voice a stark contrast to his usual bravado. "I'm out in three months." The words hang suspended in the air, a promise that ignites a spark of hope within you. âWait for me, yeah?â he asks, his eyes searching yours for an answer. Despite the softness, there's a flicker of his usual cockiness in his gaze, as if he already knows your answer. âCome on, you know you want to. Iâm worth it.â
You nod, your throat too tight to speak. The guardâs voice booms again, and you know you have to go. The brute of a man is already making his way over to Jongseong to escort him back to his cell. Jongseong stands up, still holding the phone, and smiles a mock-innocent grin at you.
âTake care, darlinâ,â he says, his voice a soft caress that sends shivers down your spine. âAnd donât go fucking around while Iâm gone. Iâd hate to have to get done for murder.â A mischievous glint dances in his eyes, a reminder of the man he is and that he has made you his own from here on out.
His words are a blend of a promise and a threat, leaving you breathless. The guard finally reaches him, placing a firm hand on his shoulder and pulling him back. Jongseong doesnât resist, but his eyes stay locked on yours until the last possible moment, a smirk playing on his lips.
As the guard leads him away, you feel a mix of emotions swirling within you - excitement, trepidation, and a strange sense of belonging. The connection between you and Jongseong is undeniable, and the anticipation of whatâs to come only heightens the tension.Â
You hang up the phone and stand, your legs feeling unsteady. As you make your way out of the visiting room, the reality of your decision settles over you. Jongseong has already left an indelible mark on your heart. And as much as he has claimed you, you realise with a surge of confidence that you have claimed him too.
And youâll patiently wait as long as you have to.
_____
The sun blazes overhead, its subtle heat beating down as you sit on the hood of your car outside the prison gates. Your outfit is casual yet sexy: a form-fitting red tank top with mesh detailing paired with high-waisted denim shorts that accentuate your curves, knowing Jongseong will appreciate the effort. Youâve learned a lot about him over the past three months through your almost daily phone calls. Conversations about life, likes, dislikes, and everything in between have built a connection that transcends the barriers of the prison walls.
The memories of those short but impactful conversations play through your mind as you wait. Jongseong's deep voice details his favourite songs, the foods he craves, and the gossip around the cell blocks. You remember laughing together over his stubborn insistence that dark chocolate is superior to milk and the surprising revelation that he actually does like to walk along the beach and it wasnât just a sarcastic comment the first day you met him.
There was that one agonising week when you couldn't reach him. The anxiety had eaten at you until you finally learned he'd been thrown into the hole for an outburst with another prisoner. The story came out later: a dispute over the weight bench had escalated until Jongseong had whacked the guy over the head with a dumbbell as a result of testing his patience. It was a reminder of the world he was still entangled in, sometimes itâs easy to forget that he is in prison for a crime and that you both arenât just long-distance lovers.
Seeing him in person had been almost impossible due to the strict visiting rules regarding family members being the only ones who could visit. But you werenât deterred. With a little persuasion and a few hundred pounds slipped to the right people, you managed one precious visit. The memory of him that day is vivid: a busted lip, a black eye, and a new tattoo of a dagger with a dragon wrapped around it. The sight had sent your pulse racing. Despite the bruises, or perhaps because of them, he had never looked hotter. Youâd been tempted to break the glass and pounce on him right then and there.
Although you still have some fear about injecting him into your peaceful life, you canât deny the happiness you feel when he calls or the flutter in your stomach when he makes a slightly lewd comment describing exactly what he is going to do to you once he gets his hands on you.Â
You know youâre in for a wild ride in every sense of the word.
Luckily for you, you donât have to wait too long because, right on time, you hear the gates open with a strained creak and yet, your heartbeats are somehow louder. The door of the gates swings open with a groan, revealing Jongseong. He's wearing the same black polo and fitted black trousers you saw him in that first day, now with an added black duffle bag slung over his shoulder. The sight of him makes your heart quicken and throat close up as anxiety, both good and bad, courses through you. He looks every bit as dangerous and enticing as you remember, his stride strong and purposeful.
The closer he gets to you, the more urgent his steps become. His eyes lock onto yours with an ardour that makes your breath catch. He canât wait to finally hold you in his arms, to feel your skin touching his. The world around you fades away, leaving only the magnetic pull between you two.
You jump down from the hood of the car, your legs slightly wobbly with excitement and nerves. Jongseong reaches you in a few long steps, chucking his duffle bag to the ground without a second thought. His hands grasp your face, fingers spreading out to cup your cheeks and jaw, his touch both firm and tender. The heat of his palms sends a shiver down your spine, and you instinctively lean into him, your hands finding purchase on his broad chest.
His pupils blaze with longing and something deeper, more primal. His thumbs brush over your cheekbones as he holds you in place, as if grounding himself in the reality of your presence. He canât quite believe youâre here and that he can finally know what you feel like. The air between you crackles with unspoken desire and the pent-up tension of months just out of reach.
"Fuck. Hi, darlinâ," he whispers, mouth slightly open and eyes shaking. Part of him canât fathom that you waited for him; most girls he fucks with never keep their promises to stay his, too scared to actually tag along in his life, but you did because thatâs the kind of good girl you are: forever loyal and faithful.
"Hi, Jongseong," you smile softly, any fear you had now replaced with glee. The way his eyes are drinking you should scare you, the same way they did that day three months ago, but now it makes you feel wanted and desired in a way no other person has ever made you feel.Â
Call it the growth of character and a desperate need for the man in front of you.
Jongseong's eyes darken as he watches you wet your lips, anticipation crackling in the air between you. His gaze locks onto your mouth, and then suddenly, without giving you a moment to react, his lips crash against yours with a fervent urgency. His hands thread through your hair, fingers tangling as he tugs your head back. The motion elicits a gasp from you, and he takes full advantage, his tongue slipping into your mouth to explore and conquer.
The kiss is wild, messy, and breathtaking. His tongue moves against yours with a possessive hunger, claiming every inch as if staking his territory. The taste of him is intoxicating, a heady mesh of his unique flavour and mint that leaves you dizzy. His lips move with a bruising intensity, sucking and biting, leaving your mouth tingling and swollen.
You moan into the kiss, your hands gripping his shoulders tightly, needing something to anchor yourself as the world spins around you. The force of his kiss, the way he devours you, sends a rush of heat straight to your core, making you ache with need. Every brush of his tongue against yours, every pull and nip of his lips, fans the flames of your desire higher and higher.
Jongseong's hands slide from your hair to your waist, pulling you flush against his body. You can feel the hard planes of his chest against your softer curves, the heat of him searing through your clothes. His touch is both rough and tender, a dichotomy that leaves you craving more.
The kiss deepens, growing more frantic and desperate. It's as if he's trying to pour three months of pent-up longing and frustration into this one moment, and you respond with equal fervour. Your fingers dig into his shoulders, pulling him closer, needing to feel every inch of him against you.
Never in your life have you been kissed like this. The rush and excitement tingle all over your body as his large hands dig into your skin, his fingers pressing firmly into your back, grounding you in the intensity of the moment. His tongue strokes against your own in a heated dance, each movement eliciting a new wave of desire that courses through you.
Your ex-boyfriend gave you soft pecks and gentle arm rubs, leaving you wondering if you even wanted to be with him. Those kisses were perfunctory, lacking the fire that now burns between you and Jongseong. This heated exchange, this raw, unbridled passion, makes you understand just how much you can crave a person.
Your own hands roam over his back, feeling the taut muscles beneath his shirt, the heat of his skin seeping through the fabric. Every touch, every brush of his lips against yours, ignites a spark that sets your entire being ablaze. You feel like you could drown in this moment, in the intensity of his desire and the way it mirrors your own.
Jongseong breaks the kiss just enough to catch his breath, his forehead resting against yours as you both pant heavily. His eyes are filled with a mix of lust and seduction. It makes you want to keep kissing him until your lips fall off, your mouth missing the invasion of his tongue suddenly.
As you go to lean in once again, he pulls back and shakes his head, a cocky smile plastered on his face. Your heart drops for a minute, thinking about how you might be too needy for him, too clingy. It was a constant complaint from your last boyfriend, so that insecurity bubbles up to the surface.
âNo, baby,â Jongseong says, his voice low and teasing, his smile widening at your puzzled expression. âNot unless you want me to fuck you in front of the guard back there.â
Your cheeks flush a deep shade of crimson, embarrassment and excitement mingling to create depth to the shade. You cast a quick glance over your shoulder, spotting the guard lingering a few feet away. Jongseong twists his body to give the officer a final wave, his gesture a clear, arrogant fuck-you to both authority and the system that has confined him. His smirk is one of satisfaction, and it only makes you shiver more, feeling the raw energy that radiates off him.
As the guardâs eyes follow Jongseongâs movement with disapproval and curiosity, Jongseong finally pulls his gaze back to you. His hand moves to grab his duffle bag, lifting it with effortless ease before sliding his arm over your shoulder in a possessive, almost protective manner. The touch of his arm against your skin sends a jolt of electricity through you, and you instinctively lean into his side, savouring the closeness and warmth of his body.
âCome on,â he says, his voice dropping to a low, commanding murmur, suddenly turning slightly serious despite the small smile on his face. âWe gotta stop somewhere real quick.â
_____
Stepping out of the car, Jongseong takes your hand and leads you towards a diner. The building has a certain charm despite its rundown appearance. The paint is peeling in places, and the sign flickers intermittently. Only a few patrons occupy the scattered booths inside, which is slightly strange considering itâs the middle of the day and diners like this are typically occupied by teenagers and first dates.
Which is exactly why you are so excited. This is your first real date with Jongseong, and you cannot wait to get to know him on a deeper level. Although you would say you know him pretty well, all those 15-minute-a-day calls have done wonders for learning about each other, but this isnât time-restricted or monitored by guards; this opens up the opportunity for a pure and unfiltered conversation with him.
Peering up at him, you see his relaxed manner and smile. You will never know what it is like to be locked up, but you can imagine how draining it can be - the kiss of freedom from the air must uplift his spirit.Â
As you walk into the diner, the chequered floor and the nostalgic aroma of coffee and fried food fill the air. The decor is dated, with vinyl booths and Formica tables, but there's a certain cosiness to it. You expect Jongseong to lead you to a booth so you can have your long-awaited date, but instead, he guides you through the diner's main area, straight towards the kitchen.Â
You glance around, confused. "Where are we going?" you ask, looking back at him.
"Just some business, then you'll have me all to yourself, alright?" he replies with a wink, giving your knuckles a soft kiss before continuing forward.
You follow him, weaving through the bustling kitchen. The clatter of pots and pans, the sizzle of food on the grill, and the chatter of the chefs create a cacophony of sounds. Jongseong nods and exchanges brief greetings with a few of the cooks, who glance at you curiously before returning to their tasks. One chef, a burly man with a white apron smeared with grease, gives Jongseong a nod of recognition and jerks his head to the door coming into view.
Finally, Jongseong pushes open a heavy metal door at the back of the kitchen, revealing a starkly different environment. The room beyond is dimly lit, the air thick with the smell of smoke and something more acrid. It is filled with brute-looking men, one of them is counting a stack of money with deliberate precision, his thick fingers moving with practised ease, while the others eye Jongseong and you with cold, assessing gazes.
The atmosphere is tense; you feel suffocated, if not by the smoke, then by the glares you are currently receiving. Something tells you that these men and Jongseong are not on the best of terms.
The man counting the money looks up, his eyes narrowing slightly. He has a thick, muscular build, and a scar runs down the side of his face, giving him a permanently grim expression. âPark fucking Jongseong,â he chides, placing the notes down on the table beside him. âWhere the fuck did you go?â
âAw, did you miss me, Bang?â Jongseong fake pouts, jutting out his bottom lip. âIâm touched, really.â
Standing up, Bang towers over the table, his broad shoulders casting an imposing shadow. His eyes, dark and unyielding, bore into Jongseong with a mixture of contempt and curiosity.Â
Jongseong, however, remains unfazed. His casual demeanour contrasts sharply with the palpable hostility in the room. He releases your hand and takes a step forward, his movements deliberate and confident. âI was in the slammer for a few, you know how it is,â he says coolly, like losing months of his life to prison bars was as casual as forgetting to pick up milk from the shop run. âIâm here for my money.â
Bang scoffs a low, guttural sound that reverberates through the room. âWhat fucking money? you waltz back in here like I owe you something, is that it?â He crosses his arms over his chest, muscles bulging under the strain. âYouâve got some nerve.â
Jongseongâs smile doesnât waver. âIâve always had nerve, Bang. And you owe me for the car that put me behind bars.â He glances back at you, his eyes softening for a moment before returning to the hardened stare of his adversary.
You stand rooted to the spot, your heart pounding in your chest. The smoky air feels even thicker now, each breath a struggle. The men shift slightly, their eyes flicking between Jongseong and Bang, anticipating the next move, like theyâre awaiting instructions.
Youâve seen scenarios like this play out in movies and even then do you hate the feeling it gives in your stomach, so now watching the movie play out in real life makes you feel a little nauseous because you know this can only end badly.
Bangâs lips curl into a sneer. âYouâre demanding I pay you for that piece of shit car? The one with the kicked-in engine? Mate, youâre fucking delusional. That car couldnât have even paid your pathetic bail.â
âYou asked me for that specific car, I delivered, now give me my money.â Jongseongâs calm and cocky aura suddenly shifts to a dangerous one, one you hadnât quite prepared yourself to see. Of course, you knew this side existed; you donât survive multiple bouts in prison without developing an edge. But witnessing it firsthand is something else entirely.
His posture changes, shoulders squared and jaw set, exuding a raw, unfiltered intensity that sends a shiver down your spine. The room seems to shrink around the two men, their confrontation a silent battle of wills. The other men at the table straighten up, sensing the shift in tension, readying themselves to pounce as soon as their boss gives a signal.
This is bad.
Placing your hand on his arm, you draw his focus to you. Your eyes gleam up at him, silently conveying worry. âJongseong, letâs just leave it, you just got out,â you plead as your head shakes in disapproval. If there was one thing you have learned from the stories Jongseong has told you, itâs that his temper is a short fuse, and with the lock on his jaw, you know he is a few seconds away from exploding.
His eyes soften momentarily as he looks at you, the tension in his shoulders easing slightly. He takes a deep breath, exhaling slowly as if to rein in his anger. For a brief moment, it seems like the confrontation is over. But before you can even attempt to lead him out of the room and back to your car, Bangâs voice cuts through the air, dripping with derision. âYeah, Park, listen to your bitch before I set my men on both of you.â
The words hang in the air, a malicious echo that sends a chill down your spine. Jongseong stops dead in his tracks, his body going rigid. You feel the shift instantly, his muscles tensing under your hand.
The calm exterior he had tried to maintain shatters. Jongseong whirls around, eyes blazing with fury. âWhat the fuck did you just say?â he snarls, his voice low and dangerous, a stark contrast to the calm, controlled tone he had used before.
Bang smirks, leaning back in his chair, clearly relishing the reaction heâs provoked. âYou heard me. I said listen to your slutty side piece before I make sure you both canât walk again,â he repeats, his voice dripping with contempt. âDid that hit a nerve?â
Before you can react, Jongseong lunges forward, his fist connecting with Bangâs jaw with a sickening thud. The force of the punch sends Bang sprawling to the floor, the chair skidding across the room. The men around you jump to attention, but no one makes a move to intervene, their eyes wide with shock.
âYou donât ever threaten my girl like that,â Jongseong growls, standing over Bang, who is struggling to get up. âEver.â
You canât deny the fuzziness in your stomach when he claims you as his girl. The simple slip of the tongue somehow drowns out his outlandish actions. Bang deserved it after all.
Bang wipes a trickle of blood from the corner of his mouth, his eyes blazing with a mix of pain and rage. âYouâre gonna regret that, Park,â he spits out, though there's an unmistakable tremor of fear in his voice now. With a snap of his fingers, his men spring into action, advancing toward Jongseong with menacing intent.
Jongseong steps back, his stance shifting into a defensive posture, muscles coiled and ready. âDarlinâ, go wait in the car, Iâll be out in a minute,â he murmurs, his gaze locked onto the advancing men. His arm is outstretched to shield you, the veins in his forearm prominent as he tenses.
You hesitate, torn between the urge to stay by his side and the instinct to protect him despite his obvious capability. âBut-â
âBe a good girl,â Jongseongâs voice is firm yet gentle, laced with a protective urgency. He meets your gaze with a stern but concerned look that brooks no argument. With a heavy heart and a lump in your throat, you nod reluctantly, stepping back into the kitchen.
Your eyes remain glued to him, a mix of fear and helplessness tightening in your chest. The seconds tick by slowly, each moment feeling like an eternity as Jongseong prepares to face off against men far larger and more intimidating than any security guard or gym bro youâve ever encountered.
The roomâs atmosphere thickens with tension as the men close in on Jongseong. One of them, a burly figure with arms like tree trunks, grabs hold of Jongseong, his grip like iron. Jongseong struggles against the manâs hold, his muscles straining as he fights to break free.
Another of Bangâs men seizes the opportunity, delivering a brutal punch to Jongseongâs midsection. The impact sends a sharp gasp through the air, and you watch in horror as Jongseongâs body lurches from the blow. His face contorts in pain, but he doesnât give in, still trying to break free from the grip holding him back.
From your vantage point, you can only watch in helpless horror as the fight unfolds. Jongseongâs strength and skill are evident, but the overwhelming numbers and sheer size of his opponents make it daunting. Each punch landed on him seems to resonate with a bone-deep impact, and the grunts and shouts of the men create a chaotic symphony of violence.
The sight of Jongseong, usually so composed and confident, struggling against the odds is almost too much to bear. You want to rush in, to do something, anything to help, but the kitchen's doorway feels like an insurmountable barrier. Your heart races, your breaths coming in quick, uneven gasps as you watch the scene unfold.
Jongseongâs eyes meet yours briefly, a flicker of reassurance in their stormy depths even as he endures another punishing blow. The look he gives you is a silent promise that he will get through this, that heâs fighting not just for himself, but for both of you. He will be damned if any of these men thought for a second that it was acceptable to threaten you or lay a finger on your precious body - especially not since he has just found out how beautifully soft your skin feels on his fingertips, or how perfectly your lips mesh with his own.
With a strained grunt, Jongseong uses his legs to kick out at his assailants, creating a brief moment of respite. His body, still taut from the impacts, is hunched and battered, but his spirit remains unyielding. He turns to face you, his voice a mix of anger and desperation cutting through the cacophony. âY/N, get the fuck out of here!â he yells, his command urgent and fierce.
Nodding frantically, you stumble back, your breath hitching as you watch Jongseong throw a sharp, decisive punch at the man who had been holding him back. The impact sends the man staggering, giving Jongseong a brief but crucial reprieve. The fight rages on around him, but for a moment, his focus is entirely on you.
You retreat through the kitchen, your mind spinning with fear and helplessness. Your only thought is to get to safety, to ensure Jongseongâs instructions are followed. You burst through the back door and into the parking lot, the air cold against your flushed skin despite the sun still blaring.
Once outside, you hurry to the car, your mind racing. The dim light of the dinerâs parking lot does little to ease the anxiety curling in your stomach. You canât help but worry about Jongseong - about whatâs happening inside and whether heâll come out unscathed.
You lean against the car, your breath coming in shallow gasps as you glance anxiously towards the diner. The minutes stretch on interminably, amplifying the knot of worry in your stomach. The tense stillness seems almost unbearable, and just as the fear of the worst begins to grip you, you see Jongseongâs figure finally emerge through the door.
He strides towards you, each step purposeful but burdened. His face is a canvas of bruises and blood, his eyebrow bleeding in a thin streak that trails down his cheek. The sight of him, battered and raw, sends a shiver of dread through you. You can barely hold back the tears as you rush forward.
âOh my god, Jongseong-â The words tumble out, laced with a mix of relief and anguish, but they are abruptly cut off as Jongseongâs lips crash onto yours. His kiss is fierce and demanding, a raw burst of emotion that takes you completely by surprise.
His hands are strong and desperate as they frame your face, his touch scorching against your skin. The kiss is so hungry, so primal, that it eclipses the first kiss you shared, which is hard to believe if you werenât the one on the receiving end. The intensity of it is overwhelming, the force of his need evident in every movement. He pulls you closer, his lips moving with an urgent, almost frantic rhythm.
As he deepens the kiss, his hand trails down from your face to his own throat, his fingers gripping the base of his neck. The gesture is both intimate and possessive, reminding you that he called you his girl and fought on behalf of you. The thoughts add another layer of desire from your end, the protectiveness he already has over you despite only knowing you for a hot minute makes your skin tingle with glee.
Every sensation is amplified - the rough texture of his lips against yours, the heated pulse of his touch, and the faint tremor of excitement in his frame. You can taste the salt of his sweat and the faint metallic tang of blood from his cuts mingling with the warmth of his breath. His other hand moves to your lower back, pulling you tighter against him, his body pressing firmly into yours.
Jongseong had forgotten how much of a thrill he got from fighting, the way seeing the blood splatter - from both his rival and himself - made him feel alive. It had been too long since he had a good kick like this, the prison scraps he would be part of were nothing like this, too weak and pathetic. This is the kind of adrenaline he wanted, one when he didnât know if he would make it out alive. But he knew he had to, for your sake.
The image of you flashed in his mind as he was pummelling into the men and Bang. The thought of dragging you into this dangerous world gnaws at him, but itâs a burden heâs willing to bear. He canât imagine asking you to walk away, even though he knows heâs pulling you into a dangerous world with wicked consequences.
Jongseong pulls back just enough to look into your eyes, his breath heavy and laboured. The heat in his gaze is unmistakable, an intense blend of desire and desperation. Blood smears across your cheek where his fingers had been, the sight and scent adding something raw to the moment. He never wants to see you hurt, but the blood smudged on your skin makes his blood run thinner with lust.
He gets horny when he is riled up like this, that much is evident by the way he is suddenly pushing you against the car and pressing his growing erection into your lower abdomen. The cold metal of the car against your back is a stark contrast to the heat of his body, a jarring reminder of the reality you're in, yet it only heightens the sensations coursing through you.
Jongseong's lips return to yours, more aggressive and demanding as he tries to consume you entirely. His hands are everywhere, tugging at your clothes, fingers digging into your skin with a need that borders on feral. The bruises on his knuckles brush against your flesh, a rough reminder of the fight he's just endured for you. His touch is searing, leaving trails of fire in its wake.
A low, guttural groan escapes him as he grinds his hips into yours, the friction sparking a desperate ache deep within you. Your hands find their way to his hair, pulling him closer, as if you could fuse your bodies together.Â
His name falls from your lips in a breathless whisper, a plea and a promise all at once. Jongseong responds with a growl, his lips trailing down your neck, biting and sucking, leaving marks that claim you as his. His hands roam lower, gripping your thighs and lifting you slightly, pressing you harder against the car.
âDarlinâ, Iâm gonna fucking ruin you,â he whispers into your mouth with promise. He means this both figuratively and physically. He is going to lead you down a dark path, and he canât say heâs even the slightest bit sorry about it.
Without warning, he swings the backseat door open and tosses you in, his strength overwhelming. You barely have time to catch your breath before he's on top of you, the weight of his body pressing you into the seat, his hands moving with a desperate urgency. His lips find yours again, a hungry, demanding kiss that leaves you gasping.
The confined space of the car adds an extra layer of intensity, the heat between you palpable. Jongseong's hands are everywhere, tugging at your clothes, his fingers digging into your skin with a need that borders on feral. He breaks the kiss, his breath hot against your ear as he murmurs, "I need to taste you."
His words send a shiver down your spine, a thrill of anticipation that leaves you trembling. He moves down your body, his lips and hands leaving a trail of fire in their wake. The car's interior feels too small, too hot, as he shifts between your legs, his eyes dark with desire as he looks up at you.
âYou okay with this?â he asks, seeking consent. Your body language is enough to tell him that you want this probably as much as he does, but the thing is, he doesnât know how much of a good girl you are. If no one else got to touch you like this, he would be ecstatic, but it also means you could want to take your time.
There is a flash in his eyes that makes your core pulse and has you nodding without thinking. âYeah, I want this,â you whisper out, though it sounds like youâre bellowing the words through a megaphone, the desperation in your voice making sure of that.
Kissing along your stomach as his hands undo your shorts, his lips dipping lower as he pulls them off of you. âHas anyone had you before?â The tone of his voice is gritty and hoarse, swallowing his jealousy at even the thought.Â
Just because he would be fine with it, doesnât mean he canât wish to curse any man that had the audacity to think they are worthy of being with you.
Swallowing the forming saliva in your mouth, his dangerous glare into your eyes tells you that perhaps you should lie and say no, that you havenât had past lovers. But if he caught you lying, you think the repercussions might be worse than whatever will come if you tell him the truth.
âYes, one.â
âHow many times did he have you?â
âWhat are you talking about?âÂ
âHow many times did he put his disgusting, unworthy mouth on you?â
Oh.
You physically shrivel up, feeling small under his intense stare and gripping hands. You canât actually recall how many times your ex boyfriend went down on you but it can't be more than four times, claiming he didnât see the point in it when he could just fuck you. Safe to say the sex you had with him was lacklustre.
âNot many,â you manage to whisper, feeling the heat of shame and anger rise in you. The memories of the past, the way you were neglected, seem to pale in comparison to the intensity Jongseong is offering you now. âThree times? Maybe four?â
âWell, which is it? Three or four?â he insists. His fingers dip into the band of your underwear, teasing your skin with a ghosting touch.
âWhy? Does it matter?â This was absolutely the wrong follow-up question to ask because Jongseongâs eyes turn black, jaw setting into the same locked position it did earlier.
âSo I know how many times I need to make you cum to wash him out of your system,â he growls, his voice a low rumble that vibrates through you. His fingers slip beneath the fabric of your underwear, the touch searing and electric against your skin. He pulls them down, tossing them aside with a careless flick of his wrist, his eyes never leaving yours. The intensity of his gaze is almost too much to bear, a raw hunger that leaves you breathless.
His hands grip your thighs, spreading them apart with a possessiveness that sends a thrill of anticipation through you. The heat between your legs is unbearable, the need for his touch almost painful. His breath is hot against your skin as he trails kisses down your inner thigh, each one sending a jolt of pleasure through you.
Jongseongâs lips hover just above your centre, his breath ghosting over your most sensitive parts, making you shiver with need. The anticipation is excruciating, every nerve ending screaming for his touch.Â
âTell me, how many?â he murmurs, holding back from diving in which is just as painful as it is for you.
âI reallyâŠI really donât remember,â you reply honestly. No matter the number of times your ex-boyfriend was between your legs, he never made you cum anyway so that might have everything to do with the memory lapse.
Something tells you that you will remember exactly how many times Jongseong gets between your legs.
He looks up at you, his eyes dark with determination. "Okay, Iâll make it five, just to be sure," he says, his voice rough with need. When his tongue finally makes contact, itâs like an electric shock, pleasure shooting through you in waves.
He works you over with a skill and intensity that leaves you gasping for breath. His tongue moves with purpose, each flick and swirl designed to draw out your pleasure. He knows exactly where to touch, how to lick, to drive you wild. His fingers dig into your thighs, holding you firmly in place as he devours you, the sensation almost too much to bear.
You arch against him, your hands tangling in his hair, pulling him closer as if you could never get enough. His low, satisfied growls vibrate against you, adding another layer of sensation that leaves you trembling.
"Jongseong, please," you gasp, your voice shaky and filled with need. The world narrows down to the heat of his mouth, the pressure of his hands, and the waves of pleasure crashing over you. You can feel yourself spiralling towards the edge, every touch pushing you closer and closer.
Jongseong has a tongue and mouth simply made for eating pussy, and he is showing you just how someone should be licking and slurping at your sensitive area. Not even two minutes have passed and you can already feel the pressure of your orgasm building; a new record for you. Not even when you manage to find some alone time can you make yourself cum this quickly.
His mouth is relentless, tongue flicking and swirling with a precision that has you seeing stars. He alternates between gentle laps and firm, insistent strokes, each movement designed to push you higher and higher. His lips seal around your clit, sucking and releasing in a rhythm that leaves you gasping. The heat of his mouth, the roughness of his tongue, and the sheer determination in his every move send you spiralling towards ecstasy.
When the first orgasm hits, itâs like a tidal wave, your body convulsing with the force of it. Jongseong holds you through it, his mouth never leaving you, drawing out every last bit of pleasure until youâre left trembling. His hands grip your hips, anchoring you to the car seat as you ride out the waves of sensation.
But he doesnât stop. His fingers find their way inside you, curling and stroking with a skill that has you begging for breath. He adds a second finger, then a third, stretching and filling you, making you deliciously overwhelmed. His tongue continues its assault on your clit, harshly flickering in tandem with the movements of his fingers.
âJongseong, I-â you gasp, trying to form words through the haze of pleasure.
âI know, darlinâ,â he growls, his voice vibrating against your skin. âI can feel you. Donât hold back.â
His fingers curl inside you, hitting that perfect spot with unerring precision, each stroke sending shivers up your spine. His tongue dances around your clit, alternating between gentle flicks and firm, insistent licks that have you teetering on the edge. The second orgasm comes even faster, your body hypersensitive from the first. It crashes over you, leaving you gasping and moaning his name. Jongseongâs mouth is relentless, his tongue and fingers never stopping, never giving you a moment to catch your breath. He knows exactly how to push you to the edge and then pull you back, prolonging the pleasure until youâre a quivering mess beneath him.
His determination is relentless. He pushes you through the third orgasm with the same intensity, his touch never faltering. He adds another layer to the sensation, his nose pressing against your clit as his tongue and fingers continue their work. Each orgasm leaves you more breathless, more spent, until youâre a quakinh mess beneath him, gripping at his hair in a desperate attempt to ground yourself from euphoria.
âI need you to scream my name,â he murmurs against your folds, his voice dark and commanding. âI want everyone to know whoâs making you feel this good.â
It is only at that moment you remember that Jongseong is eating you out in a diner car park where anyone can look in the window and see your lewd actions, never mind hear them.
But that doesnât stop you obeying him.
The thrust of his fingers quickens as your juices begin to fly around in your car and drip down your leather seats, your essence acting like holy water as you bless the car with your backseat serenade. Your hand grips the silver cross around your neck as you curse the Lord's name in vain, the only thing you can worship right now is a criminalâs touch.
âJjongie,â you mewl out, losing yourself to your lust and heat, eyes rolling to the back of your head. He smirks as you create a nickname in the midst of the pleasure, loving the way it sounds falling from your tongue.Â
He will only ever let you call him that.
The fourth orgasm builds slowly, the pleasure mounting with every touch, every stroke. Jongseongâs fingers hit that perfect spot over and over again. His tongue dances across your clit as he makes his tongue rigid, each flick sending sparks of pleasure shooting through you. You can feel the pressure building, the heat coiling in your belly, until it finally explodes, leaving you shuddering and gasping for breath.
âJjongie, please,â you beg, your voice hoarse and broken. âI canât take anymore.â
âYes, you can,â he insists, his voice rough with desire. âYouâre gonna give me one more. Just one more, darlinâ.â
He keeps going, his mouth and fingers working together in a symphony of pleasure. The fifth orgasm is the most intense yet, your body extremely susceptible and on edge from the previous ones. He adds a fourth finger, stretching you wide, probably even wider than your exâs cock ever did, his tongue working your clit with a precision that has you seeing venus. He uses his tongue apply pressure in ways that have you feeling every single nerve ending come alive. The pleasure builds and builds until it finally crashes over you, leaving you a quivering, trembling mess beneath him for the nth time.
When he finally pulls back, his lips and chin glistening with multiple layers of your arousal, he looks at you with a fierce, possessive pride. "There," he murmurs, his voice a low, satisfied rumble. "Now youâre mine. Only mine."
He climbs up your body, his mouth finding yours in a searing kiss that tastes of you. The connection between you is electric, something beautiful. You fight the tiredness as you plaster a smile of happiness and contentment across your face, and he kisses all over your cheeks and lips, creating a line of adoration. His kisses are softer now, each one a tender promise.
As the initial rush of passion subsides, you finally take in the full extent of his injuries. His face is a canvas of bruises and cuts, each mark a testament to the fight he endured. Your fingers move gently, tracing the path of the blood streak on his eyebrow, smoothing over the swollen skin with care. The sight of him beaten like this makes your heart ache.
"Promise me you won't keep doing this?" you ask, your voice tinged with worry and desperation as you wipe the mixture of your slick and saliva from his mouth. Your eyes search his, pleading for an answer, a reassurance that he wonât put himself in harm's way again.
Instead of a verbal response, Jongseong leans in, capturing your lips in another kiss. This one is soft, tender, and lingering. It speaks of unspoken promises and the turbulent emotions between you. He pulls back just enough to rest his forehead against yours, his breath warm against your skin.
Although you take the kiss as a sealed promise, you should know better than to trust a criminal.
_____
Walking out of your campus building, you see an unfamiliar car paired with a very familiar man waiting on the sidewalk. Jongseong leans against the sleek monochrome vehicle. He looks as confident and imposing as ever, with his hair gelled in his typical style and a fitted black T-shirt that shows off his tattoos, earning some judgmental glances from your peers.
You wave off your friends, a wide smile spreading across your face. Skipping down the stairs with glee, you bound towards him, unable to contain your excitement. The moment Jongseong spots your figure approaching, the hard stare and scowl he portrays vanish, replaced by an expression of equal joy to yours.
In the past month, you and Jongseong have grown incredibly close. Despite his semi-cold exterior and rough edges, there's a softer side to him that only you get to see. He's protective and loyal, his tough shell cracking open whenever you're around. The little things he does - like texting you as soon as he wakes up, remembering your favourite bands name, plus all the members, or listening to you read him excerpts from the book you divulge in while he works out - reveal a tenderness he rarely shows to anyone else.
Jongseong opens his arms, and you leap into them, wrapping your legs around his waist as he catches you effortlessly. He buries his face in your neck, inhaling your scent deeply, grounding himself in your presence. The onlookers judge, whispering among themselves, but neither of you cares. Being with each other is all that matters.
"What are you doing here?" you ask, pulling back slightly to look into his eyes.
He grins, a rare, genuine smile lighting up his face. "Couldn't stay away from my darlinâ too long, could I?" he murmurs, his voice a blend of affection and mischief. "Thought I'd surprise you."
You chuckle, brushing a stray lock of hair from his forehead. "Well, paint me shocked."
Setting you down gently, he keeps his arms wrapped around your waist, not wanting to let you go just yet. âI thought we could drive out for a bit, I need to visit my bank for aâŠslight withdrawal,â he explains.
You nod, eyes twinkling. It doesn't matter what the errand is; any time spent with Jongseong feels like an adventure. Over the past month, you've done everything together: hitting the gym, shopping for your dorm kitchen, and running around to the post office to send some letters. Even mundane trips to the bank like this seem exciting when he's by your side.
As you both get into the front seats, you can't help but ask the million-dollar question, "Where did you get this car?"
Jongseong's life outside has been anything but easy; his criminal record makes it difficult for him to secure a steady job. Despite this, he's always trying, often because you push him to stay on the right path. You appreciate his efforts, knowing how much he resists resorting to his old ways. At least, as far as you know.
"Just a banger from one of my mates," he replies nonchalantly, as he starts the engine. "Nothing compared to yours."
"I think it suits you," you say, glancing around the shabby interior. The car is a patchwork of bumps and scratches, with a dashboard that's seen better days and seats that are well-worn and torn in places.
"Because it's battered and dented?" he quips, a teasing note in his voice.
"No," you respond, playfully hitting him on the arm. "Because it has a certain charm about it, if you look past the scrapes and cuts."
A shy, almost boyish grin settles upon Jongseongâs face, very much out of character for him. Considering youâre admitting to seeing past his rugged appearance and guarded heart, even through the guise of the car, he canât help but appreciate the compliment. His fingers drum lightly on the steering wheel as he pulls out onto the road.
You settle back into your seat, watching the world pass by outside the window. The car rattles slightly, but it feels like an extension of Jongseong himself - rough around the edges, but with a hidden depth that you can't help but admire.
The journey takes you away from the hustle and bustle of the campus, the road stretching out for miles ahead. The landscape transforms into a picturesque scene painted with warm, golden hues. Sunlight bathes the rolling fields in a soft glow, casting long shadows that dance across the green grass. Farm animals graze contentedly within the sweeping wind, their movements leisurely and peaceful. The serene beauty of the countryside envelops you, a stark contrast to the chaotic thoughts that often plague your mind.
As the scenery blurs by, you unlock your phone and realise you've been so caught up in sight-seeing that you hadnât noticed how much time had passed. A slight furrow forms on your brow as you glance at the clock, wondering why on earth you are still driving.
"Your bank branch is really far away, Jongseong," you observe, a hint of curiosity in your voice.
"Yeah," he replies, placing a hand on your exposed leg, his touch warm and reassuring. "I guess it is, huh?"
His tone carries a weird, knowing look on his face, something that makes you sceptical but also intrigued. Thereâs a spark of mischief in his eyes, one that youâve come to recognise. Itâs the look he gets when heâs planning something unexpected. Despite the small sliver of doubt in your mind, you decide not to question him further, choosing trust over anything else.
The road ahead twists and turns, each bend revealing more of the idyllic countryside. Birds soar in the sky, their songs adding a melodic backdrop to your journey. You find yourself relaxing into the seat, the comfort of Jongseongâs presence and the captivating landscape blending together into a perfect moment of tranquillity.
That moment is about to be severely interrupted.
Jongseong takes a sharp turn off the main road, driving down a narrow, gravelly path that leads to a run-down building in the middle of nowhere. The structure of the bank is weary and neglected, its facade chipped and the white stones which make up its exterior are now yellow with a mixture of smoke and years of tear. The windows are grimy, and the door doesnât shut over as the hinges hold the doors askew. Weeds sprout through the cracks in the pavement, and the entire place exudes a sense of forgotten utility. You wonder who on earth decides to keep money here.
Jongseong pulls the car to a stop and gets out, jogging around to open the door for you. He helps you out with a gentle grip on your hand, his touch a stark contrast to the bleak surroundings.Â
You notice the tension in his shoulders, his usually composed exterior seems frayed, much like the edges of the black duffle bag he retrieves from the backseat. The bag, reminiscent of the one he had when coming out of prison, is empty save for something weighing it down slightly.Â
"What's that for?" you inquire, pointing to the duffle that is trapped in his tight grip.
"I'm just going to get a lot of money, that's all," he replies, smiling so innocently that it looks almost devious.
Why wouldn't he just keep it all his money in the bank in the first place? Places don't even usually take cash these days. You internally start to question, unable to suppress the growing unease. He is acting strange and suddenly, your gut isnât feeling so happy.
Jongseong extends his hand, fingers stretched for you to interlock with his. His grip is firm, reassuring yet compelling. They are so big compared to yours that they practically swallow yours whole. As he starts to walk away, you canât help but notice he isnât locking the car. You know no one is around, but considering he used to steal cars for a living, you think he would know the dangers of leaving it out in the open like this.
Regardless of your apprehension, you follow him, the gravel crunching under your feet as you approach the run-down bank. Jongseongâs pace quickens, his body language a mix of urgency and confidence.
As you step inside, the air is stale, carrying the scent of mildew and old paper. The interior is dimly lit, dust particles dancing in the beams of sunlight. Surprisingly, there are people scattered in the foyer: an older couple who have to be in their late sixties and a man who exudes zero confidence, his pale complexion and silver-rimmed glasses, paired with his shrivelled frame.
The worst thing the man does is look at you for a second longer than Jongseong would like. Cracking his neck, Jongseong pulls you closer to him as he stares the man down, giving him a warning shot. Quickly, there are no eyes on you.
Jongseong is always like this, silently threatening any man who even dares to glance at you. One time, you were at the supermarket, innocently buying a bottle of wine and some Sensations chilli and lime crisps, when the clerk had the audacity to speak to you - it was just to ask if you needed help, that was too many words according to Jongseong. He had given the clerk a harsh look, his jaw clenched tightly as he pulled you closer, ensuring the man understood his silent message. The poor guy had paled, quickly ringing up your items without another word.
You glance around the run-down bank, taking in the cracked tiles and peeling wallpaper. The entire place feels like itâs on the verge of collapse. As you watch Jongseong, you notice him checking the duffle bag a few times, his eyes scanning the room with a sharp intensity. Something about his demeanour makes your stomach twist with unease.
"Jongseong, what are we actually doing here?" you ask, trying to keep your voice steady despite the growing anxiety.
"Darlin', I'm getting money, why else would we be here?" he laughs as if youâve asked the dumbest question he has ever heard. His tone is light, but his eyes remain hard, focused.
You bite your lip, glancing around the room once more. The older couple is speaking softly to each other, their attention nowhere near you. The timid man with glasses is fiddling with his phone, his hands trembling slightly. Despite the seemingly mundane scene, your gut is yelling at you that something is terribly wrong and you think you know what it is.
"How are you getting the money?" you ask, the words catching in your throat. Youâre scared to even pose the question due to the answer you might receive.
Jongseong doesnât answer right away. Instead, he glances at you, his eyes flickering with something unreadable before he turns his attention back to the bag. The silence stretches uncomfortably, and you can feel the tension in the air growing thicker.
Your heart pounds in your chest, the realisation dawning on you. âJongseong, please, tell me weâre not here to-â
âNext,â the woman calls in front of you, breaking your chain of thought.
Jongseong gently unravels your intertwined hands and steps forward to the desk. The woman behind the counter looks up with a bored and disinterested expression, her fingers tapping impatiently on the worn-out surface.
âWhat can I help you with today?â she asks, her tone flat and mechanical.
Jongseong smiles brightly, tilting his head slightly as he leans closer. âI need you to put all the money in the bag,â he says, his voice smooth and sweet.
The woman furrows her brow in confusion, her mouth opening to question him, but the words die in her throat as Jongseong smoothly pulls a gun from the duffle bag and presses it to her forehead. His smile never falters, remaining charming and innocent, as if butter wouldn't melt in his mouth.
You feel your stomach drop, a cold wave of fear washing over you. Your hands tremble, and your breath catches in your throat. The world around you seems to blur, the edges of your vision darkening as panic sets in. You can hardly believe whatâs happening. This isnât the Jongseong you know, the one who holds you gently and kisses you tenderly. This is a side of him youâve never seen, a side that terrifies you.
âJongseong,â you whisper, your voice barely audible over the rushing blood in your ears.
He doesnât look at you, his focus entirely on the woman in front of him. With a calm and steady hand, he clicks the safety off the gun. â10s and 20s in the bag, love. Quickly.â
The womanâs eyes widen in fear, her hands trembling uncontrollably as she begins to gather the bills. The crisp rustling of paper fills the charged silence, punctuated only by the faint hum of the bankâs outdated air conditioning. Her movements are jerky and hurried, every action underscored by the mounting tension in the room. Her terrified gaze flits nervously between Jongseong and the duffle bag, reflecting the same panic you feel surging within you.
Out of the corner of your eye, you notice another bank worker, a woman in her late forties with a spiky haircut fit to rival Shirley Carter from Eastenders, sliding her hand toward the hidden panic button beneath the desk. Jongseongâs sharp eyes catch the movement instantly. With a swift, fluid motion, he pivots the gunâs direction, the barrel now pointed at the second worker. âDonât even think about it,â he warns, his voice cutting through the air like a razor blade.
The womanâs face drains of colour, her eyes widening in terror as she freezes mid-reach. Her fingers twitch nervously, the hand hovering inches from the button. You can see the palpable fear in her expression as her face goes slack, slowly withdrawing her hand to ensure her own safety, not daring to provoke Jongseongâs ire.
Turning back to you for a moment, Jongseong makes eye contact with you, winking in joy as if you are equally having as much fun as he is.
And the funny thing is, he can see it inside of you. Behind that fear, is a flash of thrill that even you havenât registered. Itâs something he can identify because it is the exact same look he has in his orbs when he does something that spikes his adrenaline. This is exactly why you came to him that day and the exact reason he has kept you by his side.
Youâre cut from the same cloth, even if sewn to different clothes.  Â
As the woman finishes stuffing the bills into the bag, her hands moving with a frantic speed, Jongseong maintains his disarming smile, but the menace in his eyes betrays his calm demeanour. The bag grows heavy with the weight of the cash, the rustling paper now almost rhythmic, a morbid symphony underscoring the gravity of the situation.
When the woman finally slides the bulging duffle bag across the counter, her face pale and stricken, Jongseongâs fingers close around the handle with a sense of finality. He casts one last wary glance around the bank, his gaze briefly meeting yours with a reassuring nod that feels more like a promise of survival than comfort.
âThanks for the service, sweetheart. Really, it has been class. Iâll write you a good Yelp review, for sure,â Jongseong's voice drips with arrogance and sarcasm, an unsettling calm underlying his criminal actions. He turns to you, his eyes intense yet strangely affectionate. âLetâs go, darlinâ.â
With the duffle bag in hand, he leads you towards the exit, his grip on your wrist firm yet unyielding. Your legs feel like lead as you follow him, the sound of your footsteps echoing in the empty space. You glance back at the bank workers, their faces a portrait of fear and confusion, and you can't shake the crushing sense of guilt that weighs on your heart. Yet, there is a strange feeling of exhilaration that beats in your chest, a rush youâve never felt before.
The two of you step back into the bleak daylight, and Jongseongâs car waits in the same spot. Now leaving it unlocked makes sense; you need to make a quick getaway. He opens the door for you with an almost gentlemanly gesture, though his eyes are still sharp, scanning the surroundings.
You both jump into the car, the doors slamming shut simultaneously. Jongseong hits the gas, the car lurching forward with a screech of tires. The engine roars to life as he maneuvers onto the road, the world outside blurring into a frenetic swirl of colours and shapes. Your heart pounds against your ribcage, adrenaline flooding your system. It's the closest to an existential crisis youâve ever come, the reality of what just happened clashing violently with the surreal rush of it all.
Jongseong wears a shit-eating grin, his eyes sparkling with a dangerous glee as he speeds down the highway. He runs a hand through his hair, the strands falling back into place messily. Suddenly, he slams his palm on the steering wheel a few times in sheer excitement, his laughter bubbling up uncontrollably. âWe fucking did it!â he exclaims, his voice filled with disbelief and triumph.
You look at him like heâs crazy, his entire being now radiating joy despite just committing a felony big enough to land him back in jail. Your mind races, a whirlwind of fear, excitement, and bewilderment. How could he be so thrilled, so elated, after what just happened? The exhilaration from moments ago is rapidly giving way to a gnawing anxiety, the reality of your actions sinking in.
"Pull over," you finally manage to say, your voice barely steady.
"What?" Jongseong's grin falters for a moment, confusion clouding his features.
"Pull over," you repeat, more forcefully this time.
"Do you want to get caught?" he snaps, acutely aware that the police have probably been alerted by now. His eyes dart to the rearview mirror, scanning for any signs of pursuit.
âI want to know what the fuck you think youâre doing.â
Jongseongâs jaw tightens, and any joy that was flowing through his body has now evaporated, escaping through the heavy exhale from his nostrils. His hands grip the wheel so tightly that his knuckles turn white, the tendons in his arms standing out starkly. The atmosphere inside the car grows heavy, thick with tension and unspoken words.
You realise instantly that youâve crossed a line, the severity of your words sinking in as his anger radiates off him like a palpable force. The air between you crackles with electricity, the adrenaline of the heist replaced by a chilling fear of the unknown. Youâre not scared of Jongseong, not really, but of the intensity of his reaction and what he might be thinking.
He hard shoulders the car to the edge of a cliff, the tires screeching as he brings the vehicle to an abrupt stop. The scenery outside is almost picturesque, the cliff overlooking a vast expanse of ocean, waves crashing against the rocks below. The golden hues of the late afternoon sun cast long shadows, but the serene beauty of the landscape does nothing to alleviate the suffocating tension within the car.
Jongseong's cold glare freezes you in place, his eyes dark and unyielding. "Repeat that last sentence," he demands, his voice low and menacing.
"I...I," you stammer, too overcome with slight fear to form a coherent response. Itâs not Jongseong himself that scares you, but the raw intensity of his emotions and the unpredictability of the situation.
"Did you just swear at me?" he asks, his tone sharp enough to cut through the thick silence. His eyes bore into yours, and you can see the flicker of hurt beneath the anger.
The fear of what heâs thinking, the consequences of your words, paralyses you. You can feel your heart pounding in your chest, your breath coming in shallow, rapid bursts. The reality of the situation crashes over you, leaving you feeling exposed and vulnerable.
âI... I didnât mean to-â
âGet out of the car. Now.â His voice is a low, dangerous growl, leaving no room for argument.
You scramble to comply, fumbling with the door handle. Your fingers tremble as you push the door open, the heavy metal creaking in protest. As you step out, the uneven ground beneath your feet adds to your growing sense of disorientation. The wind whips through your hair and the cliff's edge looms just a few feet away, adding to your sense of vulnerability.
Is he going to leave you here? The thought is a panicked whisper in your mind, the idea of being abandoned on this desolate cliffside sending a fresh wave of fear coursing through you. But he wouldnât do that, he is too infatuated by you to abandon you.
So youâre quaking in trepidation and adrenaline for what he has planned.
Jongseong steps out of the car with a deliberate calm, the door slamming shut behind him with a resonating thud. He looks at you, his expression unreadable, the earlier anger now replaced by something cold and calculating.Â
âOn your knees,â he commands, his voice hard and unyielding.
You hesitate for a moment, confusion and anxiety warring within you. The words seem surreal, echoing in your mind as you try to process whatâs happening. But then the steel in his eyes brooks no argument, and you realise you have no choice but to do as youâre told.
Slowly, you lower yourself to the ground, the rough gravel biting into your knees. The indignity of the position, combined with the terror of being so close to the cliff, leaves you feeling utterly exposed. You glance up at Jongseong, searching for a hint of whatâs to come, but his face is a mask of icy determination.
Noticing the tremble in your lips, a soft, almost tender expression flickers across his features. He reaches down, his hand cradling one side of your face gently. âShhh, darlinâ. Iâm just going to wash those dirty words out of your mouth,â he murmurs, his voice deceptively soothing.
Your heart pounds harder, anticipation and fear twisting into a knot in your stomach. You watch, wide-eyed, as he undoes his belt with deliberate slowness, the metallic clink echoing in the stillness. He pulls down the zipper, his movements controlled and precise, never breaking eye contact with you. It is only now that you know what he means by washing the dirty words out of your mouth.
Jongseong takes out his cock, thick and long, a sight you canât quite get used to, no matter how many times you see it. Your fingers grip tightly at your skirt as you endure the rough gravel digging into your knees. Despite the discomfort, your focus is entirely on his eight-inch length, its pink tip throbbing with desire, mirroring your pulsing clit.
Seeing the light of excitement in your eyes, Jongseong smiles wickedly. What he saw back at the bank, that flicker of wanting rush and spontaneity is instilled deep within you, and what perfect way to get it out of you than making you suck his cock on the edge of a nth-drop-foot cliff.
He taps the head of his cock against your lips, his expression a blend of mock innocence and raw hunger. âYou know I donât like doing this, Y/N," he says, his tone dripping with false remorse. Jongseong doesnât care about you swearing at him, not really; heâs just looking for an excuse to ease the horniness swimming through his blood and to bring out the real you that's hiding in the shadows.
âUnless...you want to be bad?â He tilts his head, his gaze feigning curiosity because he already knows the answer. âI saw it in your eyes, darlinâ. That blood rush because you know youâre doing something bad.â
You shift slightly on your knees, licking your lips, your eyes fixated on his member. The desire to take him in your mouth is overwhelming. The fear, guilt, dread, excitement, and power mix into a heady cocktail -Â it creates something inside you that you have long sought after. Your life that has been so built up in the foundation of being perfect for your father is draining and mundane, which is why you were drawn so irresistibly to him. He can give you everything you crave, even through unorthodox situations like this.
Jongseong teases you, swiping his tip along your lips. As you open your mouth in eager anticipation, he pulls away just out of reach, a smirk playing on his lips as you lift your ass from your heels, chasing it like a dog with a bone before you yield.Â
He starts pumping his cock slowly, his eyes locked onto yours. âYou can be as bad as you like, baby,â he leans down slightly, his voice a low, seductive growl. âAs long as you're a good girl for me, okay?â
âYes, Jjongie,â you nod quickly, desperate for your mouth to be filled. The anticipation, mixed with the danger of the cliff and the fear of being caught, makes your pussy ache and your heart race.
With a sudden, forceful motion, Jongseong grabs the back of your head, pulling you closer. "Open wide," he commands, his voice firm yet filled with desire. You comply, your mouth opening eagerly as he thrusts himself deep, filling you completely. He groans in pleasure as he begins to fuck your mouth with rough, passionate thrusts.
His hand rests on the back of your head, fingers tangling in your hair as he sets a deliberate pace. You hollow your cheeks, sucking him in, your tongue swirling around his length, paying extra attention to his tip when it hits the edge of your lips. The heat and weight of him on your tongue send shivers down your spine, and you moan around him, the sound vibrating through his dick.
âTake it all, darlinâ,â he murmurs, his grip tightening as he pushes deeper, your gag reflex kicking in. Tears spring to your eyes, but the mixture of pain and pleasure only fuels your desire. You moan around him, the vibrations making him groan louder.
Jongseongâs pace quickens, his long length hitting the back of your throat with each thrust. You struggle to breathe, but the sensation of being used, of surrendering completely to his control, sends waves of heat through your body. Despite the intensity, you crave more; you canât get enough. Every thrust, every moment of control he exerts over you, only deepens your need. You love this, even though you probably shouldnât.
Because you have always been so compliant to him, never pushing his buttons, every time he has ever touched you has always been rough but with an overwhelming cast of softness, scared to push you too far considering your limited sexual experiences. But right now, it is pure lust and dominance taking over his body. This is your chance to show you can take it, soft or hard, as long as itâs Jongseong.
âFuck, youâre amazing,â he pants, his eyes dark with lust. âSo good at taking your punishment.â You nod as best as you can, his cock still buried in the back of your throat as you try your best to widen it, accommodating his girth the best you can.
His praise spurs you on, and you bob your head faster, your hand coming up to stroke the base of his cock in time with your movements. Jongseongâs breath hitches, his hands gripping your roots for support. The veins on his arms bulge with the intensity of his grip, his knuckles white.
His breathing becomes erratic, and you feel his cock twitching, a clear sign he's nearing climax. His eyes close momentarily, his brow furrowing, then lock onto yours again, filled with raw desire.
âFuck, baby, just like that,â he groans, his hips thrusting in sync with your movements. âIâm so close.â
His thrusts become more urgent, more forceful. You can sense the muscles in his abdomen tensing with each movement, a sheen of sweat making his skin glisten. His jaw clenches, his breathing ragged. You are lost in the moment, your body reacting instinctively, wanting to please him, to draw out his release. The sensation of his cock filling your throat, the taste, the feel - itâs intoxicating, leaving you craving more with every second.
Suddenly, he tightens his grip on your scalp, pulling you down hard onto his cock, burying himself so deep that his bell is well past your tonsils, almost hitting your voice box. The force and intrusion makes you gag, and he holds you there, deep in your oesophagus. Your eyes water, and you feel his cock pulsing as he reaches his peak.
With a guttural moan, Jongseong shudders violently, emptying himself deep within you. The hot torrent of his seed floods your throat with a sudden intensity that makes you gag, the unexpected force sending spurts through your nose. The sensation is both startling and overwhelming, the heat and discomfort mingling in a strange thrill. Your nostrils burn slightly, each breath catching the faint, musky scent of his cum, and you feel the final thick, warm fluid trickling down your throat and seeping from your nose.
Jongseong's grip on you is unyielding, his body taut with pleasure, eyes squeezed shut in an expression of raw ecstasy. His cock pulses and twitches as he drains himself completely, the final spurts leaving him trembling. Slowly, he loosens his hold, withdrawing from your mouth with a slick, wet sound, his length coated in a mixture of saliva and cum.
You gasp for air, your lungs burning as you draw in ragged breaths. The remnants of his release cling to your lips and drip from your nose, the salty taste lingering on your tongue. The myriad sensations leave you dizzy and lightheaded, but thereâs an undeniable satisfaction in the aftermath of such a powerful, primal exchange. Your chest heaves as you recover, each breath a challenge, and despite the intensity, you canât help but feel a deep, insatiable hunger for more.
Jongseong tucks his cock away before looking down at you, the white dripping down your nose, chin and onto your chest. The sight makes him tremble, an aftershock of pure adoration for the messy girl before him. "You are so beautiful, baby," he murmurs, crouching down to wipe the seed from your face. Your lazy smile spreads across your lips, a blend of bliss and contentment washing over you. The intensity of the experience leaves you feeling floaty and disoriented, but thereâs an underlying sense of satisfaction and connection that warms you from within.
"Just don't swear at me again, okay, pretty? You gotta trust me," he continues, opening your mouth with his thumb and sticking his fingers in, making you clean them up. The taste of his cum lingers as you obediently suck his fingers clean, your eyes overcast with a mixture of bliss and unfamiliarity. You nod, feeling a bit contrite.
"I'm sorry. It wonât happen again, I was just...surprised. You should have told me what we were doing." You canât help but feel a twinge of regret. It would have been nice to have a heads-up that you were committing your first crime, even if you were just an accomplice.
Jongseong sighs, understanding your point of view. He helps you stand, his hands steadying you as your legs feel like jelly. He brushes the gravel from your knees, his fingers lingering slightly as he ogles at the indents and scrapes, oddly admiring the view. There's a gentleness in his touch, a stark contrast to the roughness of moments before.
"You would never have agreed to come with me if I did tell you. I wanted you to see and feel the rush of it all," he explains, his voice filled with conviction. He leans in, kissing your lips gently, the softness of his kiss a vastly different feeling from the burning in your throat and nose. "You did, didnât you? You understand it now."
The memory of the heist flashes vividly in your mind, the exhilarating chaos of it all. Standing side by side with Jongseong as he robbed the bank was like stepping into another world, one where every second was charged with a thrilling sense of danger and excitement. The cold metal of the gun in his hand, the authoritative bark of his commands, and the wide-eyed fear in the faces of the bank staff and customers - it was a symphony of sensations that left your heart pounding in your chest in the best possible way.
You pause, the truth sinking in. "I...I do," you admit, knowing thereâs no point in denying it. The rush, the adrenaline, itâs undeniable. But the risk, the fear of losing him, it lingers in your mind. "But there are other ways to get that same rush, ones that don't risk me losing you."
For the first time, Jongseong's heart feels like it's punching his rib cage. He canât believe the depth of your concern, the intensity of your feelings for him. "I know, but I'm not going anywhere," he promises, his voice filled with sincerity. You give him a sceptical look, worry etched into your features. "I'll be careful. You're my good luck charm, and you're never leaving my side. So, what is there to worry about?"
Jongseong's arms wrap around you, bringing you closer. His warmth envelops you, providing a soothing presence amidst the chaos of your thoughts. You cuddle into his hug, a smile pulling to the middle of your cheeks. His steady, robust heartbeat is a calming contrast to your own. The lingering taste of him, the scent of sweat and musk, itâs all becoming music to your senses.Â
He can't believe he has found someone so perfect for him. Someone to ground him and see his potential, even through everything. Maybe there is a part of him that wants to tone it down a little, because the fear of losing you too is something his heart doesn't want to bear thinking about.
Although the rush and excitement of breaking the law pumps the blood through his body, even just laying his eyes upon you has the same desired effect. Perhaps you could be his new rush. Jongseong had never considered another way to get his kicks because this is all he has known for so long, the window you're opening up in his mind lets him peep into what could be, rather than what he knows.
Sirens blare softly in the distance, almost acting as a backing track to your loving waltz. But you know you canât stay standing here for long, very few roads to turn and navigate if they caught up to you. Looking up at him, you smile, oddly calm despite the circumstances around you. âLetâs go. We can book a motel.â
âGood shout. I donât think I can wait to fuck you.â
You look puzzled, brow furrowing as you process his words. "Do you not hear the police? I mean we need to keep low."
Jongseong laughs, a low, rich sound that sends shivers down your spine. His hand traces your waist, fingers pressing gently into your skin. "Oh, I know," he says, his eyes twinkling with a mix of mischief and desire. "But I also meant what I said."
_____
The smell of chlorine fills the air, a sharp, clean scent that immediately evokes memories of summer afternoons spent poolside. Beneath the tang of chemicals lies the faintest hint of dampness, the kind that clings to cool tiles and wets the soles of your feet. The ambient humidity wraps around you like a warm blanket, the moisture hanging heavy in the air as you take careful steps forward, your senses heightened by the darkness that surrounds you.
A blindfold is secured over your eyes, its fabric soft against your skin, blocking out the world and leaving you in a realm of anticipation. Jongseong's hands are firm yet gentle on your arms, guiding you carefully, his touch reassuring as he leads you to the unknown. His fingers occasionally rub soothing circles on your arms, grounding you, while his lips brush tenderly against your shoulder, planting a kiss that sends a shiver of warmth through your body.
"Just a bit further," he murmurs, his voice a low, comforting rumble in your ear. The sound of it makes you smile, your heart swelling with affection, but the mystery of what lies ahead keeps a slight edge of nervousness tingling in your veins.
âJjongie,â you giggle, a mix of excitement and anxiety bubbling in your chest. âWhatâs the surprise?â
He chuckles softly, the sound vibrating through you. âIf I tell you, it wouldnât be a surprise, would it?â
You laugh, but thereâs a faint tremor of unease beneath your amusement. âI donât like your surprises...â you say, trying to keep your tone light, but thereâs a flicker of real concern in your voice.
Your mind drifts back to the last time Jongseong had surprised you. What was supposed to be a simple drive had turned into something much more exhilarating - and terrifying. Heâd taken you on a late-night drag race, the adrenaline coursing through your veins as he floored the gas pedal. Youâd ended up in his lap, your lips wrapped around him as he tried to navigate the twisting roads. The memory of him nearly crashing into a lamppost as he swerved around a corner, the car jerking violently while you were mid-act, flashes vividly in your mind. It had been thrilling, dangerous, and unforgettable, but it had also left you with a newfound wariness of his surprises.
Jongseong suddenly stops, halting your thoughts along with your steps. He releases his grip on your arms and takes a moment, his eyes scanning over the scene before him. You can sense the slight shift in his demeanour, the way his breath catches ever so slightly, as if heâs nervous, though heâs doing his best to hide it.
âOkay, are you ready?â he asks, his voice taking on a more serious tone, as if the moment ahead holds weight.
âIt depends on what for,â you reply, your voice barely above a whisper as the tension in your chest tightens.
âYes or no answer, darlinâ,â he says, his tone gentle but firm.
You take a deep breath, trying to steady yourself as the anticipation builds. It crawls over your skin like tiny insects, a sensation that makes you think of the creepy-crawly trials from Iâm a Celebrity...Get Me Out of Here. The unknown feels like itâs pressing down on you, making your heart race in your chest but in an excited, throwing-up way, not in an anxiety-inducing throwing-up way.
âYeah...Iâm ready,â you finally breathe out, your voice laced with a mix of courage and curiosity.
With that, Jongseong reaches up and slowly removes the blindfold. The world beyond the darkness gradually comes into focus as your eyes adjust to the light. You blink a few times, your vision sharpening, and then the scene before you fully reveals itself.
You find yourself standing at the edge of a beautifully lit gymnasium pool. The water is calm, its surface reflecting the soft glow of the lights that line the ceiling and walls. The pool stretches out before you, the deep blue water inviting and serene. The entire space is transformed, the usual harshness of a gymnasium replaced by an almost magical ambience. The soft glow of string lights hangs above, casting a warm, golden hue that dances across the waterâs surface. Candles flicker gently along the edges, their flames steady despite the humidity, adding a touch of romance to the already enchanting atmosphere.
Your breath catches in your throat, your heart swelling with emotion as you take in the sight before you. âJjongie...â you whisper, your voice thick with a mixture of awe and emotion. A smile begins to creep across your face, slow but unstoppable, and you feel a sting in your eyes as tears threaten to spill over.
âItâs nice, right?â Jongseong asks, his voice soft, filled with an affectionate warmth as he watches your reaction.
âNice?â you echo, shaking your head in disbelief. âItâs beautiful. When did you do all of this?â
âA few hours ago, while you were getting ready,â he admits with a shy smile, rubbing the back of his neck as if the effort was no big deal, though you can tell heâs pleased with himself. It actually took him well over three hours to sort everything out, and an hour of that was simply to untangle the lights he had managed to wrap himself up in.
You look at him, the adoration you feel for him filling every corner of your being. The surprise, the thoughtfulness of it all, is overwhelming in the best possible way. Itâs not just about the setting heâs created, but the care and effort heâs put into making this moment special for you.
As you step further into the softly lit gymnasium, your eyes catch sight of a blanket spread out near the edge of the pool, surrounded by twinkling fairy lights. The setup is simple yet thoughtful: a wicker basket sits in the centre, along with two plates, some cutlery, and an assortment of your favourite snacks. You can't help but smile as you notice a small bag of Percy Pig sweets peeking out from the basket, their bright, cartoonish faces bringing a touch of humour to the romantic setting.
Jongseong follows your gaze, a proud grin spreading across his face when he sees you've noticed the details. âSee, I got all your favourites, even those ugly pigs,â he teases, the corners of his mouth twitching as he tries to keep a straight face.
You turn to him, feigning offence. âExcuse me? Percy Pig deserves respect.â
âYeah, yeah, whatever you say,â he laughs, rolling his eyes playfully. âNow, sit down before I eat them all myself.â
You both settle down on the blanket, the fabric soft beneath you as Jongseong reaches for the basket. He pulls out a bottle of cheap wine and a pair of plastic glasses he bumped from Tesco, itâs not really stealing, just an accidental 'forgot to scan it' - along with the basket, some plates, and the fairy lights that encompass the space. He did pay for the wine though, that much he can pour guilt-free.
âThis is really nice, Jonseong. But how did you manage to rent out the pool after hours?â
He takes a sip of his wine, a nonchalant shrug accompanying his response. âI know a guy.â
You narrow your eyes at him, scepticism evident in your expression, but you donât press further. âWhy did you choose this place? You know, picnics are usually in parks, not next to chlorine-filled water.â
Jongseong chuckles, his eyes twinkling with playful mischief. âWell, duh. I know Iâve spent most of my life in prison, but I do know basic picnic etiquette.â He rolls his eyes dramatically before continuing, âI just wanted to do something different. Trying to create an original experience, you know? Besides, I donât know if youâve noticed, but Iâm not exactly fancy restaurant material.â
You laugh, the sound light and genuine, appreciating his honesty. âYeah, I figured that out.â
The two of you sit in comfortable silence for a moment, the stillness only broken by the gentle lapping of the water and the hum of the old but functioning AC. The ambience is peaceful, the soft glow of the lights reflecting off the poolâs surface, creating a serene atmosphere that makes you feel completely at ease.
But thereâs a question that has lingered in the back of your mind for some time now, one youâve never dared to ask. You hesitate, the words sitting heavy on your tongue, unsure if now is the right moment to bring it up. Eventually, curiosity wins out, and you break the silence.
âCan I ask you something?â
Jongseong looks at you, his expression softening. âAnything, darlinâ. You know that.â
Youâve always respected his privacy, never prying into his past because, in your mind, it didnât matter. What mattered was the person he is now, the man whoâs made you feel more cherished than anyone else ever has. But heâs mentioned his past in passing, little snippets here and there, and now feels like as good a time as any to learn more.
âWhen did you first go to prison?â you ask, your voice tentative, almost unsure.
His reaction is immediate, his eyes widening for a split second before he quickly downs the rest of his wine, using the alcohol as Dutch courage. Jongseong usually isnât nervous about discussing his past, knowing that the judgement and resentment from others canât change the path heâs driven down. But with you, itâs different. He doesnât want you to see him in a different light, doesnât want his past mistakes to taint the way you look at him now.Â
You see the turmoil flickering across his face, and you quickly reach out, grabbing his hand to offer comfort. âItâs okay,â you say gently, squeezing his hand. âYou donât have to tell me...it was stupid of me to ask.â
He shakes his head, taking a deep breath as if steeling himself. âNo, itâs not stupid. You deserve to know.â He pauses, his voice quieter when he finally speaks. âI was 16. They charged me with domestic assault.â
You feel your body tense up at his words, recoiling slightly, but before you can pull away. Though your brain doesnât want to jump to that conclusion, itâs the first thing your mind flickers in front of your eyes.Â
Jongseong squeezes your hand tightly, his eyes earnest and pleading as he sees you leap to conclusions that make him feel sick. âOh God, no, not like that, baby,â he quickly clarifies. âI would kill myself before I ever laid a hand on my partner. I couldnât even fathom the idea.â
Relief washes over you, your muscles relaxing as you search his eyes for the truth. âThen who?â
He looks away for a moment, his jaw clenching as he struggles to find the right words. âMy dad,â he finally says, his voice rough with emotion. âHe was fucking awful, and I just snapped one day after school. The neighbours called the police, and they carted me off. Next thing you know, Iâm serving two months in juvie.â
You feel a surge of anger on his behalf, your heart aching at the thought of what he must have gone through. âHe deserved it, though, right?â you ask, needing to hear it from him.
âFuck yeah, he did,â Jongseong replies, his voice seething with barely contained rage. âFucking prick was a good for nothing low life and let him know it. After that, it was just a downhill spiral. Selling, stealing, fighting... itâs hard to get out of that life once youâre in it.â
The rawness of his words hangs heavy in the air, the weight of his past pressing down on both of you. You can see the pain in his eyes, the memories of a life heâs tried so hard to leave behind. You want to say something, anything, to make it better, but words feel inadequate. Instead, you simply hold his hand tighter, letting him know that youâre here for him, that youâre not going anywhere.
As Jongseong finishes recounting his story, you listen intently, the gravity of his words settling over you. The conversation has taken a turn for the deeply personal, exposing vulnerabilities you had only glimpsed before. His past is a labyrinth of mistakes and regrets, mirroring the tangled web that ensnares people once they slip into a life of crime. It reminds you of your fatherâs own downward spiral, how once he got entangled in embezzling money, every effort to escape only seemed to complicate matters further. Itâs a relentless cycle, each attempt to break free only making the situation worse.Â
But as you gaze at Jongseong, with his defiant eyes and mischievous grin, you see a boy who, despite his reckless choices, has a core of goodness. The crimes heâs committed are not born from malice but from a life he was thrust into, a life he has never known how to escape. Maybe, just maybe, you can offer him a different path, one that leads to a better future.
âI think thereâs a better life out there for you,â you say softly, your voice trembling with sincerity.
Jongseong meets your gaze, his eyes reflecting a depth of emotion that catches you off guard. He stares at you for a moment, his mind churning and eyes twinkling with realisation. âI think there is.â
A gentle smile begins to spread across your face. Despite the adrenaline-fueled adventures and the excitement of petty crimes youâve shared with him, youâve come to realise how much Jongseong means to you. The thrill has been exhilarating, but now itâs time to give back, to help him find the life he deserves. The life thatâs not defined by theft and deceit but by something more meaningful.
âI got you something,â he says, breaking the silence with a hint of mischief in his tone.
Curiosity piques as you ask, âWhat is it?â
âClose your eyes,â he instructs, his voice light but carrying a touch of seriousness.
You comply, and the sounds of him rummaging through the picnic basket fill your ears. The rustling of items and the faint clink of metal create a suspenseful atmosphere. Thereâs a brief pause, and you hear him take a slow, steady breath. The anticipation is palpable, crawling up your spine like a swarm of butterflies, each flap of their wings a reminder of the momentous occasion unfolding.
âOkay, open.â
You slowly open your eyes, adjusting to the dim glow of the fairy lights that flicker around you. Jongseong holds out a tiny white box, his expression a mix of nervousness and hope. Your heart skips a beat as you take the box from him, the weight of it feeling surprisingly significant.
âJongseong...â you whisper, a mixture of shock and affection in your voice.
âOpen it,â he urges, his eyes locked onto yours with a fervent intensity.
With trembling hands, you lift the lid of the box. Inside, nestled in a bed of soft cotton, are two simple yet elegant rings. The sight of them takes your breath away, the understated beauty of the rings striking a chord deep within you.
âWhat is-â
âNow, donât get ahead of yourself,â Jongseong interrupts, a playful glint in his eye. âIâm not proposing or anything. I love you, but Iâm not letting you marry an unemployed loser whoâs couch-hopping between friendsâ flats. This is just to remind everyone that youâre mine.â
Your eyes widen, the significance of his words settling over you like a warm embrace. âY-you love me?â
Jongseong looks at you as though your question is absurd. âWasnât it obvious? Iâm literally obsessed with you.â He takes one of the rings and carefully slides it onto your finger. âI didnât think I had to make a big song and dance about it when I show you how much I love you every day.â
The simple act of placing the ring on your finger speaks volumes. Itâs not just a gesture; itâs a declaration of his feelings, one that surpasses words. Jongseong has never experienced love before, has no frame of reference, but if all those tacky magazines in the prison recreational room were correct, this is what love is supposed to feel like. Itâs raw, sincere, and unfiltered.
Itâs willing to become a better person for them.
âI love you too,â you say softly, the words flowing from your heart with a new depth. Itâs the first time youâve uttered those words to someone who wasnât family, and the weight of the phrase carries a profound significance now. Itâs not just about affection; itâs about a deep, abiding connection.
Jongseongâs laughter fills the air, a rich, throaty sound that resonates with joy. You tilt your head, puzzled by his sudden amusement. âWhat?â
âWell, duh!â he says, his tone a mix of mock arrogance and genuine affection. âYou get googly-eyed every time you look at me. Even when I was getting carted off to prison, you were practically gushing over me - probably in more places than just your chest.â His gaze drops to your skirt, a cheeky smirk playing on his lips.
âOh my God, shut up!â you exclaim, playfully shoving him. But as you do, his balance falters, and he tumbles backward into the pool with a splash. The cold water surges around him, and you burst into laughter at the sight of his surprised, spluttering face.
Before you can fully enjoy the moment, Jongseongâs hand shoots out, grabbing your wrist and pulling you into the pool with him. The shock of the cold water envelops you, the fabric of your dress clinging uncomfortably to your skin.
âJongseong!â you cry out, trying to push him away as you sputter and splash him. âThis is Prada!â You gesture to your drenched dress, the expensive fabric now ruined.
âAnd thisâ he retorts with a grin, pinching the soggy fabric of his non-designer t-shirt, âis from the lost and found box.â He gives you a sheepish smile, but when he sees your unamused expression, he quickly adds, âOkay, okay, Iâll buy you a new one.â
âItâs ïżĄ700!â you protest, though thereâs a playful undertone in your voice.
âThen Iâll steal you a new one,â he quips, his tone light but earnest.
You fix him with a serious look, though your lips twitch with a suppressed smile. âIf you want me to keep this ring on,â you say, holding your hand out of the water to display the glinting band, âthen you need to promise me youâll stop stealing, and fighting, and anything else that could get you locked up.â Your voice grows more serious with each word. âI canât lose you.â
Jongseongâs expression softens as he takes your hand in his, pressing a tender kiss to the ring before placing your hand over his heart. âScoutâs honour. For you, Iâll be on the straight and narrow. I solemnly swear that I, Park Jongseong, will never commit another crime.â His tone is light-hearted, but the sincerity in his eyes assures you that this promise is different from the ones he made before.
Just as youâre about to respond, a booming voice interrupts. âHey! What are you two doing here?â
You both turn to see a security guard marching toward you, his face a mix of irritation and confusion. Jongseong glances at you with a sheepish grin, water dripping from his hair. âWell...starting now, Iâll commit no crimes.â
âHuh-â Before you can fully comprehend the situation, Jongseong is already dragging you out of the pool, his hand gripping yours tightly as you both scramble to your feet. You catch sight of the security guard sprinting toward you, his expression growing more determined.
âI thought you said your friend helped you out?â you huff as you run alongside him.
âYeah, my friend called Lockpick,â Jongseong replies with a grin that reaches his eyes, bending down to pick his ring up. âNow come on, letâs get out of here.â
Despite the chaos, you find yourself mirroring his bright smile. Maybe youâll let him commit some crimes after all - just as long as youâre along for the ride.
_____
The reflection in the mirror feels like a portal to the past, a glimpse into a version of yourself you thought youâd left behind. The long, opulent gown drapes elegantly over your frame, its intricate embroidery catching the light in a way thatâs both nostalgic and unfamiliar. The diamond earrings - a gift from your father on your 16th birthday - sparkle with a cold brilliance, a stark reminder of the expectations that have always weighed heavily on your shoulders. Your hair is styled in a sleek, elegant updo, every strand meticulously in place, as if you were once again the picture-perfect daughter in his carefully curated world.
Itâs been months since you last had to dress like this, stepping into a role that now feels more like a distant memory than a reality. But tonight is different. Tonight is a special occasion. Itâs the night of your fatherâs grand welcome-back party, a lavish affair meant to reintroduce him to the world of business after years behind bars. This event is more than just a celebration; itâs a calculated move to solidify his reputation as a formidable figure in the corporate world, a moneyed tyrant who, against all odds, has maintained his iron grip on power.
Despite the scandals that would have buried anyone else, your fatherâs influence remains unshaken. His business partners and corporate clients still stand by his side, drawn by the promise of wealth and the unspoken agreements that bind them together. Perhaps itâs the money heâs skillfully laundered for them over the years or the secrets heâs kept buried deep, that have ensured their loyalty. The room will be filled with men in tailored suits, their faces masked with polite smiles, but beneath the surface, a web of silent transactions and mutual dependencies will be at play.Â
You love your father, you really do, but big soirees like this have never been your thing. Attending them always felt like a chore rather than a time of relaxation and merriment. Maybe it was because of the prestige and pressure it was being your fatherâs daughter, or maybe it was the constant polite smile and meaningless interactions with people you didnât know that weighed down the atmosphere.
Either way, you had to show up for your father, just as you are now. He would be so disappointed if you missed this and you canât bear the thought. So you will put up with the uncomfortable attire for at least a night.
The good news is, one man will be by your side the entire night, a thought that washes over you like a wave of relief. Jongseong's presence brings you an immense sense of ease, though the prospect of him meeting your father for the first time still stirs a flutter of anxiety in your chest. It has to happen eventually, and what better setting than a crowded party where distractions abound?
Jongseong isnât a people person and he avoids interaction unless absolutely necessary. The only person he ever makes an exception for is you, which is why he agreed to accompany you tonight despite his discomfort. You know how much this evening will demand of him - being surrounded by a crowd so different from him, full of people who thrive on small talk and business banter. But he would do anything for you, simply because he loves you. And you know that no combination of words could ever fully express your gratitude for that.
As you twirl a strand of hair into place, you steal a glance at the ring on your finger, smiling at the symbolic silver. It puts some comfort into your chest even as you mentally brace yourself for whatever the night will bring. You step out of the bathroom and your eyes immediately find Jongseong. He stands in front of the free-standing mirror in your dorm room, struggling with his tie, wrapping it around and around, only to fumble with the knot.
A soft giggle escapes your lips, drawing Jongseong's attention. His head snaps up, and the frustration in his eyes melts away, replaced by a look of pure awe. His gaze softens, shimmering with admiration as he takes you in. It never seems to matter whether you're dressed in sweatpants or a ÂŁ5,000 gown - Jongseong always looks at you as if you are the only person in the world.
To him, you are. The only one who truly matters, anyway.
âHoly shit,â he mumbles, his hands dropping from the black silk tie as he stands there, completely mesmerised. He takes in how the dress hugs your waist, how your hair frames your face perfectly, and he suddenly feels unworthy to even be in your presence. âYou look so beautiful, darlinâ. You make diamonds look dull.â
Your heart flutters at his words, and you dip your head slightly, trying to hide the blush creeping up your cheeks. Slowly, you walk over to him, smiling softly. âThank you, Jjongie. You look really handsome,â you reply, your voice earnest and full of affection. And itâs true - he looks like something out of a wet dream, the kind you've had more times than youâd ever admit. The way his fitted black trousers accentuate his frame, the crisp white shirt that contrasts so beautifully against his tanned skin, and the fresh undercut that highlights the angles of his face - all of it makes you want to forget about the party entirely and lose yourself in him.
As you reach him, you gently take the tie he was struggling with earlier and start to tie it, your fingers deftly creating a Windsor knot that could rival any royal affair. Youâve done this countless times for your father, and the thought crosses your mind of how he might be feeling as he dons a suit for the first time in five years.
Jongseong tilts his head back slightly as you loop the end of the tie through, fidgeting like a restless child. âHold still,â you chide him with a playful roll of your eyes, amused by his toddler-like impatience.
âI fucking hate ties,â he grumbles, trying his best not to squirm as you pull the knot tight. Jongseong has never been one for formalwear; he despises suits with a passion. The only times heâs ever worn one have been for court dates and funerals, events that always seem to bring trouble in their wake. To him, the tie feels less like an accessory and more like a silk noose.
You sigh softly, nodding in understanding. âI know, baby, but please, just bear with it. Tonight is important.â Your voice is gentle, and you shoot him an apologetic glance as you finish adjusting the tie, making sure itâs perfectly in place.
Jongseong knows how much this evening means to you. Heâs also noticed the subtle changes in you ever since your father regained his freedom. Heâs not blind to the way youâve become a little more reserved, a little more cautious. He wonders if itâs just the anxiety of tonight or if itâs the looming reality that your father will soon learn about your relationship with him, along with his not-so-angelic extracurricular activities. Either way, Jongseong has been extra vigilant, more protective of you than ever.
You pin the tie bar in place, stepping back to admire your handiwork with a smile. âThere, not so bad, huh?â
âI feel like a circus attraction,â he mutters, resisting the urge to loosen the knot and unbutton the collar. Formalwear has never been his style, and tonight feels like heâs being paraded in front of an audience he wants nothing to do with.
You place your hands on his chest, rubbing small circles to ease the tension you can feel building beneath your palms. âI would come to see you perform every day,â you joke lightly, rising on your tiptoes to press a soft kiss to his lips. His mouth is warm, his lips soft, making you wish they were attached to yours every second of the day.
A smirk tugs at the corners of Jongseongâs mouth as his hands find their way to your hips, pulling you closer. He deepens the kiss, his tongue tracing the outline of your lips, the sensation causing your carefully applied Charlotte Tilbury Pillow Talk lipstick to smudge and transfer onto him. The kiss grows more intense, erasing all thoughts of the party, the people, and even the daunting meeting with your father. For a moment, itâs just the two of you, and nothing else matters.
But it canât last forever, as much as you wish it could. In an ideal world, Jongseong would rip the overpriced dress off your body, and the two of you wouldnât leave your dorm room for days. Yet, reality pulls you back, and with it, the obligations of the night. You reluctantly pull away, feeling the weight of the evening settling back into place.
Jongseong instinctively tries to follow your lips, but you step back, offering him a remorseful smile. âCâmon. We need to head downstairs. Sunghoon should be arriving to pick us up in a couple of minutes.â
At the mention of another manâs name, your boyfriendâs ears perk up, and his eyebrows knit together in suspicion. âSunghoon?â He practically spits the name out, his jaw tightening visibly. Thereâs an edge to his voice, one you recognise all too well.
You roll your eyes playfully, familiar with Jongseongâs lack of enthusiasm when another man is in the same room as you. âBabe, heâs just the driver for my parents. They insisted he pick us up,â you explain, your tone gentle but firm, hoping to diffuse his growing irritation.
Jongseongâs gaze softens a fraction, though a trace of his protectiveness lingers. âI could drive us,â he offers, his voice low, the implication clear. He wants to be the one to look after you, not someone he doesnât know.
Exhaling loudly, you shake your head and cross your arms. âIf you drive us, you wonât be able to drink. Now imagine being in a room full of upper-class businessmen and not one ounce of Jack Daniels in your system?âÂ
That gives Jongseong food for thought as he stands in silence, weighing up the pros and cons of an alcohol-free night next to pretentious laughter and fake compliments. He shivers at the thought, his body visibly shaking at the idea of sobriety.Â
The look on his face causes you to laugh and nod your head. âExactly. Now come on.â
Your boyfriend loosens his tie slightly, prioritising his comfort over meeting your fatherâs strict expectations. The simple gesture sends a ripple of unease through you, as if the crooked tie is a symbol of everything that could go wrong tonight. You wouldnât say youâre normally an uptight person, but moments like these set your nerves on edge, making every little detail feel like it carries immense weight.
As you pick up your handbag, you pause at the front door, bracing yourself for the conversation you know you need to have. Your heart races, fearing how Jongseong might react. âJongseong?â
âYeah, darlinâ?â he replies, his voice softening as he senses your hesitation.
You swallow, choosing your words carefully. âPlease donâtâŠembarrass me tonight.â
The words hang in the air, and you immediately regret how they sound. Jongseongâs expression shifts, confusion flickering across his face as he narrows his eyes. For as long as he has been yours, heâs never known you to be embarrassed by him. âWhen have I eve-â
âMaybe not embarrass, butâŠâ you interrupt, realising your words came out harsher than you intended. âJust donât be so overprotective or try to hunt down any man that looks at me or breathes next to me. I love you so much for it, but not tonight, okay? This is a big deal for my dad, and I need you two to get along.â
You see the surprise in his eyes as he processes your request. Despite your concerns, you canât help but adore his possessive nature - the way he scowls and asserts his claim over you in front of anyone he sees as a threat. The way he reacted to Sunghoonâs name even sent a thrill through you, though you knew tonight wasnât the time for that. You need him to dial it back, and surprisingly, he doesnât push back.
Instead, Jongseong simply takes the Prada bag from your hand, his fingers interlocking with yours. Thereâs a playful smile tugging at the corners of his lips, a sign that he understands your embarrassment isnât about him but about the high expectations your father holds.
âWeâll get along just fine, darlinâ. We already have so much in common. We can swap prison stories,â he jokes, but the humour is lost on you. Your gaze hardens, stern enough that it could turn anyone to stone, and he immediately raises the hand holding your bag in mock defence.
âOkay, okay. Iâll behave,â he promises, his tone shifting to a more sincere one. âBut if anyone speaks out of line about you, Iâm knocking them into next Thursday.â
You sigh, the tension easing slightly as you nod in agreement. âThank you,â you murmur, leaning in to peck his cheek in gratitude. The small gesture of affection helps to soothe the lingering anxiety, and as you walk him out the door, your heart feels a little lighter.
_____
As expected, when you arrive, the scene before you looks like something straight out of Jay Gatsbyâs wildest fantasies. The sprawling 13-bedroom mansion, once your childhood home, has been transformed into a shimmering spectacle of wealth. Guests are crowded around the grand entrance, their laughter and chatter spilling out onto the manicured lawn. The estate is alive with the hum of a party that promises decadence at every turn, a stark reminder of the world your father has clawed his way back into.
Despite the legal battles and the assets stripped from him, your father had been too cunning for the law. Heâd anticipated the fallout, shielding the most valuable pieces of his empire under your motherâs name. The house, the cars, even some of the art that adorns the walls - they all remained untouched, legally out of reach.
You take a deep breath, feeling the weight of the evening settle over you as you step out of the car. Jongseong is by your side in an instant, his presence a steady anchor amidst the swirl of luxury and status. His hand intertwines with yours, a silent promise that heâs with you every step of the way. Although he might be uncomfortable, his main priority is ensuring your happiness throughout the night.
As you both approach the entrance, the grandeur of the night unfolds around you. The glittering chandeliers cast a warm glow over the marbled floors, and the air is thick with the scent of expensive perfumes and cigars. The crowd parts slightly as you and Jongseong make your way inside, their eyes flicking toward you, assessing, judging, some with curiosity, others with veiled envy.Â
Jongseongâs grip on your hand tightens ever so slightly, a small but reassuring gesture. You glance up at him, catching the faintest smirk on his lips as he surveys the scene. Heâs out of his element here, but you can tell heâs already sizing up the room, assessing whoâs who and what role they might play tonight. Thereâs an edge to him that you canât help but feel guilty for, placing him in an environment that you know wonât accept him.
Even though his tattoos are covered and his criminal status is concealed behind the expensive suit you bought him, these people sniff out those who arenât like them, making it known by the judgement on their faces.
Gazing around, Jongseong quickly understands why youâve been so anxious about tonight. The reality of this world is even worse than anything he could have imagined. The opulence, the haughty faces, the way the guests carry themselves with an air of superiority - itâs suffocating. How you were raised among these people and managed to emerge with your spirit intact is beyond him, but it makes one thing abundantly clear.
âNow I know why you came begging me for a change of pace,â he whispers in your ear, his eyes never leaving the snobbish guests who seem to be measuring each other up as much as they are the room itself.
You twist your head to look at him, a curious expression on your face. âI did not beg,â you correct him, recalling your first encounter differently than he does, the memory bringing a smile to your lips.
Jongseong shrugs, a playful grin spreading across his face as he swings your bag lightly by his side. âWell, you certainly were begging the day I got out. What was it you said to me in the car?â he teases, eyes sparkling with mischief as your cheeks start to heat up at the memory. âThatâs it! It was âPlease, Jongseong, I canât take it-ââ
Your hand shoots up to cover his mouth, your eyes widening in playful horror, though a laugh escapes your lips before you can stifle it, making your attempt at scolding him lose some of its edge. âStop it! This is what I meant by behaving,â you warn, though your tone is more amused than stern.
Jongseong chuckles against your palm, his eyes softening as he leans in to kiss it gently before lowering it from his lips. âActually, you said not to get possessive,â he counters, still grinning. âYou should have been more specific.â
You shake your head, trying to suppress your own smile as you meet his flirty and playful gaze. He has a way of easing your nerves even in the most tense situation.Â
As you share a quiet laugh with Jongseong, the warmth of the moment is interrupted by the sudden approach of a familiar figure from your past. A woman with perfectly styled blonde hair and a designer dress that practically screams old money makes her way toward you, her smile wide and fake, the kind that never quite reaches the eyes. You recognize her immediately - Emily, a girl you once called a friend before your fatherâs fall from grace. Her presence alone is enough to make your stomach turn, knowing the kind of person she truly is.
âY/N! Oh my God, itâs been forever!â Emily exclaims, her voice dripping with an over-the-top enthusiasm that you know is completely fabricated. She flings her arms around you in a hug thatâs more for show than anything else, the scent of her expensive perfume cloying as it invades your senses.
You force a smile, stepping back slightly as you extricate yourself from her embrace. âEmily, itâs...good to see you,â you reply, keeping your tone polite but guarded. The last thing you want is to give her any ammunition, especially not tonight.Â
Itâs not just Jongseong that has to behave.
âI was just telling everyone how much I missed you,â she gushes, her tone oozing false sincerity as she waves her hand around, drawing attention to her perfect manicure. âI mean, itâs just been so sad without you around. How have you been? And your father - what a comeback, right?â
The mention of your father sends a pang of irritation through you, but you maintain your composure, nodding politely. âYes, itâs been a challenging time, but he is getting through it.â
Emily doesnât miss a beat, already shifting her focus as her eyes flicker over to Jongseong. Her smile widens, eyes sparkling with interest as she takes in his tall, imposing figure. âAnd who is this?â she asks, her tone dropping into something far more flirtatious. Without waiting for an introduction, she steps closer to him, batting her eyelashes in a way thatâs almost comical. âYou must be new around here. Iâm Emily,â she purrs, her hand reaching out to lightly touch his arm.
Jongseongâs expression shifts instantly, his easygoing demeanor turning icy cold. He doesnât flinch, but the look in his eyes makes it clear that her touch is entirely unwelcome. He slowly peels her hand off his arm, his disgust barely concealed. âJongseong,â he says curtly, his voice devoid of any warmth or interest.
Emilyâs confidence wavers, but she recovers quickly, trying to brush off his reaction as if it were nothing. âWell, Jongseong, if you ever need someone to show you around, Iâd be happy to-â
âNot interested,â Jongseong cuts her off, his tone sharp enough to slice through her facade. He shifts slightly, positioning himself closer to you, making it clear that heâs not here to entertain her or anyone else.
Emily's smile falters at Jongseongâs blunt dismissal, but sheâs not one to back down so easily. She adjusts her posture, regaining some of her poise as she leans in closer, clearly determined to salvage the situation. âOh, of course,â she says with a laugh that sounds more forced than genuine. âBut you know, sometimes it helps to have a fresh perspective. Someone who knows how these events work, who can help you navigate the crowd.â She casts a glance at you, her eyes flickering with something that resembles pity before she looks back at Jongseong, her flirtatious tone back in full force. âI mean, you wouldnât want to get lost in all this chaos, right?â
Jongseong doesnât even dignify her with a glance this time, his patience visibly wearing thin. He can feel the subtle shift in your posture, the way your hand tightens around his, signalling your growing irritation. The last thing he wants is for this interaction to ruin your night - or worse, to make you feel anything less than the incredible person you are.
He sighs softly, more to himself than anyone else, before turning his full attention to Emily, his expression hardening. âListen,â he begins, his voice low and steely, âI donât need anyone to navigate this place, least of all someone who doesnât know when to back off.â He steps even closer to you, his arm slipping around your waist possessively, pulling you snugly against his side. âIâm here with my girl. Sheâs all the perspective I need, and sheâs the only one Iâm interested in listening to.â
Emilyâs bravado crumbles further, her forced smile now barely holding together as she realises sheâs completely outmatched. The icy edge in Jongseongâs voice leaves no room for misunderstanding - her presence is neither wanted nor tolerated. She tries to laugh it off again, but it comes out as more of a strained chuckle. âWell, I didnât mean to intrude,â she mutters, clearly flustered, as she takes a small step back.
Jongseong doesnât let up, his gaze still fixed on her, making sure she fully understands. âYou did,â he replies bluntly, âbut you can fix that by walking away.â
You watch the exchange, feeling a mix of relief and admiration for the way Jongseong handled it. He didnât just brush Emily off - he shut her down in a way that left no room for further attempts. You canât help the smug smile that is etching onto your face.
Emily finally seems to get the message. With one last awkward smile, she turns on her heel and hurries off into the crowd, her confidence shattered. You let out a breath you didnât realise you were holding, the tension in your body slowly easing as she disappears from sight.
Jongseong looks down at you, his expression softening instantly as he brushes a strand of hair behind your ear. âYou okay?â he asks gently, his tone a stark contrast to the icy one heâd used just moments ago.
âYeah. Letâs go get a drink.â
âMusic to my fucking ears,â he laughs, pressing a tender kiss to the top of your head before letting you lead the way to the kitchen. The hum of the party surrounds you, but all you can focus on is the comfort of his presence.
As you walk, Jongseong asks, âWhy did she even come up to you? Didnât you say they all turned on you once they found out what your dad had done?â
You nod, casting a glance at the sea of faces that once belonged to people you called friends. Now, they wave at you as if the last five years of cold shoulders and whispered gossip had never happened. âYeah, but back then, they didnât know my dad had managed to keep a massive chunk of his money. While he might not be a billionaire anymore, heâs still a millionaire - and that matters more to them than a prison sentence.â
Jongseong raises an eyebrow, his expression a mix of incredulity and disgust. âSo they wouldâve stuck around if youâd just shown them your bank account?â
âPretty much,â you sigh. âBut Dad warned me not to flaunt the money heâd managed to save, just in case HMRC came snooping again. So when they thought our family lost everything, they ditched me without a second thought.â
You pause as the reality of it all sinks in, the bitterness of that betrayal still fresh. The socialite life was all you had known - luxury, parties, and a circle of 'friends' who thrived on status. But when your family needed support the most, they scattered like leaves in the wind, leaving you to navigate the fallout alone.
âDarlinâ,â he begins, his voice low and soothing as his thumb traces slow circles over your waist, pulling you closer to his side. âYouâre worth more than any thick-wallet prick in here,â he assures you, his tone filled with a sincerity that makes your heart swell. And you know he means it. If you were anything like the sea of people flooding your childhood home, he would never have given you a second glance.
But Jongseong saw the real you. From the moment his eyes locked onto yours in that cold, sterile visiting room, he knew there was something deeper inside of you - a spark, a fire that refused to be dimmed by circumstance. Itâs why he held you so close then, why he slipped that ring onto your finger with unwavering certainty, and why heâs fallen so madly in love with you. To him, you are the closest thing to perfection, a rare and beautiful soul in a world obsessed with superficiality.
Despite the designer clothes that drape your frame, Jongseong sees beyond the surface. He sees your heart - pure, honest, and untainted by the judgmental ways of those around you. He knows you crave something more, a life that pulses with thrill and adrenaline, and heâs vowed to give you just that until his last breath.
Reaching the bar tucked away in the back of the kitchen, Jongseong picks up two champagne glasses and hands you one. He watches the bubbles rise rapidly, a sign of the high quality, and it sparks a question in his mind.
âCan I ask something?â he begins, his tone careful.
âSure,â you reply, your gaze still lingering on the crowd outside.
âI know your dad still has money, but how is he allowed to keep making it if he stole millions? Surely that puts him on some sort of corporate blacklist?â
Before you can respond, a deep, familiar voice cuts through the air, stopping you cold. âWell, actually, son, no one can stop you from making money other than yourself.â
Your eyes widen as you whirl around to face him. Your father stands before you, looking nothing like the man you last saw behind bars. Heâs put together, polished, every bit the powerful businessman he once was. His suit is immaculate, tailored to perfection, and his cufflinks gleam, catching the light and silently broadcasting his wealth.
The transformation is startling. Gone is the weary, defeated figure you remember. In his place stands a man who looks like heâs never missed a day in the office, as though the years of scandal and incarceration were nothing more than a minor inconvenience. His presence is commanding, and itâs clear that the fall from grace hasnât stripped him of his confidence - if anything, itâs sharpened it.
Jongseongâs grip on your waist tightens subtly, a silent show of support as your fatherâs eyes sweep over the two of you. The tension in the room thickens, and you feel yourself shrinking under the weight of his gaze. The confidence youâve worked so hard to build falters, replaced by a shyness and timidity that Jongseong hasnât seen in you for a long time. Itâs as if youâve reverted to the woman you were when he first met you - uncertain, reserved, and desperate for approval.
This isnât the version of you that Jongseong knows and loves. Youâve grown so much since then - becoming strong, confident, and unafraid to live life on your own terms. Youâve finally broken free from the need to be a good girl for your father, embracing the freedom that comes with living for yourself. But that was easier when your dad wasnât standing right in front of you, his mere presence pulling you back into the shadows of your past.
Jongseong feels a pang of frustration as he watches you retreat into yourself. Everything heâs done - every word, every action - has been for your sake, to help you see your full potential. Even the blowjob he made you give as punishment on the cliff a few months ago was meant to ignite the spark inside you, no matter how harsh or cruel it might have seemed at the time. Because when you love someone, you want to see them thrive, to become the best version of themselves.
But as he watches your fatherâs influence pull you back, he realises that this whole life - the expectations, the wealth, the need for validation - holds you back from that. Your father is the anchor chaining you to a life youâve outgrown, and Jongseong knows that as long as heâs around, youâll never truly be free to be the person youâre meant to be. And thatâs what hurts him the most - seeing the woman he loves, whoâs fought so hard to break free, being dragged back into the very world sheâs been subconsciously trying to escape.
âWhoâs your friend?â your father asks, his tone dismissive as he deliberately reduces Jongseongâs role in your life to that of a mere acquaintance. He doesnât even spare him a glance, focusing instead on you with a look that makes your heart race with anxiety.
âDad, this is Park Jongseong. Heâs my boyfriend, actually,â you reply, but your voice grows quieter with each word, betraying the confidence that usually defines you.
It feels like being hit with a brick as you watch your fatherâs mean stare shift to Jongseong, sizing him up, looking for flaws, for any reason to disapprove. The tension is suffocating, and you canât help but feel the weight of your dadâs judgement pressing down on you.
Your fatherâs eyes narrow slightly, and after a moment of uncomfortable silence, he asks, âHow did you two meet?â
You hesitate, suddenly realising that the truth might not be the best option. You should have thought of something more palatable, maybe something like Tinder or Hinge - anything but the truth. Your mind scrambles for a safer answer, but before you can stutter out a response, Jongseong steps in, his hand tightening on your hip as he smiles confidently.
âPrison, actually,â he says, his voice smooth and unbothered.
Your fatherâs expression barely changes, but the atmosphere in the room grows even heavier. âOh? And what were you in for?â he asks, his tone as sharp as ever.
Jongseong meets your fatherâs gaze evenly, a hint of amusement flickering in his eyes. âNow, sir, you know thatâs the number one rule of prison - donât ask a man his crime.â
Your fatherâs lips press into a thin line. âWell, you know mine and you seem to want to dig your nose further into my business. Itâs only fair I know yours, considering youâre chasing my daughter.â
Jongseong almost laughs at the word âchasingâ as if he hadnât had you wrapped around his finger from the moment your eyes first met. âLetâs just say my conviction only landed me a few months and not five years.â
You nudge Jongseongâs side sharply, panic flaring in your chest. This isnât what you wanted. You wanted them to get along, for your father to see the man you love the way you do. But instead, it feels like theyâre circling each other, sizing each other up like adversaries in a game where youâre the prize. The tension between them is thick, and you can feel the clash of their personalities reverberating through the air.
Even with the sharpness of Jongseongâs words, your father doesnât flinch. Instead, he recovers with the kind of ruthless calm that only years of power and manipulation can teach. He steps closer, eyes narrowing as they lock onto Jongseong with cold precision.
âIs that so?â your father begins, voice low and dripping with disdain. âIâve always believed a manâs past speaks volumes about his future. What exactly does yours say?â
Jongseong doesnât back down, his grip on your waist firm, almost possessive. âIt says I learn, I adapt, and I move forward.â
Your fatherâs eyes harden, his lip curling into a sneer. âAdapting is for the weak. Real men donât make mistakes in the first place.â
Jongseongâs smile is icy, his eyes flashing with barely restrained anger. âIs that what you told yourself when you ended up behind bars? Or is that just the lie youâve convinced everyone else to believe?â
The words hit like a punch, and for a split second, something dark and dangerous flickers in your fatherâs eyes. But he quickly masks it with a cruel smirk. âIâd watch who youâre speaking to, kid.â
âOh, I am,â Jongseong replies, his voice steady but laced with venom. He leans in slightly, his gaze unwavering as he adds, âIâm just not a fan of the view, if Iâm being honest.â
Your fatherâs wicked grin tightens, the facade of civility cracking just enough to reveal the simmering rage beneath. He steps back, his eyes narrowing as he takes in Jongseongâs defiance. âYou think youâre clever, donât you? But cleverness wonât get you far in my world. Youâll find that out soon enough.â
Jongseong doesnât flinch, his expression hard as steel. âIâm not in your world. And I donât want to be.â
For a moment, the tension between them is palpable, a silent battle of wills that electrifies the air around you. Your fatherâs gaze flicks to you, his eyes cold and calculating, as if weighing his next move. Then, just as quickly, he turns on his heel, dismissing you both with a scoff.
The confrontation leaves you seething, a turbulent mix of anger and frustration churning inside you. You turn to Jongseong, your eyes alight with fury, the fire of your indignation barely restrained. âI told you this was important to me! Why would you speak to him like that?â Your voice is sharp, quivering with raw, unfiltered emotion that has been simmering beneath the surface, threatening to spill over.
Jongseong meets your gaze with a hardened expression, frustration and determination reflected in his eyes. âBecause, unlike you, Y/N, I donât have to pretend to be someone Iâm not in front of your dad.â
The accusation hits you like a slap, your eyes widening in disbelief. âWhatâs that supposed to mean?â you demand, your heart hammering against your ribs, the blood pounding in your ears.
Jongseong steps closer, his voice dropping to a lower, more deliberate tone, yet the weight of his words lands heavily. âLook at yourself. The moment you heard his voice, you shrank. Youâre biting your lip like you did when we first met - nervous, unsure. Iâm not exactly close with my own family, but Iâd say you shouldnât regress to a scared little girl just because your dad is around.â
His words strike a nerve, a pang of guilt mingling with your anger. The urge to defend yourself rises within you, but the sting of his observations cuts too deep, slicing through your defences. The bitter truth of it, undeniable as it is, leaves you reeling. The moment your father entered the room, all the strength and confidence youâve painstakingly built crumbled, leaving you feeling vulnerable, like the uncertain girl you once were.
You open your mouth to retort, but no words come. Instead, a flood of frustration and hurt surges through you, overwhelming your capacity to respond. Your hand shakes as you grab your drink, the glass cool against your skin, a stark contrast to the burning turmoil inside. Without a second thought, you down it in one long, desperate gulp, the sharp burn of alcohol barely registering as you push past Jongseong.
Your footsteps are heavy and determined, as you weave through the crowd, making your way out of the extravagant party and up the stairs to find some solace. You hear Jongseong call after you, but you donât turn back. His brutally honest words, coupled with your fatherâs oppressive presence, have left you feeling raw and exposed, your every nerve frayed.Â
You push open the door to your old bedroom, the wood groaning in protest as you force your way inside. The room is a ghost of your past, a time capsule of your childhood preserved in pale pink walls and delicate lace curtains. The bed, still dressed in floral sheets that once seemed so perfect, now feels foreign -Â too innocent. The room should have felt comforting, like a sanctuary. Instead, it feels like a cage, trapping you in a version of yourself you no longer recognise.
Jongseong is right behind you, his presence filling the doorway as he refuses to let you retreat into silence. âDonât walk away from me, Y/N,â he says, his voice low but firm, tinged with a desperation you rarely hear from him. âThis isnât how we do things.â He will always make sure that any argument that arises between you is figured out then and there, knowing how unresolved issues lead to cracks in any relationship, and he refuses to let your father be the hole in your boat.
You whirl around to face him, anger and hurt warring within you. âWell, sorry if being called a scared little girl by my boyfriend makes me not want to speak to him,â you snap, the words dripping with sarcasm and bitterness. The accusation still stings, a wound that refuses to heal.
Jongseong steps further into the room, closing the door behind him with a soft click. His expression is stern, but thereâs a flicker of pain in his eyes, a crack in his resolve that you canât ignore. âThen fight me on it,â he challenges, his voice rising with frustration. âBut you canât, can you? Because you know itâs true.â
You shake your head, the denial is quick and sharp. âItâs not, Jongseong. You just wouldnât get it.â
His laugh is bitter, cutting through the tense atmosphere like a blade. âWhy? Because Iâm not upper class and drinking my weight in champagne that costs more than your college tuition?â His words are laced with an edge, a defensive wall thrown up to protect himself from the hurt he feels.
You recoil, the accusation striking a chord you hadnât expected. âYou know I donât mean it like that.â
âThen what do you mean?â he presses, his gaze unwavering. âYou love me for who I am, right? Because class doesnât matter to you, and you see me for who I am?â
âExactly,â you reply, the word strong and meaningful. Itâs the truth - you do see him, all of him, you saw him as more than his prison uniform, you saw him as more than the scum society makes him out to be, you see him as your equal, not someone below you.
Jongseong takes a step closer, his voice softening as he reaches out to you. âThatâs exactly my point. I see you for everything you are, past the good girl and quiet mouse, because youâre more than that. Youâre confident, powerful, your mind is so fucking strong, baby. So why on earth are you turning into someone whoâs scared to even breathe too loud as soon as he steps in front of you?â
His words pierce through your defences, and you feel a familiar knot of anxiety tightening in your chest. âBecause, Jongseong, he would be so fucking disappointed in me,â you confess, the admission tumbling out before you can stop it. The weight of your fatherâs expectations, of the life heâs tried to mould you into, hangs heavy over you. âHe told me my entire life to stay out of trouble, to be a good girl, keep my nose clean, and just get through life. If he finds out I-â
You falter, the words catching in your throat. You canât bring yourself to finish the sentence, to admit the truth thatâs been festering inside you for so long.
Jongseong doesnât let you hide from it. âYou what? Actually found someone who makes you happy and lets you breathe?â His voice is intense, but thereâs an underlying gentleness to it, a plea for you to see what he sees. âY/N, heâs trapping you, and you canât even fucking see it. That first day you came to see me in prison, you told me you wanted to do something for you, something reckless. You want out of this life, Y/N, and heâs gonna drag you by the feet back into it. He might have gotten out of prison but heâs trapping you in one.â
His words cut through the fog of fear and doubt thatâs been clouding your mind, the truth of them undeniable. The life your father envisioned for you - a life of safety, of predictability - has always felt like a gilded cage, something that kept you comfortable, but never truly alive. The past few months with Jongseong have been a whirlwind, a taste of something real, something that makes you feel like youâre actually living instead of just existing. And yet, here you are, retreating back into old patterns.
Jongseong takes another step closer, his hands reaching out to cup your face, his touch warm and grounding. âIâm sorry but Iâm not going to watch the love of my life lose herself, all to please a hypocritical prick.â
The tears that have been threatening to fall finally spill over, and you close your eyes, letting the weight of his words sink in. Heâs right. You hate the mundane, prissy life youâve been living, the one that your father insists is the only right path for you. The past few months with Jongseong have been the most precious, the most real, moments of your life. But even as you were getting ready for tonight, you could feel yourself slipping back into those old, timid ways, the ones your father would approve of.
You open your eyes, meeting Jongseongâs gaze, and for the first time, you allow yourself to truly acknowledge the truth. The life your father wants for you isnât the one you want for yourself. And as terrifying as that realisation is, itâs also liberating.
Your voice trembles as you finally speak, the weight of everything crashing down on you. "Iâm sorry, Jongseong," you murmur, your words carrying a multitude of apologies: sorry for lashing out, sorry for dragging him to this party, sorry for trying to hide who he is from everyone downstairs who didnât even deserve to know him, sorry for all of it.
But before you can continue, Jongseong cuts you off, his voice firm but tender. âDonât you dare fucking apologise, darlinâ.â He pulls you into his arms, holding you so tightly that it feels like heâs trying to shield you from the world itself. His embrace is warm, strong, grounding - everything you need right now. âI just want you to be happy. It might come off as mean but if I have to thump it into your head by showing some tough love I will.â
His words are more than just a declaration; theyâre a vow. A promise that he will protect your happiness at all costs, even if it means standing against your father or anyone else who threatens it. You can feel the fierce determination in the way he holds you, as if heâs ready to take on the entire world if thatâs what it takes to keep you safe, to keep you smiling.
You look up at him, your eyes searching his, and what you see there makes your heart swell. Heâs not just saying these things - he means them, every single word. âI am happy,â you whisper, your voice soft but full of conviction. The truth of it warms you from the inside out because you know that your happiness isnât tied to the gilded expectations of your father or the superficial approval of those downstairs. Itâs here, in Jongseongâs arms, in the life youâre building together.
His eyes soften at your words, the tension in his shoulders easing slightly as he leans down. The moment hangs in the air, thick with unspoken emotion, and then his lips meet yours in a kiss that is tender, yet filled with all the passion and love thatâs been bubbling beneath the surface. The world around you fades away, leaving just the two of you, anchored in this shared moment of understanding and connection.
The kiss deepens, a slow, deliberate melding of lips that speaks of everything words cannot. His hand finds the clasp that is holding your hair neatly and unhooks it from your strands, his fingers threading through your hair as he draws you even closer, erasing the space between you. Thereâs a fervent intensity in the way he kisses you, as if heâs trying to pour every ounce of his love, his frustration, his devotion into this single moment. You respond in kind, your hands sliding up his chest to clutch at his shirt, needing to feel the solid warmth of him beneath your fingertips.
Your heart races, matching the rhythm of his as you lose yourself in the kiss, in him. The heat between you rises, a slow burn that spreads through your body, making you dizzy with the intensity of it. Every brush of his lips against yours, every breath you share, feels electric, sending shivers down your spine.
When you finally break apart, itâs only because you both need air, but even then, he doesnât pull away. His forehead rests against yours, his breath warm against your skin as he exhales shakily. Your eyes flutter open, meeting his gaze, and what you see there makes your breath hitch - a raw, unguarded love that leaves you feeling vulnerable yet more cherished than ever.
âIâm so in love with you,â he whispers, his voice rough with emotion, as if the kiss has stripped away all his defences. âIâd do anything for you, Y/N.â
You smile widely, joy and harmony finally flowing through your body for the first time tonight. The tension that had gripped you earlier is melting away, replaced by a warmth that spreads through your chest and settles deep in your bones. In this moment, with Jongseongâs love laid bare before you, everything else seems to fade into insignificance. Itâs just the two of you now, tangled in this shared vulnerability, and for the first time in a long while, you feel truly free.
You let out a soft, breathy laugh, shaking your head slightly as you take in the man standing before you - the man who has seen you at your weakest, yet loves you with a fierceness that makes your heart swell. Considering how you started as a good girl, falling into the dangerous allure of a criminal, you canât deny how far youâve come. The path youâve chosen has been anything but easy, but standing here now, it feels like itâs all been worth it.
Without another word, you lean in and capture his lips in another kiss, this one more deliberate, more purposeful. Itâs as if youâre reaffirming the connection you share, grounding yourself in the reality of his presence. Your hands slide up to cradle his face, your thumbs gently brushing over his cheekbones as you pour every ounce of your love and desire into the kiss.
Jongseong responds immediately, his arms wrapping around your waist to pull you closer, as if heâs afraid to let go. The kiss deepens, the heat between you growing as your bodies press together, the boundaries between you blurring until all you can feel is him - his warmth, his strength, his unwavering love.
As the kiss intensifies, you pull back just enough to catch your breath, your lips brushing against his as you whisper, âDoes doing anything for me include having sex with me on my childhood bed?â
The playful challenge in your voice brings a mischievous glint to his eyes. Jongseong smirks, his fingers tenderly wiping away the semi-dried tears on your cheeks, as if washing away the remnants of your earlier sadness. His touch is so gentle, so reverent, that it makes your heart ache with affection.
âWell,â he murmurs, his voice dropping to a low, intimate tone as he smirks down at you, âI did say anything.â Thereâs a teasing edge to his words, but you can see the heat in his eyes, the desire that matches your own.
He steps back slightly, his hands moving to the knot of his tie. With a slow, deliberate motion, he begins to loosen it, his eyes never leaving yours. The sight of him, his dark hair slightly tousled from your earlier embrace, the way his fingers work the tie free with a practised ease, sends a thrill through you. Itâs as if the act of loosening the tie is symbolic, a shedding of the constraints that have held you both back tonight.
As the tie finally slips free, Jongseong lets it fall to the floor, his smirk widening into a full, knowing smile. His gaze is filled with undeniable heat as he reaches for you again, his hands finding your waist and pulling you closer until thereâs no space left between you. âYou sure about this?â he asks, his voice a husky whisper against your ear.
âMore than sure,â you breathe, your hands sliding up his chest and around his neck as you pull him toward the bed. The thought of being with him here, in this room filled with memories of your past, feels like a reclamation of everything youâve fought to become.
Jongseong follows your lead, his hands never leaving your body as you guide him toward the bed. When the backs of your knees hit the edge of the mattress, you sink down onto it, pulling him with you. The look in his eyes, a mix of affection, desire, and something deeper, something primal, makes your pulse quicken.
He hovers over you for a moment, his hands braced on either side of your head as he looks down at you. The air between you is charged, electric, as if every breath, every touch is heightened by the intimacy of the moment. âYouâre so beautiful,ââ he murmurs, his voice thick with emotion, and then his lips are on yours again, claiming you with a fierce, possessive hunger.
Your fingers find the buttons of his shirt, and you begin to work them free, your movements impatient, driven by the need to feel his skin against yours. He lets out a low growl of approval as you push the fabric aside, your hands sliding over the smooth planes of his chest, tracing the contours of his body and tattoos as if memorising every line, every dip.
Jongseongâs breath hitches when your hands dip lower, and he meets your gaze with a look that is equal parts love and raw, unfiltered desire. âYou really want this, darlinâ?â he asks, his voice rough as his fingers brush against your cheek, his thumb tracing the curve of your jaw. âBecause you might not be walking straight down those fancy stairs of yours after this.â
You nod, your eyes locked onto his as you answer, your voice trembling with the weight of your emotions. âI want you. I need you.â
Thatâs all the encouragement he needs. With a smirk that sends a shiver down your spine, Jongseong leans down to capture your lips in another searing kiss. His hands begin to work on the fastenings of your dress with a sense of urgency, his touch both gentle and insistent. He slowly unzips the back of the dress, his fingers brushing against your skin as he pushes the fabric down.
As the dress falls, it reveals your bare chest, and the sudden chill of the air causes your nipples to harden instantly. Jongseongâs eyes darken with desire as he takes in the sight, his breath coming faster as he revels in the moment. His hands, now free of the dress, move to gently cup your breasts, his thumbs brushing over your sensitive nipples, making you gasp softly.
Jongseongâs hands continue to explore your body, his touch electrifying as it moves from your breasts down to your waist. He pauses for a moment, eyes locked with yours, his breath heavy with desire. With a deliberate slowness that makes your pulse race, he hikes up the skirt of your dress, the fabric bunching around your hips as his hands trace the length of your thighs. The anticipation is almost unbearable, your skin tingling everywhere he touches.
As his fingers brush against the lace of your underwear, a soft gasp escapes your lips, the heat between your bodies intensifying. Jongseongâs eyes flicker with a primal hunger, but thereâs still a tenderness in the way he touches you, a silent promise that heâs going to take care of you, to give you exactly what you need.
In response, your hands move with equal urgency, fingers trembling slightly as you reach for the button on his trousers. You can feel the tension in his body, the way his muscles tighten under your touch, the barely restrained power that lies just beneath the surface. The button comes undone with a quiet pop, and you begin to slide the zipper down, the sound barely audible over the heavy breathing that fills the room.
Jongseong lets out a low groan as you push his slacks down his hips, your hands brushing against his hardness through the thin fabric of his boxers. The sensation sends a jolt of desire through you, making you more impatient to feel him against you, inside you. You could start a new religion for his cock alone.
He leans down, capturing your lips in a fierce kiss, his tongue exploring your mouth with a newfound urgency. As his fingers slip beneath the waistband of your panties, he teases you, drawing out the moment until youâre practically trembling with need. His touch is both gentle and demanding, sending waves of pleasure coursing through your body.
You arch into him, your hips pressing closer as he slowly slides your panties down, his hands skimming over your skin in a way that leaves you breathless. Jongseongâs mouth leaves yours, trailing hot, open-mouthed kisses down your neck and across your collarbone, his breath warm against your skin.
âI want them to hear you,â he murmurs, his voice thick with desire, a promise of what's to come.
âJongseong-â your voice falters, cut off by the way his fingers dip between your thighs, tracing a slow, agonising path along your slick heat. The sound of your own gasp fills the room, and you can feel the tension winding tighter within you, ready to snap at any moment.
He smirks against your skin, a dark satisfaction in the way your body responds to his every touch, every word. "I need to hear you beg for it," he whispers, his teeth grazing your earlobe as he pushes his fingers deeper, coaxing more desperate sounds from your lips.
Your hands find his hair, tugging him closer as you grind against his hand, needing more, needing everything. "Please, Jongseong...I need you," you manage to gasp out, the words barely coherent as pleasure overtakes your senses.
He pauses, his breath hot against your ear as he lets out a low chuckle. "I know you can do better than that, darlin'," he murmurs, his voice laced with a teasing challenge. His fingers press deeper, curling just right, as he waits for you to give him exactly what he wants.
His words send a fresh wave of heat through you, pushing you closer to the edge. You moan, your body instinctively arching towards him, craving more of his touch. Your fingers dig into his scalp as you writhe against his hand, the building pressure almost unbearable.
"Please," you gasp, your voice trembling with need, "I need you so badly, Jongseong. I'll do anything...just, please."
His smirk widens, satisfaction gleaming in his eyes as he feels the intensity of your plea. "That's more like it," he growls, his voice deep and full of raw desire. He continues to work his fingers in and out of you, his rhythm slow and deliberate, keeping you on the edge.
"Youâre doing so well," he murmurs, his breath tickling your ear as his lips brush against your skin. "But I want to hear you scream my name, baby. Let me hear how much you want me."
Your chest heaves with each breath, and the pressure inside you becomes almost too much to handle. You nod frantically, your voice a desperate plea as you finally give in, letting out a loud, passionate cry that fills the room. Jongseongâs eyes light up with approval, his fingers and lips moving with even more intensity, pushing you towards the edge with an insistent rhythm.
With a low growl of approval, Jongseong finally sheds the last of his clothes, his eyes locking onto yours with a hungry intensity. He positions himself at your entrance, and the first thrust is a slow, deliberate invasion that fills you completely. A moan escapes your lips, resonating through the room and mingling with the soft rustle of the sheets beneath you.
He holds himself still for a moment, savouring the way you clench around him, feeling every shiver that ripples through your body. His eyes roam over your flushed skin, admiring the way your chest rises and falls with each ragged breath. âYou feel incredible,â he murmurs, his voice thick with desire. âSo tight around me.â
Gradually, he begins to move, each thrust steady and deep, pushing you further into the realms of pure, unadulterated ecstasy. His hands grip your hips firmly, guiding you to match his rhythm. âThatâs it,â Jongseong growls. âFeel every inch of me, darlinâ. It belongs to you anyway.â
His words ignite a new fire within you, and your body responds with a frenzied energy. You feel every ridge, every curve of him, each thrust driving you wild with desire. âJongseong,â you gasp, your voice trembling with need, âmoreâŠâ
His pace quickens, becoming urgent and insistent, the pleasure building to a nearly unbearable crescendo. The room is filled with the heady mix of your moans and the rhythmic sound of flesh meeting flesh, each noise echoing off the walls and creating a chorus of raw, primal passion.
With a sudden shift, Jongseong pulls back slightly, his hands guiding you to a new position. He flips you onto your side, his movements smooth and fast, a mixture of desire and intent in his eyes. You roll over and get a surge of anticipation as Jongseong positions himself behind you, allowing him to enter and hit you deeper than before, giving you that âmoreâ you so desperately craved.
Jongseongâs thrusts are now angled upward, hitting a spot that makes you gasp with each push. The sensation is overwhelming, a blend of deep, rhythmic pressure and the intimacy of your shared movements.
âIs this what you needed?â Jongseong asks breathlessly, his voice filled with a rough, almost primal edge as he adjusts his rhythm to match the new position. âTell me how it feels.â
Your answer comes out as a moan, your words mingling with the sounds of your combined pleasure. âYes, Jongseong,â you manage to gasp, âItâs so deep, so perfect.â
As he continues to thrust into you, Jongseongâs lips find your neck, his kisses soft and heated against your skin. He trails his mouth up and down your neck, each touch sending shivers down your spine. His breath is warm and tantalising, his kisses growing more insistent as he marks you with his mouth.
You can feel his tongue flicking against your skin, each kiss more urgent than the last. His teeth graze gently, then with a bit more pressure, leaving a trail of kisses and marks that grow darker with each pass. âYouâre mine,â he murmurs between kisses, his voice a deep, possessive growl. âI want everyone to know.â
The sensation of his lips and teeth against your neck only heightens the pleasure you're already experiencing. Each mark is a vivid reminder of the passion that drives you both, a tangible sign of the intensity and connection you share. âJongseong,â you gasp, feeling the combination of his thrusts and the trail of kisses that map your neck. âPlease, donât stop.â
But you mean it in every sense - don't stop fucking you, as though every thrust and every shuddering release is a lifeline. Donât stop loving you, as though the depth of his affection and the way he holds you close is your greatest comfort. Donât stop pushing you to be who you are, to embrace every part of yourself, to feel alive in his arms and in his gaze. You want him to keep driving you to discover and explore every hidden part of yourself, to keep challenging and encouraging you in ways you never imagined.
He responds with a low, approving growl, his hands gripping your hips tightly as he drives into you with renewed fervour. âI wonât,â he promises, his voice rough with desire and a depth of emotion that goes beyond the physical. âNever.â
As he continues to thrust into you, his movements become more intense, more urgent, as if heâs trying to convey his promise with every powerful push. The room seems to pulse with the rhythm of your shared passion, the sounds of your pleasure echoing off the walls. Jongseongâs grip on your hips tightens, his touch both possessive and protective as he guides you through the waves of ecstasy.
âFeel every part of me,â he murmurs, his voice a blend of tenderness and raw need. âIâm right here, with you, always.â
The intensity of his thrusts pushes you closer to the edge, each movement sending shivers of pleasure through your entire body. His kisses become more fervent, each one a reminder of his love and his commitment. You can feel his heart pounding against your back, a steady, reassuring presence that matches the rhythm of his thrusts.
âYouâre everything to me,â Jongseong says, his voice breaking slightly with the force of his emotions. âDonât ever doubt that.â
Your breath comes in ragged gasps as you ride the waves of pleasure heâs giving you. His words, combined with the sensation of him inside you and the way his lips leave their marks on your neck, create a powerful cocktail of intimacy and desire. âI donât,â you manage to breathe out, your voice filled with a mix of pleasure and gratitude. âI never will.â
With a final, deep thrust, Jongseong brings you both to the peak of your shared climax. Your body convulses in waves of pure, unadulterated bliss, each shudder and moan a testament to the intensity of your connection. Jongseongâs release follows closely, his groans mingling with yours as he holds you tightly, his kisses now soft and tender against your neck.
As the initial rush of pleasure begins to subside, your muscles gradually unwind, each tremor giving way to a lingering afterglow. The room is filled with the soft symphony of your synchronized breathing, the steady rise and fall of your chests in perfect harmony. Jongseongâs kisses on your neck become gentle, almost reverent, as he trails a tender path of affection across your skin.Â
You feel his body relax against yours, his warmth enveloping you in a cocoon of intimacy. He pulls your face to his, capturing your lips in a deep, tender kiss that steals away the breath you had only just regained. Lost in the peacefulness of him, you savour the slow, lingering connection, each touch and caress a silent expression of his affection.
âLetâs get out of here, yeah?â Jongseong murmurs against your lips, his voice low and inviting, his breath warm against your skin.
You nod, a contented smile spreading across your face. âYeah, letâs do it,â you reply, your voice filled with unwavering resolve, knowing that the moment you step out of this place you once called home, youâll never look back. He grins, playfully nudging your nose with his, his eyes sparkling with a mix of affection and mischief. âIf Emily even looks at you again when we go down there, I might just rip her eyes out.â Jongseong is sexy all of the time but he is even sexier with a post-sex glow, so you know there are going to be some eyes on him, a pair of them just better not be hers.
Jongseongâs laughter fills the room, a deep, resonant sound that carries a note of both joy and possessiveness. He rests his head on your shoulder, planting light, affectionate kisses. âAnd to think, I was the one who was supposed to keep my cool and not get possessive,â he teases, his voice light and full of warmth.
âYouâre not the only possessive one in this relationship, you know?â you reply with a soft smile, a hint of playfulness in your tone. âI just donât show it as much.â
He raises an eyebrow, his grin widening as he shifts slightly, still buried to the hilt inside you. âI think you should show it more often,â he suggests, his voice low and laced with a delicious hint of provocation. âIâd let you put a collar on me and walk me like a dog if you asked.â
âDonât tempt me,â you giggle, your laughter mingling with his as the intimate moment stretches between you, the connection deepening with every shared breath.
Eventually, you both begin to move, your limbs heavy with the lingering remnants of passion. The atmosphere shifts as you get dressed, pulling on your clothes with deliberate slowness, savouring the last few moments of solitude before reentering the world outside this room. The extravagant party downstairs beckons, the muffled sounds of music and laughter a distant hum, reminding you of the life youâre about to leave behind.
As you descend the grand staircase, the chandelier above casts a golden glow, illuminating the room filled with elegantly dressed guests, all of whom are focused on your father as he prepares to make a speech. The moment his eyes land on you and Jongseong, he falters, his gaze narrowing as he takes in your dishevelled appearance. His jaw tightens, and though he says nothing, the tension in the room shifts, a subtle ripple that everyone seems to sense. He knows exactly what youâve been doing.
At the bottom of the stairs, you pause, a flicker of uncertainty crossing your mind. The opulence of this life, the weight of the expectations youâve carried for so long, all press down on you. For a brief moment, doubt gnaws at the edges of your resolve.
Sensing your hesitation, Jongseong wraps his arms around you from behind, his presence grounding you in the here and now. He presses a tender kiss to your neck, soothing the marks he left there, his lips warm and reassuring against your skin. He keeps direct eye contact with your father, an unspoken challenge in his gaze, before turning his attention back to you.
âLetâs go, darlinâ.â
And thatâs all the encouragement you need to leave everyone in this room behind, everyone but the man holding you close, promising to love you forever.
_____
You sit across from each other in a worn red booth, the familiarity of the setting wrapping around you like a comforting embrace. The walls are adorned with faded photographs and vintage memorabilia, a tribute to a simpler time that feels worlds away from the chaos that often surrounds your lives. The table between you is cluttered with half-eaten plates of food - greasy fries, a burger with a bite taken out of it, and a tall milkshake slowly melting in its glass. Itâs a scene of domesticity, of normalcy
âIâm sorry, but not even anything in prison was that disgusting,â he quips, his eyebrows raised in exaggerated horror.
You canât help but laugh at his theatrics, the sound bubbling up from deep within you. The way he looks at you like youâre the only person in the world who matters, even with your food combination choices, makes your heart swell with affection. âCome on, just try it! I promise youâll love it,â you urge, holding out a fry that you have dipped in your milkshake, your eyes sparkling with playful challenge.
Jongseong hesitates for a moment, then leans forward and takes a tentative bite. His expression shifts from scepticism to genuine surprise as the sweet and salty combination hits his taste buds. His eyes widen, and he breaks into a grin. âSee?â you say, triumphantly, as he reaches for more fries, dipping them into the ice cream and stealing them from your plate.
âGet your own, oh my God!â you protest, swatting his hand away with a laugh, though thereâs no real annoyance in your voice. Itâs moments like these - small, stolen snippets of happiness - that make everything else worth it. The world outside might be chaotic, but here, in this little diner, itâs just the two of you, lost in each other.
But the illusion of safety is fragile. As youâre caught up in the moment, a subtle shift in the atmosphere catches Jongseongâs attention. A police car pulls up outside, its lights off but the engine still running. You barely notice it, too wrapped up in your banter, but Jongseong stiffens, his senses on high alert. His gaze follows the officers as they exit the car with a sense of purpose, their strides firm and unyielding as they approach the entrance.
You feel a prickle of unease, a small knot forming in your stomach as you notice Jongseongâs change in demeanour. His playful smile fades, replaced by a mask of cool detachment, his eyes darkening with the familiar wariness that never quite leaves him. The joy that lit up his face moments ago vanishes, leaving behind the hardened edges of a man whoâs been on the run for far too long.
The officers push through the dinerâs doors, their presence commanding immediate attention. They donât bother with the usual pretence of surveying the room; their eyes are locked on your table from the moment they step inside. Your heart races as they approach, each step closer fueling your growing sense of dread.
âPark Jongseong?â one of the officers asks, his tone clipped and authoritative, as they come to a stop in front of your booth.
Jongseong doesnât flinch. âWhoâs asking?â he replies, his voice steady, laced with a defiant edge. Heâs been here before, too many times to count, but it never gets any easier. The threat of losing his freedom, of being torn away from you, is always looming, always just one misstep away.
The officerâs gaze sharpens, not missing a beat. âYouâre under arrest for theft. Anything you do or say can and will be used against you in a court of lawâŠâ
Your heart skips a beat, the words hitting you like a punch to the gut. Your mind reels back to the bank job you both pulled off, the thrill of it now tainted by the cold reality closing in around you. Jongseong remains unfazed on the surface, but you can see the flicker of realization in his eyes, the way his jaw tightens ever so slightly.
âYeah? And what exactly did I steal?â Jongseong challenges, his tone dripping with sarcasm as he stands up, squaring his shoulders, ready for the confrontation. He never liked the police for obvious reasons, but what makes it worse is when they hound him like this when he has done nothing wrong.
The bank you robbed months ago would have already sent him to prison if they knew it was him, and any of the other petty crimes donât require four policemen and a van.
The officer doesnât back down, keeping his tone calm but firm. âMr. L/N has reported his diamond cufflinks missing, and when we searched your place, we found them.â
Your boyfriend lets out a harsh laugh, the sound bitter and incredulous. âYeah? First of all, you canât search my home because I donât have one. Second of all, you need a warrant for that, donât you?â But even as he speaks, you can see the gears turning in his mind. If your father is behind this, as it now seems, the situation is far worse than heâd anticipated.
Your dad is far more powerful than you could ever imagine. That time in prison only gave him more contacts than enemies, and with Jongseong just another fish in a pond, they will happily throw him back to the sea with the right amount of persuasion.Â
Before Jongseong can react, the officer pulls out a pair of handcuffs, snapping them around his wrists with practised ease. He struggles, but itâs no use, the cuffs hold firm, and the officers arenât about to let him go.
âJongseong!â you cry out, desperation lacing your voice as you rush to him, placing yourself between him and the officers. Your hands cradle his face, trying to keep him grounded, to keep him from doing something reckless. His eyes soften as he looks down at you, trying to offer a reassuring smile, but you can see the worry etched into his features.
âItâs okay, darlinâ. Theyâve got nothing on me,â he says, his voice gentle, but you both know the truth: if your father is pulling the strings, thereâs no telling how deep this goes. Heâs trying to comfort you, to make you believe that everything will be fine, but thereâs a part of him thatâs not so sure.Â
âBut-â you start, only to be silenced by the press of his lips against yours. The kiss is soft at first, a promise of return, but it quickly turns desperate, as if heâs trying to memorise the feel of you, to hold onto this moment in case itâs the last. Itâs a kiss that tells you everything you need to know - heâs scared, and so are you.
You canât lose him.
The officers pull him away, and you watch helplessly as Jongseong is dragged out of the diner and shoved into the back of the police car. His face, once full of life and laughter, is now clouded with that deadpan stare. You run out after him helplessly and fear for what will come coursing your veins.Â
Through the window, he mouths the words, âI love you,â and you nod, tears blurring your vision as you choke out the response, âI love you too.â
As the police car drives away, taking him with it, the world around you seems to crumble, leaving you standing alone in the dinerâs driveway. Your phone buzzes in your pocket, snapping you out of your daze. You pull it out, and your heart sinks when you see the message from your father: âCome home, princess. Be a good girl.â
The words ignite a fire in you, a seething anger that burns hotter with every passing second. You clench your fists, your eyes falling on the ring Jongseong gave you - the promise of a future together, a future youâre determined to fight for. You made a vow to him, to wait for him no matter what, to stand by his side through thick and thin. But before you can keep that promise, thereâs one last obstacle you need to overcome.
Your father.
_____
Park Jongseong audio
context : Jay relieving himself after his collaboration in Japan.
Whos mtl to cum in their pants?
ughhhhhh anon ur brain !!!!
enha hyung line + jungwon
jake
this one is kinda self explanatory i think. jake is a fucking drooling mess 99% of the time (hello oral fixation!) and he won't be able to control himself. i once wrote him cumming completely untouched while motorboating some titties so yeah... jake's absolutely cumming in his pants and i think he probably does it often. he won't ever get embarrassed either because he likes the mess, and he'll get immediately hard again.. lol i think jake gets worn out quickly but his body is always ready, poor baby doesn't have enough stamina to keep up with his own cock :( mostly because when he cums, he cums so hard that it almost always just wipes him out
jungwon
oh my god.. needy, whiny jungwon agenda continues... jungwon is absolutely cumming in his pants. and often, especially if you're teasing him!! he'll try to last long, but with you jerking him inside his underwear or grinding on him through your clothes, the sensation is too much and he's gonna cum because he can't control it! jungwon would never survive edging, truly.
jay
mm. this one's unique because i think jay would cum in his pants whilst trying to please his partner. he won't even notice that he's brought himself over the edge just from giving you pleasure, but he does, and it doesn't bother him. he's too focused on making sure you have a mind blowing orgasm to worry about how sticky his pants are now. i love him so much...
heeseung
heeseung will cum in his pants. he will, but it's a rare occurrence. i think he'd bust early if he hasn't hit in a while, but otherwise, he's able to hold it until he's burying his dick in one of your holes. why waste the cum on his underwear when he could shove it down your throat or breed you with it? so he avoids it at all costs
sunghoon
sunghoon, as sensory driven as he is, never cums in his pants. sunghoon doesn't mind getting messy, especially because of his oral fixation, but i feel like him cumming in his pants would totally kill his mood. sunghoon is a very neat guy, and i'm not saying he doesn't like messy sex! but i think he'd absolutely hate cumming in his pants.
STOP IâM LITERALLY SOBBING
IâVE NEVER CRIED THIS HARD BECAUSE OF A FIC BEFORE đđđ
Our Life | P.JS
jay x reader warnings: fluff, angst, smut (mdni), unprotected sex, cum plugging, oral (f.rec), major theme of death and grievance, character death, mentions of alcoholism (very slight, not for mcs), descriptions of pregnancy and birth, strangers to married couple trope, insane amount of fluff, verging on soulmate au, hopeful ending even though it's sorrowful, some parts not proof read, anything else lmk! wc: 34.8k synopsis: one year after his wife passed away, jongseong reflects back on his life, causing him to miss you more than ever a/n: hi! writing this jay fic has come at a really funny time in my life. it's just a fic, i know, but for some reason i'm writing it so personally - a lot of this has to do with me or how i view things, the relationships i have had with my loved ones etc. this fic is the manifestation of the love i want and love i hope everyone experiences. i know we all deserve to have someone care about us so much that we feel safe and cherished. you deserve to be happy, i hope we all find that person. as always, reblogs, comments and feedback is all welcome! i also cried like 5 times writing this so...be warned.
*this fic has serious themes of death, please do not read if this upsets you or makes you uncomfortable! nothing is murder and nothing is violent, but i understand this theme can be upsetting for people!
As Jongseong hears the door of his house gently push open, he can already hear the familiar sound of tiny feet racing towards him. Moments later, the littlest one, Minji, bursts into the room, her laughter bubbling over as she makes a beeline for her great-grandfather.
âPoppy!â she cries, her small arms already outstretched, launching herself into his lap. Thankfully, Jongseong is seated in his favourite recliner so that helps him catch her. A warm smile plasters on his face, ready for her joyful embrace. Minji, at just five years old, is a whirlwind of energy, always eager to shower her great-grandfather with affection. Sheâs a bundle of life that never fails to brighten the room.
Minhee, her older brother, is a little more restrained. At nearly eleven years old, heâs beginning to see himself as too grown-up for such open displays of affection, though Jongseong catches the fond glint in his eyes. Minhee hovers near the door, perhaps torn between maintaining his cool exterior and giving in to the pull of family warmth.
The children call him âPoppy,â a sweet nickname coined by their mother, Ara, when she was a child. Grandad and Poppa had apparently been too much of a mouthful for her, and the name stuck through the generations. Jongseong smiles to himself, recalling how it all began.
As he waits for Ara to follow them in, Jongseong is pleasantly surprised when Jeyou steps through the door instead. His son, of course, a father himself, offers him a smile thatâs full of love and history. Jongseongâs eyes twinkle as Jeyou enters, taking in the sight of his son with a mixture of pride and nostalgia. So many years had passed, and yet, in moments like this, they seemed to collapse in on themselves, leaving just the simple pleasure of being surrounded by family.
And this day a little more bearable.
"Got yourself a couple of shadows today, havenât you, Dad?" Jeyou says, glancing at Minji who has made herself comfortable on her great-grandfatherâs lap, her head tucked under his chin.
"Ah, wouldnât have it any other way," Jongseong replies, his voice low but full of warmth. He places a gentle hand on Minjiâs back, feeling her soft breathing as she calms down from her excited entrance. "Though, I expect youâll be getting the same treatment soon enough with your old age."
Jeyou chuckles and shakes his head. "Oh, sheâs all yours for now. Araâs just grabbing some things from the car, but sheâll be in soon. Couldnât resist having her kids run ahead."
Jongseong nods. That sounded just like Ara. Always the one to let the children take the lead, full of the same unbridled energy sheâd had as a child. Even now, as an adult, she managed to keep that spark.
"Minhee," Jeyou calls, his voice gentle but nudging. "Arenât you going to say hello to Poppy?"
Minhee hesitates for a moment, then steps forward. His gangly limbs betray his preteen awkwardness as if he's still adjusting to his growing frame. He shuffles over, his eyes on the floor, before glancing up at Jongseong with a shy smile.
"Hey, Poppy," he mumbles, and though his words are quiet, thereâs warmth in his gaze.
"Come here, son," Jongseong beckons, and Minhee approaches. He leans down for a brief hug, one thatâs a bit stiff but no less genuine. Jongseong pats his great-grandson on the back, feeling the familiar ache in his chest - an ache that comes from seeing the passage of time so vividly in the people you love.
Minhee quickly retreats to the sofa, where he pulls out a book from his rucksack, burying his nose into it as if he hadnât just shared a tender moment. Jongseong chuckles softly, knowing well that Minheeâs quiet affection is just as real as Minjiâs exuberant embrace.
"Just like you at his age," Jongseong remarks to Jeyou.
Jeyou raises an eyebrow. "Was I that shy?"
"Not shy, just...reflective," Jongseong murmured, his gaze softening as memories of Jeyouâs childhood flashed before him. Even as a boy, Jeyou had always been deep in thought, though there had never been a shortage of mischief hiding behind those thoughtful eyes.
But before they could slip too far into the past, the familiar sound of the front door creaking open stirred the present moment. Ara swept in, arms full of bags, her bright smile instantly lighting up the room.
"Thereâs my favourite man," she called out cheerily, her voice as warm as always. She placed the bags by the door and, in her usual way, let her gaze travel from her children to her father before finally settling on her grandfather. The fondness in her smile deepened as she approached him.
"Hello, Poppy," she said softly, bending down to press a kiss to his cheek. "How are you feeling today?"
Jongseong reached for her hand, his grip gentle but steady. "Better now that youâre all here," he replied, his voice tinged with a quiet sincerity.
Today wasnât an easy day, and everyone in the room knew it - except for Minji, who was too young to understand the weight the date carried. The family had gathered not just for the usual visit but to offer comfort, to keep his mind occupied. Jongseong had been dreading this day for over a week, the memories from years past creeping into his thoughts, but seeing his loved ones around him made it a little more bearable.
Ara steps back to look around the room, her hands resting on her hips as if surveying a scene she knew by heart. "Right, then. Whoâs up for a cup of tea?" she announced, though she didnât wait for a reply. She already knew her answer.
Disappearing into the kitchen, she busied herself with the kettle, placing three cups in front of her and tossing teabags into each. The familiar clink of porcelain and the hum of the kettle filled the air, blending with the gentle sounds of the family settling in. Jeyou, already feeling at home, sank into the couch, his gaze drifting to his father.
"So," Jeyou began, his tone casual but laced with concern, "has the doctor called you yet about your heart? Your reviewâs coming up in a few weeks, isnât it?"
Jongseong let out a soft sigh, not wanting to weigh the room down with his health concerns, but knowing it was pointless to brush it off. "Not yet. Theyâre supposed to get back to me soon, but you know how these things go."
In his mind, his heart is as fit as a fiddle despite the pieces shattered and medical scans telling him otherwise. Being seventy-six puts him at that age where he doesnât quite fuss over the little things anymore, knowing that when he starts to go, itâs his time. His family donât quite see it that way, but they always had a knack for worrying.
They get that from you.
Ara returns from the kitchen with a tray of steaming mugs, setting two on the coffee table and one on the side stroller Jongseong uses as a side table. Itâs old and itâs definitely not supposed to be purposed for keeping his things close by, but he does it this way anyway.Â
âYouâre running low on milk and sugar, Poppy,â she states, smiling softly. Itâs not like Jongeong to let things run to the last drop, but she supposes itâs probably the last thing on his mind these days.Â
âThanks, sweetheart,â Jongseong returns her kind expression and sits comfortably in his chair.
Jeyouâs eyes drift from the steaming tea on the table to the two untouched cups sitting beside it, their contents long gone cold. His gaze then falls on the doset box, where yesterday's and this morning's pills sit neglected in their transparent slots. A dull ache forms in his chest, growing heavier with each passing second. Itâs not like his father to forget things like this. Something in his stomach twists - an unsettling feeling that only deepens when he looks over at Jongseong.
His father, seated comfortably in the old recliner, is absentmindedly running his fingers through Minjiâs hair, but his expression is distant. His eyes, usually full of life, are clouded, as though heâs drifting somewhere far away. Jeyou knows that look too well, his father isnât here in this moment, not really. Heâs somewhere in the past, locked in thoughts he wonât share with anyone.
"Kids," Jeyou says, his voice firmer than usual, "why donât you go play outside? Itâs too nice for you to stay in here."
Minji, always eager for an adventure, springs from her great-grandfatherâs lap and dashes towards the garden, her giggles trailing behind her like sunshine. Minhee lingers a bit longer, his hesitation clear, but a quick glance at his grandfatherâs face tells him everything he needs to know. This was one of those moments where the grown-ups needed to talk. With a quiet nod, Minhee follows his sister outside, leaving the room heavy with unspoken words.
Jeyou scoots forward on the couch, his hands clasped tightly, his heart feeling as if itâs weighed down by a stone. "Dad," he begins, his voice thick with concern, "are you sure youâre looking after yourself?"
As expected, Jongseong forces out a laugh, the sound strained and far from genuine. "Of course I am. What kind of question is that?" He waves his hand dismissively, as if brushing away his sonâs worry could somehow make it disappear. But Jeyou can see the cracks in his fatherâs defences, no matter how hard he tries to hide them.
Ara steps in before Jeyou can push further, her eyes soft but her tone direct. "You look really tired, Poppy," she says, careful not to let too much of her worry spill into her words. She doesnât mention the state of the kitchen, though itâs hard to ignore. The counters are cluttered with dirty dishes, empty food wrappers, and crumpled paper towels. Itâs a far cry from the meticulous space Jongseong used to keep, everything in its place, nothing left unattended. His once-pristine kitchen now looks like itâs seen better days, like heâs given up on keeping it tidy.
And his appearance - Ara notices that too. His hair, usually slicked back with the neatness he always took pride in, now lies flat and lifeless, as though he hadnât bothered with it at all. Even his clothes seem carelessly thrown on, lacking the care he once put into his daily routines.
"Iâm okay, I promise," Jongseong says, offering a weak smile that doesnât quite reach his eyes.
But they all know better. Heâs far from okay, and they can see it in every little detail. His body may be failing, but itâs his spirit that seems most worn down. And thatâs not something any doctor could fix with medication or surgery.
Jeyou sighs, the weight of his fatherâs stubbornness pressing down on him. He knows how difficult it is for Jongseong to open up, especially about something as delicate as his feelings. "Dad, I know it must be tough on you today, with Mumâs anniversary," Jeyou says softly, his voice cracking slightly at the mention of her, "but please, donât neglect yourself. We need you here. We canât lose you too."
The room falls silent, the air thick with unsaid things. Jongseongâs face twitches for just a moment at the mention of his late wife, and Ara, sitting by her fatherâs side, silently curses him with a sharp nudge to his ribs. Her eyes flicker with disapproval, not wanting to mention you so blatantly.
With his smile faltering, Jongseongâs eyes begin glazing over once more as he looks away, as though staring too long into his childrenâs worried faces might break him. "Iâm alright," he murmurs again, softer this time, but no one in the room believes him.
It has been a year since you passed, and while it was easy to put on a brave face for months, something about knowing he has been without you for one entire year puts him in misery, the same misery he felt the day he found you laying on your shared bed, last gasps of breath already evacuated from your body.
jongseongâs heart, once full of love and purpose, now feels unbearably heavy without you. Itâs not just the grief that weighs him down - itâs the love. A love that has nowhere to go, nothing to cling to. For over fifty years, his heart beat with the rhythm of your shared life, the quiet moments and laughter you wove into the years together.Â
Now, without you, all that love is left to pool within him, filling the empty spaces with a bittersweet ache. He still wakes up wanting to tell you things, still reaches out for you in the night, only to be met with silence. That love, the part of him that was always meant for you, has no place to rest, and he feels its weight with every breath he takes.
He escapes to the past these days, just for the opportunity to see you again.
_____
The party is loud, an overwhelming hum of voices, music, and laughter blending together in a way that makes it impossible to think. The flat is small, much too small to hold the crowd thatâs somehow crammed into every corner.Â
People from all different majors are squeezed into the living room, the hallway, and even the tiny kitchen, balancing Tesco plastic cups on the edge of counters and bookshelves. It feels like the walls are closing in, the air thick with the smell of cheap alcohol and the heat of too many bodies in one space. Jongseong shifts uncomfortably, standing near the wall with his back pressed to it, hoping to stay out of the chaotic flow of people moving past him.
His friend, Sunghoon, is in his element, leaning over to chat with two girls from the science department. Jongseong can hear snippets of Sunghoonâs conversation - something about biology and "how easy it must be to share a dorm with a future doctor." Jongseong knows what his friendâs after. Itâs the same for every party. Sunghoon is smooth-talking his way through the night, hoping to fuck one - or both - of the girls before the party winds down. Jongseong can't help but feel a sense of detachment from it all, wishing he were anywhere but here.
He glances down at his drink, swirling the last bit of beer in his cup, realising he hasnât even taken a sip in the last half-hour. The music pounds in his ears and the conversations around him blur into a noise that grates against his thoughts. Everyone seems so eager to lose themselves in the moment, but all Jongseong can think about is how out of place he feels, like heâs in someone elseâs world.
And then his eyes land on you.
Seated on the worn couch at the far end of the room, you look just as lost as he feels. Your shoulders are hunched slightly, arms folded across your chest, eyes scanning the room with a quiet detachment. Itâs like youâre here, but not really. The party swirls around you, but you sit untouched by its chaos. Thereâs something familiar in the way your gaze drifts, a softness in the way you carry yourself, as if youâre silently wishing to be anywhere else, just like him.Â
His heart skips, the noise of the party fading just a little as he watches you, wondering why on earth you are here, or where you even came from. Heâs been dragged to enough of these house parties to recognise almost everyone; itâs always the same crowd of wasted university students, all looking for a cheap night and a place to get fucked up.
You shift slightly on the couch, adjusting your position as if youâre trying to get comfortable but failing. The small movement is enough to stir something in Jongseong, a quiet push that breaks through his hesitation of going over to speak with you. He pushes off the wall, weaving through the crowd, his gaze never leaving you. Each step brings him closer to you and further from the loud, chaotic energy around him.
When he finally reaches the couch, Jongseong stands there, smiling down at you. Up close, he notices the small details about you - the way your eyes are slightly glazed over like you're staring through the crowd rather than at it. Your posture is relaxed, like someone who's given up on finding anything remotely interesting in this chaotic scene. Youâre lazily twirling a strand of hair around your finger, your other hand drumming absentmindedly on the armrest, and every so often, you let out a quiet sigh. Itâs clear youâre bored, as if you're here out of obligation or maybe even on a dare, but definitely not because you're enjoying it.
Jongseong wonders for a moment if approaching you is the right move. Maybe you're waiting for someone, or maybe you'd rather just be left alone to your boredom. But heâs already here, and backing out now would be even more awkward. Besides, thereâs a part of him that thinks you might welcome the distraction.
âHey,â he says, his voice soft but just loud enough to be heard over the music. He gives you a small, tentative smile, trying to convey that heâs not like the other loser men at this party, that heâs not here to make your night more unbearable. âIs that seat taken?â
The sound of his voice pulls you from your thoughts, startling you for a split second before your eyes lock onto his face. And what a beautiful face it is. His sharp jawline, soft eyes, and the hint of smile lines add to his handsomeness. The dyed white hair thatâs slicked back to showcase his fresh undercut makes your mouth dry, then water just a little as you catch yourself staring.
Shaking off the daze his looks have put you in, you nod your head and smile. âActually, my friend, Imaginary, is sitting right here,â you joke, patting the seat next to you lightly, âbut I think she might move for you.â
Jongseong smirks, charmed by your wit, and takes a seat, spreading his legs just enough that his knee brushes yours. A subtle, intentional move that sends a tiny jolt of awareness through you. The music pounds around you, and the room vibrates with the beat, but here, with him so close, it feels like youâre in a different world - a bubble separate from the chaos.
"Are you new?" he asks, his voice carrying a warmth that cuts through the cold disinterest of the party.
"No, but I don't normally come to parties like this," you admit, glancing around the crowded room.
"Why not?" His eyes stay on you, curious, almost as if heâs trying to decipher the puzzle of who you are. There is something so intriguing about you, his soul suddenly ignited by even the prospect of knowing you.
You gesture around you with a slight roll of your eyes. "Lots of drunk people with egos even though they're only uni kids? Not exactly my favourite." The words drip with sarcasm, your disdain evident in the flatness of your tone. You canât think of anywhere worse than this - people stumbling around, half-shouted conversations about nothing of substance, the smell of stale beer and sweat hanging thick in the air. Itâs a headache in the making, a mess of too much noise and not enough space, a place where everything blurs into a haze of chaos and bad decisions. Youâd rather be anywhere else, where people know how to handle themselves without being obnoxious, where the air is fresh and the conversations have weight.
Your answer earns a snicker from Jongseong. He ducks his head, a smile playing on his lips, and for a moment, he looks genuinely amused - like heâs found a hidden gem amidst all the nonsense around him. He takes a second to soak it in, feeling something light and warm settle in his chest.Â
When he glances back up at you, thereâs a brightness in his eyes that wasnât there before. "Okay, let me ask you another question, then - why are you here?" he asks, his tone playful but curious, like heâs genuinely invested in peeling back the layers of who you are.Â
You tilt your head, narrowing your eyes at him, a smirk tugging at your lips. "I'm gonna have to start charging you for all these questions, yâknow." Thereâs a teasing edge in your voice, but underneath it, thereâs also a spark - something alive and electric, something that catches Jongseong off guard, a flicker in his heart.
He laughs softly, nodding along with a look that says heâs enjoying this more than he thought he would. Itâs rare to find someone who doesnât just play along with the usual small talk but actually pushes back a little, makes him work for it. He hadnât expected you to have so much spunk and confidence from just watching you sit there, looking lost in thought. Itâs refreshing - a sharp contrast to the superficial conversations that fill the room around him.Â
In all honesty, he thought you might have pushed him off, unwilling to even entertain him, never mind willingly try and drag out the conversation with him. Thatâs what he gets for judging a book by its cover.
"I can pay for a meet-and-greet, donât worry," he says, his voice low and smooth, proud yet playful. His eyes gleam with a challenge, like heâs throwing down a gauntlet he hopes youâll pick up. Thereâs an unspoken dare there, a flirtatious edge that makes your heart skip a beat. It feels like youâre both dancing on the edge of something - something that could tip into something real, something interesting, if either of you is brave enough to take the next step.
âSo,â he continues, leaning back slightly, more relaxed now, âwhy are you here?â
He takes a sip of his drink, and itâs then that he notices you donât have one. You donât seem to mind, though, and he doesnât comment on it, but it strikes him as a little odd. Typically, if someone is having a fuck awful time at a party, they drown themselves in alcohol to let inhabitions go and just pray to God they donât make a fool of themselves. He knows there has to be a story there, and he canât wait to uncover it.
"Thought I would check it out. I hear theyâre all the rage," you say with a wry smile, clearly feeling the distaste on your tongue.Â
Truth is, youâre trying new things this year, pushing your boundaries to help form your character. Youâre sick of hearing about all these experiences through the lenses of TikTok videos and Instagram posts from your friends; itâs time to start living out the life you want. Not everything will be your cup of tea - tonight if quite evident of that, you can certainly cross parties off your FOMO list - but there is no harm in trying different things,
âEh, parties are overrated, if I'm being honest,â he replies, his eyes tracing the features of your face. Youâre so beautiful but so fucking familiar. He doesnât know you, he would remember someone as ethereal as you. But there is part of him that feels you deep inside, as though youâve rocked something in his soul.
Like youâre placing yourself home in his heart.
"Okay. Then why are you here?" you challenge back, your eyes narrowing slightly with curiosity.
Jongseong leans in a little, lowering his voice as if sharing a secret. âI hate these parties. Canât stand how loud and irritating they are. The noise, the drunk people who can't hold their alcohol, the same shallow conversations...â His words trail off as he glances around, his lip curling in mild distaste. âIâve always been a people person, butâŠjust not these people.â
Sucking your teeth, you nod, agreeing with every last syllable of his sentence. You feel this on another level, but considering he seems to be acquainted with parties enough to dissect and disregard them so easily, you still ponder your question.Â
Raising your eyebrows, you silently wait for him to continue. Â
âYâknow Sunghoon? The campus heartthrob?â he asks, raising an eyebrow. He hates to refer to his best friend as such, but that is literally his title within the university. Sunghoon is notorious for having girls and guys falling at his feet, kissing the ground he walks on because he has been voted Koreaâs perfect face three years in a row. Jongseong doesnât grudge it, he votes for his friend too, and he isnât blind, he can see how attractive he is.
âYeah?â you respond, intrigued.
âWell, believe it or not, that beautiful son of a bitch is my best friend.â
Considering the way this boy presents himself, you would have genuinely never guessed that he was friends with someone as high profile as Park Sunghoon. However, it does explain why, even if he hates the parties, he attends nonetheless.Â
You chuckle, your eyes glinting as you begin to steer the conversation in the direction you both want it to sail. âYouâre saying that like you arenât equally as pretty.â
Jongseong flushes, his cheeks dusting a faint pink. The warmth spreads across his face, and he bites back a grin, trying to play it cool but failing miserably. Itâs the tiny confirmation he needed to know that you want to flirt with him. That information alone perks his confidence up, although still shy under your flattering observation. He quickly plasters on a teasing smirk, fluttering his lashes dramatically and placing his hand under his chin, wiggling his fingers. âOh? So you think Iâm pretty?â
The scene before you brings out an even bigger laugh from you than earlier, though itâs not mocking or condescending - just pure amusement and joy. Itâs infectious, and Jongseong feels his heart swell at the sound. He has the sudden urge to make you laugh like that for a long time, to see that carefree sparkle in your eyes again and again. He doesnât want to say forever, but his heart is sure screaming it.
âI think youâre pretty, yes,â you say, your smile soft and genuine, your eyes sparkling under the annoying table-side lamp with its harsh white bulb - a stark contrast to the warmth you radiate. The lamp is obnoxious and stupid, casting its ugly, sterile light on everything around it, much like several of the people at this party. But Jongseong can't help but find it almost poetic that itâs illuminating something - or rather, someone - so captivating.Â
Thereâs a sense of irony in how this harsh, artificial light only seems to highlight the genuine softness in your expression, the way you carry yourself with a quiet confidence that makes you stand out without even trying. You shine so brightly, even in a room full of noise and chaos, and Jongseong begins to sense just why he was so drawn to you at first glance.
Itâs not as if youâre ânot like other girlsâ or whatever cringe, indie-female-lead syndrome that sounds like. No, itâs that in a room full of people competing to be seen, youâre the only one who Jongseong cares to know about. Thereâs a magnetism to the way you occupy your space - comfortable in your own skin, bored but not bitter, playful but not insincere. You seem untethered from the superficial games playing out around you, and thatâs what makes you different. Itâs not that youâre trying to be; itâs that you simply are - at least, in Jongseongâs eyes.
He feels a warmth spread through his chest, a lightness he hasnât felt for a long time. For a moment, the noise of the party fades, replaced by the sound of your laughter, ringing clear and unforced, like something rare and precious in a place like this. It strikes him then - how easy it would be to just keep listening to that sound, to find ways to make you laugh again, to see how your eyes light up when youâre amused.
âHow about we get out of here?â Jongseong suggests, his voice laced with a hint of excitement that he canât quite hide. âGrab some food, and Iâll walk you home.â
You raise an eyebrow, your lips curling into a teasing smile. âLeaving this place does sound tempting...but hereâs the thing, I donât even know you,â you say, your words playful, though the interest in your eyes betrays how intrigued you really are.
He feels a flicker of embarrassment for not having introduced himself sooner. âShit, sorry. Let me introduce myself.â He straightens up, setting his cup down with a small, almost sheepish grin. Then, with a playful seriousness that makes you chuckle, he extends his hand, inviting and warm. âIâm Jay, Iâm 22 years old, I study music technology, and Iâm single.â
You canât help but smile at his theatrics, mirroring his gesture and placing your hand in his. The warmth of his skin sends a flutter through your stomach, your insides skipping in joy all of a sudden, but you ignore it, focusing instead on the easy banter between you. âMy name is Y/N, I am 23 years old, and I am also single,â you reply, your tone matching his playful formality.
His grin widens, a flash of confidence in his eyes. âSounds like the perfect match, donât you think?â Thereâs a charm to him thatâs hard to resist, an easy confidence that makes you feel like youâve known him much longer than just these few minutes.
As you hold his gaze, you find yourself drawn to him in a way that surprises you. Itâs not just his looks - though thereâs no denying heâs handsome - itâs his energy, his wit, the warmth that radiates from him. Never in your life has someone matched your energy so well. Heâs like a breath of fresh air in a space that feels stifling, and itâs intoxicating in a way that no drink here could ever be.
You knew, from that very moment, that you wanted to know more about him, and he knew he was going to marry you one day.
_____
"A treasure hunt?" you ask, a hint of amusement in your voice as you raise an eyebrow at him.
Jongseong had thought about you nonstop since the moment he walked you home from that party. A few stolen moments in your company, a brief but memorable conversation - it had not been enough. Not nearly enough. It was as if something inside him ignited that night, a quiet but unrelenting fire, burning through his thoughts whenever your face crossed his mind. The way you laughed, the way your eyes lit up when you spoke - it was intoxicating, and he found himself craving more. So much more.Â
His friends had noticed too; he wasnât subtle in the least. Every chance he got, heâd talk about you, about the brief time you two had spent together, already analysing every moment like a lovestruck fool.
And so, heâd come up with this date: a treasure hunt. A way to get to know you, to create an experience that wasnât just the mundane dinner or movie date. No, this had to be different. You deserved different. Something unique. Heâd spent days working out the details, coming up with clues, places, and the perfect way to make this evening special. He wanted you to smile, to laugh, to feel how much thought he had poured into this.Â
Jongseong grins, proud of himself, "Yep. Well, sort of. I'm going to give you an envelope, and you're going to figure out the riddle."
Your lips curve into a soft smile, the kind that makes his heart race in a way heâs almost embarrassed to admit. You're used to men putting in the bare minimum. Dinner and a movie, sometimes even just a text at 11 pm, wondering if you were still awake. But this? This is different. Heâd thought about this, actually put in effort. A treasure hunt on a first date? It was quirky, yes, but endearing. It makes you wonder if somehow, during that boring party, you found a ruby amongst diamonds. The idea makes your stomach flutter slightly and anticipation build.
"Okay," you tease, holding out your hand, palm up. "Where is this magical envelope with all the answers then?"
"Well..." Jongseong steps closer to you, the air between you buzzing with unspoken tension, playful and light. He pulls the envelope from his suede brown jacket pocket and dangles it just above your open hand. As you reach for it, Jongseong pulls away at the last second, flashing you a mischievous grin.
âReally?â You huff, your voice carrying more amusement than frustration. Heâs playing with you, and you canât deny you enjoy it.
"Not so fast," he says, heart thrumming in his chest so loud because fuck you look so beautiful, he just wants to be as close to you as possible. So, he steps even closer, his body towering over yours. The warmth from his body feels almost tangible, and the playful gleam in his eyes makes your heart stutter. "You have to answer me one question before I give it to you."
You canât help but roll your eyes, though itâs all in good fun. "So not only do I need to use my brain and solve a puzzle, I also have to divulge personal information? You really know how to get a girl talking."
"Pretty much, yeah." His smile is smug, and you can tell heâs feeling particularly clever about his little scheme. Itâs adorable, really.Â
"And if I say no?"
"Then this date ends very quickly," he shrugs, feigning nonchalance, though you can tell heâs trying hard to mask his anticipation. He leans in slightly, voice low and teasing. "And you miss out on my meticulously planned adventure."
His words are light, but thereâs a subtle undercurrent of vulnerability there. Heâs trying to play it cool, but you sense how much he hopes youâll say yes. That small spark of emotion hidden behind his teasing makes your heart soften just a little more. Thereâs something so sweet in how much effort heâs putting in, and you canât help but feel drawn to it. Feel drawn to him.
With a dramatic sigh, you nod, "Fine, whatâs the question then?"
Jongseong chuckles, clearly pleased with himself and his persuading manner. "Straight to the point. I like it." He holds the envelope out again, this time a little closer to your palm. "Whatâs your favourite type of food?"
You pause, considering for a moment before a smile spreads across your face. "Hmm... Italian, or! Caribbean."
He raises an eyebrow at your sudden burst of enthusiasm. "Both?"
"I mean, how could I possibly choose between ravioli and kabritu stoba?" You laugh, feeling the lightness of the conversation flow easily between you. This is nice, it feels like you have somehow known each other for years.
"Fair enough," he says, nodding approvingly. He waves the envelope slightly, catching your attention. "Now, open this."
You tear it open carefully, unfolding the piece of paper inside. The words are written in neat, careful handwriting, a small clue to the meticulous planning that went into this.
"To taste where flavours meet and blend, Find the 5treet where numb3Rs enD. Look where hungry students convene, The numberâs hidden in this scene."
You frown slightly, reading it over again. Riddles arenât exactly your strong suit, but you try to piece it together. Okay, there's a 53 in there, and R and D are capatilised...hungry students? Then it hits you, a beam of satisfaction at how quickly you managed to solve it shining from your pleased grin.
"53rd Note!" you exclaim, eyes lighting up. "The food stall on campus!" You look at him, a grin tugging at your lips. "I'm right, arenât I?"
Instead of giving you a verbal answer, Jongseong simply gestures for you to lead the way. What he doesnât expect, however, is for you to take his hand, intertwining your fingers with his in a way that feels so easy, so natural, it takes him by surprise. His heart skips a beat, something he didnât think was possible in a moment as simple as this. Your hand in his feels...perfect. Warm, comforting, and everything he didnât know he needed until now.
You feel the shift too - the way the simple touch adds a new layer to the evening. Thereâs something electric in the air, a sense of anticipation and excitement. Itâs just a handhold, you tell yourself, but thereâs more to it. The quiet understanding, the subtle acknowledgement of a connection that neither of you is ready to speak about just yet, in fear of jinxing something.
As you walk together toward the diner, the city lights twinkling above, the world feels a little smaller. Itâs just the two of you, hands clasped, both of you teetering on the edge of something that feels new and exhilarating. Jongseong glances at you from the corner of his eye, his heart pounding in a way he knows he wonât forget. Heâs down bad for you, that much heâs realised, fuck, he even came to this conclusion when you told him your name. But now, holding your hand, walking beside you on a slightly chilly evening, the sun setting in for bedtime while the moon starts its shift, he thinks maybe - hopefully - you might be down for him too.
_
The walk to 53rd Note is relatively short, yet it feels like time expands as you and Jongseong fall into an effortless rhythm of conversation. Thereâs no awkwardness, no fumbling through the typical, banal exchanges that often fill first dates - no one asking about favourite colours or talking endlessly about the weather surrounding you. Instead, the dialogue between you flows naturally, easily, as if youâve known each other far longer than you have.
Jongseongâs questions are thoughtful, pulling you into a deeper conversation that takes you by surprise in the best way possible. "Why did you pick your major?" he asks, genuine curiosity lacing his tone. You find yourself opening up, explaining your passions and dreams, not feeling the need to hold back. Thereâs something about the way he listens that makes you feel heard, truly heard. His eyes never wander, his attention never falters - he is fully attentive.
"Is silver jewellery your thing, or are you allergic to gold?" he asks with a chuckle, glancing at the small silver ring on your finger. The question is odd but endearing, making you laugh. And when you ask about his interest in food, you learn that cooking is one of his many hidden talents. He admits to almost studying culinary arts before choosing music tech, a decision that sparks even more questions between you both.
The conversation continues, and you feel your guard slowly falling, piece by piece. You even ask him why he decided to talk to you that night at the party. His answer is simple, yet it holds weight. "I just wanted to get to know you."
By the time you reach the little food stall nestled on the corner of the student campus, youâre both lost in conversation and laughter. The place is a campus favourite, known for its amazing food and usual agonising long queues. Itâs the kind of spot everyone flocks to after lectures or late-night study sessions. But tonight, something is off. The shutters are down, and the sign on the shutter swings lazily in the breeze, declaring the stall closed.
"I-Itâs closed," you stammer, disappointment heavy in your voice, not because you canât eat here, but because you feel a twinge of guilt knowing how Jongseong must have spent time planning all of this, and now you've hit a hurdle at the first stop. The last thing you want is for his carefully thought-out plan to be ruined so suddenly.
But when you turn to face him, the smile on his face hasnât faltered. If anything, itâs grown wider, as if heâs completely unfazed by the situation. "Come on," he says, his voice full of quiet confidence as he gently squeezes your hand and leads you towards the shutter.
The stall is small but charming, with a bright yellow exterior and hand-painted menus plastered along the walls. Colourful string lights hang above it, though theyâre unlit now, swaying lightly in the evening breeze. You notice a small table tucked beside the stall, probably a place for students to gather and chat as they wait for their orders. Everything about this place radiates warmth, even though it's currently closed.
Jongseong raises his hand and knocks on the metal shutter, the sound loud enough to startle a few birds perched nearby. Moments later, the shutter rolls up with a slow creak, revealing a boy wearing an apron and hairnet on the other side. His face lights up as he sees you both, his excitement palpable.
"Two to go, please," Jongseong grins at his friend, whose eyes gleam with understanding. Jake, nods enthusiastically, already bustling behind the counter. You quickly realise this is all part of Jongseongâs plan.
"You... how did you know he was in there?" you ask, confusion and amusement blending together as you look between Jake, who is clumsily wrapping up your food, and Jongseong, whoâs leaning casually against the counter, looking as if everything is going perfectly to plan.
Jongseongâs cool demeanour makes you smile. "I know the owner," he says with a nonchalant shrug. "He let me borrow the hut for a minute."
In truth, Jongseong had to beg Woobin - the actual owner - to close up shop during peak hours. It wasnât an easy feat. He had offered everything he could think of in exchange: guitar lessons, study help, and even his favourite hoodie. Woobin had eventually relented after enough pleading, but only on the condition that Jongseong wouldnât touch the stock. Still, it worked out, and now here he is, pretending it was all effortlessly arranged.
"The normal guy isnât here, though?" you ask, glancing at Jake, who looks completely out of his depth as he fumbles with the wrapping paper. Itâs clear he doesnât normally work here, but you canât help but appreciate his enthusiasm.
Jongseong shifts slightly, his posture still casual, but you notice the flicker of nervousness in his eyes. He takes a breath, his voice calm but tinged with something deeper. "Ah, well... I cooked this meal."
The words hang in the air for a moment, and you see a flash of vulnerability in him, a rare crack in his otherwise confident exterior. Heâs laid himself bare now. The pressure isnât just about whether this date is going well - itâs about whether youâll like his food.Â
For Jongseong, cooking is an act of love. Growing up, it had always been how his family showed they cared. His mum, his grandmother, they had taught him that food was more than just sustenance. It was a way to express emotion, to bring people together. And now, heâs hoping youâll understand that.
He watches you carefully, his heart pounding in his chest as he waits for your reaction. This isnât just any meal. Itâs his way of subtly showing you how much he could care for you, not just tonight, but for as long as youâll have him. You can feel the weight of his unspoken words, the silent hope behind his playful banter. Itâs more than just food; itâs a gesture, a glimpse into how deeply heâs already fallen for you.
Jake hands over the dishes with an exaggerated flourish, grinning from ear to ear. "Enjoy, my beautiful lovebirds," he says, winking at the two of you. You stifle a laugh, watching as Jongseongâs face flushes slightly, the tips of his ears turning a light shade of pink. Heâs clearly embarrassed by his friendâs teasing, and for a moment, you think he might actually throttle Jake. But you, on the other hand, find it sweet - endearing even - and thank Jake with a bright smile, not at all put off by the comment.
Being lovebirds with Jongseong isnât hard to imagine, not really.
As you and Jongseong approach the small table near the stall, you take a moment to appreciate the surroundings. Itâs a simple wooden setup, aged from the constant exposure to student life - scuffed by countless bags, elbows, and books. Yet tonight, it feels like itâs transformed into something more intimate as if the evening air and the quiet chatter in the distance have turned it into your own private dining space. The string lights above the stall, though unlit, seem to glimmer faintly in the twilight, casting a soft glow over the scene. The air is cool, but not cold, carrying the faint scent of campus greenery and the distant hum of city life.
Jongseong pulls out one of the two chairs for you, a small gesture, but one that sends a flicker of warmth through you. As you sit, he unravels the paper bag, the rustling sound filling the air, and the intoxicating aroma of the food reaches your nose before you even see whatâs inside.
The first thing you notice is the kimchijjigae. The spicy tang hits you instantly, its deep red broth shimmering with flavour. The scent of fermented cabbage, tofu, and gochugaru wafts up, causing your stomach to rumble in anticipation. Beside it are two perfectly portioned servings of fried rice, golden and inviting, alongside bindaetteok - crispy mung bean pancakes that look so perfectly golden-brown, you can almost hear the crunch as you imagine biting into them.
Everything looks so carefully prepared, yet itâs simple, unpretentious. The kind of food that speaks volumes about the one who made it. Your heart swells as you realise how much thought went into this meal, into every tiny detail. It's not just about the food, it's about the care behind it.
"You made all of this?" you ask softly, your voice tinged with awe as you gaze at the beautifully arranged dishes in front of you. Despite the simplicity, the food looks incredible, and you can feel the thought and effort poured into it. You glance up at Jongseong, your eyes filled with admiration.
He nods, handing you a cup of water after pouring it carefully from the bottle Jake had given him. "Yeah," he says, his tone casual, but thereâs an underlying nervousness in his eyes, as if heâs waiting for your reaction, hoping youâll like what heâs made. "Everythingâs vegan too. I wasnât sure if you had any dietary restrictions or didnât eat meat, so I went with the safest option."
That small detail, the consideration behind it, makes your chest tighten. He had thought of everything. Youâd never mentioned anything about your diet, yet he had gone out of his way to make sure the meal would suit you, just in case. Itâs such a thoughtful gesture, so full of quiet care, that it nearly overwhelms you. Itâs not just the food heâs offering - itâs a piece of himself, his heart wrapped up in every bite.
Your heart swells with affection, and you smile so widely it almost hurts. "Thatâs...incredibly thoughtful," you murmur, feeling the weight of what heâs done settle warmly in your chest. Youâre not used to people putting this much effort into dates, let alone cooking a meal tailored to your needs without even knowing them. In fact, you donât think anyone has ever put this much effort into you as a person. It makes you feel seen, cared for, in a way that surprises you.
Without another word, you take your chopsticks and carefully lift a small piece of bindaetteok, its crispy edges crackling slightly as you bite into it. The taste is immediate; crispy on the outside, soft and delicate inside, with a rich flavour that bursts on your tongue. Itâs perfect, so perfectly seasoned and balanced that you canât help but let out a small, delighted squeal.
Your eyes light up as you look at him, your hands coming together in a quick, enthusiastic clap. "Oh my God, Jongseong!" you exclaim, your excitement bubbling over as your feet bounce under the table. "This is amazing!"
Jongseong lets out a relieved laugh, his shoulders visibly relaxing as he watches your reaction. His eyes soften, filled with a quiet joy that he canât quite put into words. "Iâm glad you like it," he says, his voice a little quieter now, the relief and warmth evident in his tone. But thereâs something more in his expression, a look of pure contentment as if seeing you happy has made all the anxiety heâs been feeling completely worth it.
He wants to make you this happy forever.
You dig into the rest of the food eagerly, trying the kimchijjigae next. The broth is spicy but comforting, the heat hitting you just right without being overwhelming. The fried rice is fluffy, with a subtle but rich taste that perfectly complements the other dishes. Every bite feels like a hug, the kind of meal that fills both your stomach and your heart.
As you eat and chatter, you canât help but look at Jongseong, this boy whoâs already managed to sweep you off your feet without even trying, your heart doing most of the soaring. You see the way he watches you, the small smile that tugs at his lips every time you take another bite or tell him another story. Heâs nervous, but proud, clearly pleased that youâre enjoying the meal. And in that moment, you realise how much heâs already starting to mean to you. This is more than just a first date - itâs the beginning of something, something that feels real and full of possibility.
As you finish the last bite, you feel a surge of warmth spreading through youânot just from the food, but from the entire experience. The way Jongseong has thought through every detail, from the meal to the riddles, makes your heart swell with affection. You smile, letting the emotion seep into your voice as you look up at him. "Jongseong," you say softly, holding his gaze, "this was...perfect. Compliments to the chef."
Without missing a beat, Jongseong's face lights up with pride. He stands up with an exaggerated bow, playing up his role as the triumphant chef, and gives a few playful nods to an imaginary audience. His movements are full of cocky grace, a confidence thatâs both endearing and maddening in the best way. You canât help but laugh, your body suddenly feeling warmer at how effortlessly charming he is - this is depth to Jongseong that you desperately want to unravel, layer by layer.
In more ways than one.
Still glowing with laughter, he reaches into his pocket and pulls out another envelope, teasingly waving it in front of you. "Now," he says, his smirk growing wider, "you want the next envelope?"
Nodding eagerly, you can barely contain the glee and anticipation bubbling up inside you. The treasure hunt has been so fun, and now youâre ready to see whatâs next.
"Okay," he begins, placing the envelope on the table in front of you, his eyes glinting with mischievous delight. "But first, youâve got to answer my question."
You nod again, this time pretending to adopt a serious game face, your brows furrowing in faux concentration as you prepare yourself for whatever difficult question heâs about to ask.
"Who was the first person you ever went to see in concert?" Jongseong asks, leaning in, his smirk turning a little more playful.
Your confident expression falters as you immediately dissolve into laughter, the memory of your first concert flashing vividly in your mind. You cover your mouth with your hand, trying to suppress your giggles, but itâs no use. Jongseong raises an eyebrow, tilting his head slightly in curiosity. "Oh, thereâs a story here, huh?" he prompts, grinning wider. "Is it embarrassing?"
"Not embarrassing... maybe," you begin, still giggling as the memory takes hold of you. "It was... an âIn the Night Gardenâ experience. I was seven years old, and I got to dance with them on stage." You snort, remembering how excited and utterly starstruck you were as a child.
Jongseong blinks once, then twice, as if trying to process the image, and then bursts out laughing. He leans back in his chair, throwing his head back with full, hearty laughter that echoes through the quiet evening air. Itâs a deep, unrestrained laugh that makes your heart skip a beat, the kind that feels as warm and genuine as everything else about him. You join in, your laughter melding with his, both of you giggling like children at the sheer absurdity of your revelation.
"In the Night Garden?" he repeats, still chuckling, his voice filled with disbelief. "The kids' show? I was expecting you to say something like EXO or SHINee!"
You hide your face in your hands, the realisation dawning on you that it is, in fact, kind of embarrassing. But you canât help but laugh at yourself. "I did see EXO and SHINee later on, but they werenât my first!" you protest between giggles.
"You didnât think to lie?" he teases, his eyes dancing with amusement.
"Not at all," you say, your voice softening as the laughter dies down. Thereâs something wistful in your tone now, a hint of sincerity that catches even you by surprise. "I donât want to lie to you, not about the silly stuff andâŠnot about the serious stuff either."
For a moment, the air between you changes. The playful banter gives way to something deeper, a quiet understanding that passes between you. Itâs as if, in this small moment, youâre both realising how much you want to be honest with each other - how much you want to truly know each other. You see Jongseongâs face shift, his teasing grin softening into something tender, something full of affection. He can see it, the way youâre falling a little deeper into him with every word, every shared laugh, and the joy that fills his face is undeniable. His eyes sparkle, and his lips curve into a smile so warm, it feels like a promise.
"Well," he says, pushing the envelope across the table toward you with a soft, satisfied sigh, "I think youâve earned the next clue."
With a grin, you eagerly take the envelope, your fingers tingling with excitement as you carefully tear it open. The riddle inside reads:
"Under a bridge of lights, a riverâs friend. Where music plays, the night will never end. So gather near, beneath the sky so bright, And hear the melodies that fill the night."
The moment you finish reading it, a confident smile spreads across your face. "Oh, this is easy," you say, wiggling your shoulders smugly. "Itâs the Han River."
Jongseong nods, impressed but not surprised. "Of course. But thereâs a little surprise waiting for you. Come on." He stands, holding out his hand to you, his eyes twinkling with proud knowing.
You take his hand instinctively, your fingers curling naturally around his. As you stand up, you find yourself moving closer to him, your bodies leaning into each other in a way that feels effortless, natural. The walk toward the river feels different, like every step brings you closer, not just physically but emotionally. The night air wraps around you, cool but pleasant, and the distant city lights shimmer like stars scattered along the horizon. The quiet hum of life around you fades into the background as your focus narrows to the warmth of Jongseong's hand in yours and the soft sound of your footsteps together.
Your heart beats steadily, not with nerves, but with a quiet certainty: youâre exactly where youâre supposed to be.
_
As you approach the Han River, the usual serene atmosphere is broken by the soft hum of excitement. A crowd is gathered by one section, and you spot people seated in a semi-circle, the area aglow with warm, delicate fairy lights and scattered fake candles that twinkle like stars against the night sky. Amps are neatly arranged around a modest stage setup, cables snaking across the ground as if drawing people into the intimate space. The whole scene feels like itâs been lifted from a dreamâcosy, inviting, and charged with quiet anticipation.
You turn to Jongseong, eyebrows raised in question. "Is this one of those busking things?"
"Not just any busking thing," he corrects you, his grin widening as he pulls two tickets from his pocket. His excitement is hard to contain as he watches you inspect them.
Your breath catches in your throat as your eyes fall on the print: Sam Kim, filming for Begin Again Open Mic.
"How did youâ?" you begin, stunned, unable to process how heâd managed to pull off something so incredible.
"I might have stalked your Instagram a bit," he admits with a sheepish chuckle, though his expression is anything but embarrassed. "Saw you post about him a few times and figured it was a sure thing.â The tickets werenât easy to get, though, that part he isnât telling you. He had to sell one of his precious guitars to make it happen, but the look on your face right now? Totally worth it.Â
Your eyes well up, not from sadness, but from a deep, overwhelming appreciation. Thereâs something unfamiliar yet beautiful blooming in your chest, a warmth that spreads through you and makes your heart race in a way it hasnât before. "Thank you so much, Jongseong," you whisper, the words falling out on their own.Â
Never have you looked at a man and felt this way, and you donât think you ever will unless itâs Jongseong.
Before you can stop yourself, you step forward and wrap your arms around him, pulling him into a tight embrace. At first, he seems caught off guard, his body stiffening for a moment. But then, as if the feeling clicks into place, he quickly relaxes into the hug, his arms encircling you with gentle but firm pressure. You feel him bury his face briefly into your hair, inhaling your scent, committing it to memory like itâs something precious he wants to hold onto. His warmth wraps around you like a protective shield, and for a second, the world fades away.
If this is what being with you is like, he never wants to spend another minute apart.
"Come on," he murmurs into your ear, his breath sending a shiver down your spine. "Letâs get our seats."
He leads you toward a blanket with his name written on a small tag in, neatly reserved in one of the best spots. As you approach, he helps you settle down onto the blanket, standing behind you attentively as you smooth out your skirt. Itâs a simple gesture - making sure youâre comfortable, that your clothes are fixed just right and you donât unwillingly flash the poor couple behind you - but it feels like so much more. Your skirt, a flowing, light fabric that swishes around your legs, catches the evening breeze as you adjust yourself, and you find yourself grateful for his thoughtfulness.
Once youâre seated, Jongseong slips down beside you, the space between you both comfortably close. He takes off his jacket and places it over your legs, to shield you from the biting cold wind from the river and reserve your modesty.Â
Just as you settle in, the quiet murmur of the crowd dies down, and the soft strum of a guitar fills the air. Sam Kim steps onto the small, makeshift stage, his presence met with excited murmurs and appreciative applause from the audience.
You canât believe it. Sam Kim, live and in person, just a few metres away. Your heart swells as the first notes of âCloserâ begin to play, the song wrapping around you like an old memory, one you didnât realise you had been holding so close. The smooth timbre of Samâs voice fills the cool night air, his words resonating deep within you.
You feel yourself lean instinctively toward Jongseong, and without hesitation, he wraps his arm around you, pulling you closer into his side. His warmth anchors you as the music washes over you both, your head resting lightly against his shoulder. He presses his chin softly atop your head, his hand lightly tracing your arm in slow, comforting strokes.
The tenderness of the moment, combined with Sam Kimâs voice singing about longing and love, stirs something deep inside you. As the next song begins - Seattle - its delicate melody and heartfelt lyrics unravel any composure you had left. Tears prick at your eyes, and you canât help but let them fall as the songâs quiet emotion seeps into every fibre of your being. Thereâs something about the raw vulnerability in the music, in the moment, that makes it impossible to hold back.
Jongseong notices right away. Without a word, he gently tightens his hold on you, pulling you closer into him as if to shield you from the overwhelming emotion. He presses his lips softly against your temple in a tender, wordless gesture of comfort, his breath warm and steady against your skin.
As soon as his mouth makes contact with your skin, he feels sick in such a profound way, that all his love and realisation is now reaching from his toes, past his heart, and into his brain.
You glance up at him through your damp lashes, and he meets your gaze with such sincerity that your heart skips a beat. His eyes are full of unspoken promises, of quiet understanding. He doesnât say anything, but the way he holds you, the way he looks at you, speaks louder than words ever could. In that moment, it feels like the music, the river, the night sky, and Jongseong are all blending together in perfect harmony.
The rest of the performance unfolds in a beautiful haze of music and soft touches. Each song Sam Kim plays feels like a gift, and by the time the last note fades into the night, youâre left with a feeling of warmth and connection that goes beyond the evening itself. Itâs as though something shifted between you and Jongseong - a silent but profound acknowledgement that tonight was about more than just a date.
The final notes of the performance linger in the air, weaving through the soft hum of conversations around you. As the crowd begins to disperse, you wipe the last of your tears, touched not only by the music but by the entire night, Jongseong has crafted for you. His presence feels like an anchor, steady and reassuring amidst the emotional whirlpool of the evening.
"Are you okay, Y/N?" His voice is filled with concern, his gentle eyes scanning your face as though searching for any lingering sadness. You sense his earnestness, his desire to make sure every second of tonight was perfect for you. Jongseong knew you liked Sam Kim, but he hadnât expected your deep connection to the music to stir such raw emotion in you. But now, seeing the impact it had, heâs certain Sam is officially his favourite artist too, simply because of what heâs done for you.
Smiling through the tenderness swelling in your chest, you nod and offer a playful pout. "I'm more than okay. Really, Jongseong, thank you so much for all of this. I donât think Iâve ever had a date like this," you laugh, the joy bubbling up as you stand up, Jongseong quickly offering his hand to help you to your feet. His touch is light, but thereâs an intimacy in the way he smooths out the wrinkles of your skirt, his fingers brushing over the fabric as if itâs the most natural thing in the world.
A laugh escapes you again, this one softer, almost wistful. "I donât even think Iâll ever have a date like this again."
But the truth behind your words hits deeper than you let on. You know someone like Jongseong is rare, a once-in-a-lifetime kind of soul. The universe doesnât often gift the world people like him so easily, and yet here he is, standing before you, having planned the most thoughtful evening youâve ever experienced. It feels like a miracle, like some kind of cosmic alignment that allowed you to meet him.
Jongseong, ever so sweet, tucks a strand of your hair behind your ear with a tenderness that makes your heart flutter. "Oh, you will," he says with a soft shake of his head, a playful yet sincere smile tugging at his lips. "Because Iâm going to take you on dates bigger and better than this."
His words settle in your chest, a gentle promise that fills you with an almost dizzying sense of happiness. Heâs not just thinking about tonight; heâs already imagining the future - your future together. What you donât know is that during the mini-concert, as the singerâs voice crooned through the air, Jongseong was secretly planning the next date, and the one after that, and the next one after that one, and so many more. In his mind, heâs already picturing you both years down the line, holding hands when youâre old and grey, still laughing, still sharing moments like these. Heâs jumping the gun here but thatâs how much he wants you in his life, no, needs you in his life.
You reach up, your hand cupping his face, your thumb gently stroking the cool surface of his cheek. His skin feels smooth under your touch, but thereâs a warmth beneath it, a warmth that spreads from him to you. "How about I plan the next one?" you offer, the words carrying a weight of confirmation - you want more. More moments like this, more laughter, more adventures. More him.
Jongseongâs eyes light up, his heart swelling with happiness. "Deal," he says, his voice low but laced with excitement. His gaze, however, drifts lower, his eyes falling to your lips. The air between you shifts, suddenly charged with a new kind of energy. Heâs no longer just thinking about the next date; heâs thinking about now. The urge to kiss you swells inside him, consuming his thoughts. He wants to feel your lips on his, to communicate the emotions he hasnât been able to fully express with words. His pulse quickens as he realises just how close you are, how easy it would be to lean in, close the gap, and make this night even more unforgettable.
You sense his desire, and a matching one blooms within you. Your heart beats faster as you step closer, rising onto your tiptoes. Slowly, almost hesitantly, you press your lips against his.
The kiss is soft at first, a delicate brush of skin against skin, but it carries the weight of all the unspoken feelings between you. Jongseong stills for a moment, his breath catching as he savours the sensation of your lips on his. Thereâs a gentleness in the way he kisses you, a quiet reverence as though heâs afraid to break the spell. His hand comes up to cup your jaw, his fingers threading through your hair as he deepens the kiss, but never rushes. Each movement is careful, slow, filled with a tenderness that makes your heart swell.
Your body tingles with warmth, a soft hum of pleasure spreading through you as you kiss him back. The world around you fades into the backgroundâthe quiet murmur of the river, the distant buzz of people - all of it disappearing as you lose yourself in the moment. His lips are warm and inviting, moulding perfectly to yours as though they were always meant to fit together. Itâs sweet and unhurried, as if you have all the time in the world to explore the depth of this feeling.
As the kiss lingers, you feel the intensity of his emotions bleeding through, each press of his lips a silent confession. Heâs telling you, without words, how much heâs already fallen for you. How heâs imagined a future with you, a lifetime of nights like this one. Thereâs a vulnerability in the kiss, an openness that makes your chest tighten with something more than affection. It feels like trust, like promise, like everything youâve ever wanted but didnât know you needed.
When you finally pull away, your breath mingles with his in the cool night air, your lips tingling with glee. His eyes are still closed, savouring the aftertaste of the kiss, as though heâs replaying it in his mind, etching it into his memory.
You both stand there for a moment, soaking in the adoration that seems to swirl around you. The Han River, mixed with the lights of the busking, and the love in the aire from the other couples, you feel it, all so immensely. Something has shifted. This isnât just the start of something new - itâs the beginning of something deeply powerful. Something neither of you can quite put into words yet, but both of you feel it. Itâs in the way he looks at you, in the way your lips just met, and in the way your hearts are already intertwining, bonding you to him for a lifetime.
Pulling himself away from the moment, Jongseong opens his eyes and grins down at you, kissing your forehead, desperate to keep his lips on you in some way. âReady for the next one?â
âOh, Absolutely.â Your answer is so self-assured and confident, there is no apprehension in your tone, only sheer enthusiasm to spend every waking minute with him.
Jongseong feels the same way, maybe even more than you. And he canât wait for the day he gets to tell you how he fell in love with you in this moment.
_____
Laying in Jongseongâs bed, you slouch lazily against his headboard as you lose yourself in the words on your Kindle. The paragraphs of The Handmaiden grip you, pulling you into their twisted world, stirring a whirlwind of emotions inside you - a cocktail of disgust, hope, fear, and love. Love especially lingers on your mind, but little do you know that someone beside you is feeling that emotion just as intensely, perhaps even more, because the reason for his swirling heart is real and currently wearing his AC/DC t-shirt.
He stares at you engrossed in your book and for some strange, inexplicable reason, his chest feels tight and the pressure behind his eyes hurt, like he is a bottle of coke and there is a packet of Mentos just landing inside his soul.
"I fucking love you so much," Jongseong says suddenly, his voice soft yet undeniably passionate, carrying a depth that cuts through the silence of the room like a bolt of lightning. His body language or facial expression doesnât change, in fact, the feeling has been inside of him for so long that speaking the words into fruition doesnât change a thing about him.Â
You freeze, the words on your screen blurring as your mind tries to process what you just heard. Did he really say that? Maybe you misheard him. âWhat?â you ask, turning your head to face him, and once you see the sincerity in his face and the fire in his eyes, your heart begins to race, and your question is answered.
âI love you,â he repeats, more pointed this time so you know there is not even a wiggle of doubt, his eyes locked onto yours with a look so sincere it leaves you breathless. âMore than my heart or my chest can hold in.âÂ
His confession takes you completely by surprise. It feels so sudden, so unexpected, that for a moment, youâre left speechless. You knew he cared deeply for you - his actions and gentle gestures have always spoken louder than words - but hearing it now, on a random Wednesday night, three months into your relationship, when you were just lounging in his bed, didnât seem like his style at all.Â
And you were right, Jongseong was always the one for grand gestures, for perfectly planned moments. He wanted to tell you over a candlelit dinner, complete with a big speech about all the reasons he fell for you, fighting the urge to tell you on your very first date. But he knew his feelings, he couldnât deny them nor did he ever want to, however, maybe blurting out âI love youâ when he didnât even know your favourite colour was a bit quick, so he decided to wait for the perfect moment, which he had guessed would be planned.
But thereâs something so genuine about this moment - him saying it while youâre here, wearing his oversized t-shirt, your glasses perched on your nose, so absorbed in your book that you didn't even realise he was watching you. Thereâs no grand setup, no orchestrated plan - just pure, unfiltered feeling. Sometimes, you donât need a big, fancy gesture; sometimes, the love is enough.
His hand reaches out to cup your jaw, his thumb brushing softly against your cheek. His touch pulls you in, makes you forget about everything else except him and the love reflected in his eyes. Somehow, he looks even more beautiful than he did 10 minutes ago.
You place your Kindle to the side, giving him your full attention, and clasp his fingers with yours, feeling the steady thrum of his pulse under your touch. âYou love me?â you whisper, almost as if saying it too loudly might shatter the magic of this moment.
âOf course I do,â he replies, his voice as easy as breathing, because thatâs exactly what it feels like to him. Falling in love is supposed to be scary and daunting, placing your heart in the palms of someone who could break it with one wrongdoing is enough to put people off giving and receiving the emotion. But Jongseong? He would give you every part of his body for you to keep hold of - for you to own. You are everything he needs in life, the only person he would start a war for, he trusts you completely; he has never felt anything this strongly before.Â
Your chest feels like itâs suddenly desperate to connect with his, to close the gap between you both and merge yourselves as one whole being. His words sink into you, filling spaces you didnât even know were empty.Â
With a shaky breath, you hold back a tiny sob, the aura in the room too overwhelming for your heart. But not overwhelming enough to stop you from saying how you feel. âI love you too, Jongseong,â you confess, your voice trembling slightly, but not with uncertainty - rather with the sheer intensity of the truth.
He looks at you, searching your face for any hint of doubt. Itâs not that he doesnât believe you, but itâs just the slight thread of insecurity in being so vulnerable with someone. "You mean it? You arenât just saying it out of obligation? Because you do-â
You interrupt him, squeezing his hands tighter. âI mean it. More than anything else that has ever left my mouth. I love you.â
A Cheshire smile breaks across his face, bright and unrestrained. He grabs your face in a rush, his big hands enveloping your cheeks as he begins to pepper kisses all over your face - your forehead, your cheeks, your nose, every inch of skin he sees squished between his palms - until youâre giggling uncontrollably.Â
âJongseong!â you squeal, your laughter infectious, and thus he keeps going, pinning you down gently, his weight warm and secure over you, his lips finding every spot that makes you laugh even harder until your sides hurt. This is what love is supposed to feel like, childlike and free, just as you two always are.
You are in love. So incredibly in love.
When he finally stops, he rests his forehead against yours, his breath warm against your skin. âI will love you until my dying breath, Y/N L/N,â he promises, his voice low and solemn. The serious current that accompanies the joy in his voice tells you all you need to know, instilling you with confidence that this man means every word and every emotion he is pouring into you.
A grin spreads across your lips, and you canât help the heartfelt response that tumbles out: âIâll love you until weâre food for the worms to eat.â
Your morbid but romantic description makes his heart thump, his expression turning even brighter. He laughs, a rich, melodic sound that fills the room, and tucks a strand of hair behind your ear, looking at you like youâre the only girl in the world. âHad to one-up me, huh?â he jokes.
âYou know me, always one step extra,â you tease, pulling him down by the collar of his shirt.
The kiss starts slow, tender - a soft press of lips that speaks of newfound confessions and the quiet promise of forever. His lips are warm, moving gently against yours, and you can feel the way his breath hitches like heâs savouring every second, every little brush of skin against skin. Your hands find their way into his hair, tugging slightly, eliciting a low, rumbling groan from deep within his chest.
The kiss turns heated, a spark catching flame as his hands slide down your body, tracing the curve of your waist, pulling you closer until thereâs no space left between you. He slots his body between your legs, his hips situated on yours as his member hilts against you. Your legs spread wider to let him fully lay on top of you, your boyfriendâs heart kissing your own with each beat.
His lips part, deepening the kiss, and you respond in kind, matching his intensity. The world around you blurs; all you can feel is the heat of his body against yours, the way his lips mould perfectly with yours, and the electric current that courses through you with every touch, every breath.Â
Jongseongâs hand grips your hip, fingers digging in just enough to make you shiver, and his lips move with a hunger that matches the rapid beat of your heart. Heâs pouring everything into this kiss - all his love, his need, his promise - until youâre both breathless and burning with a desire that you never want to end.
The kiss breaks for just a moment, enough for both of you to catch your breath and him to discard your t-shirt, but Jongseongâs lips donât leave your skin for long. His forehead rests against yours, and the two of you share a lingering moment of closeness, eyes locked, hearts pounding in sync. Thereâs an unspoken understanding between you, a shared desire that flows in the charged air between you.
With a soft, almost reverent touch, Jongseong begins trailing kisses along your jawline, slow and deliberate, as though heâs memorizing every inch of your skin with his lips. Each kiss is a whisper of warmth, igniting sparks of pleasure that ripple through your body. You tilt your head back, giving him access, and he doesnât waste a second. His mouth continues its descent, moving down to your neck where he plants open-mouthed kisses, his tongue brushing lightly against your pulse point, causing a shudder to run through you.
His hands, warm and steady, explore the curves of your body as he works his way lower, lips grazing the sensitive skin of your collarbone. He lingers there for a heartbeat, nipping gently before soothing the spot with his tongue. Your fingers tangle in his hair, urging him on, and he responds with a low growl that reverberates against your skin, sending a fresh wave of heat through you.
Jongseong shifts, his lips now trailing down to the valley between your breasts, each kiss more purposeful, more heated than the last. His breath is hot, his touch sure, and every movement, every press of his lips, leaves you aching for more. You arch your back, pushing yourself into him, craving the sensation of his mouth on your body.
As he continues his descent, kissing lower and lower, until he is at the band of your panties, his breath fans across your skin, and the anticipation builds with every second, every soft press of his lips against you.
"I love you, I love you, I love you," he murmurs between kisses, his voice thick with adoration.
You giggle, hiding your face at the chanting confession. You canât believe a man so perfect is in love with you. Gently, you run your fingers through his hair and pout down at him, âI love you, too.â
The words brush down your torso and into Jongseongâs ears, eliciting a smile from him. That is all he has wanted to hear, from the moment he met you. He knows love like this is precious, and he never intends to waste it.
Carefully, his fingers hook into the waistband of your shorts and pull them down, your legs instinctively opening, showcasing your bare, glistening pussy for your boyfriend to see. Itâs delicious, succulent, and all entirely for him to devour.
"So fucking pretty," he whispers, sending chills down your spine. The room feels hotter as he settles between your legs, tongue poking through his lips oh so teasingly to wet them, your clit weaping for attention. He does this to you a lot, makes your body react in ways it never has before, even after your first date you felt your panties soaking more and more to the point you dragged him into your dorm room and fucked him.Â
Was it a smart idea to fuck a man on the first date? Not usually, but you knew from that day that you were willing to spend the rest of your life with him so, what was the harm in some fun?
Kissing your clit, Jongseong looks up to watch you as he always does, loving the way your face conveys the pleasure you feel. Even the simplest of touches has you under his mercy. As he begins to lap at your core with his tongue, you can't help but clutch his hair, your fingers tangled in the strands as you grind into his face. Your back lifts from the bed as you seek even more pleasure.
Overcome with how you taste, he doesnât even register your fingers in his hair, pulling at it harshly when he circles your clit with his tongue. Youâre so wet as he slurps you up but thereâs so much itâs dripping onto his chin. It serves as motivation to keep going, to pleasure you as much as possible, to show you how much he wants to devour you, both body and soul.
Jongseong doesnât get pussy drunk with girls, but he does with you. Addicted to the taste and smell of you, he just wants to rub himself all over you, covering himself in your slick as if to scent him, like youâre both wolves in some ABO universe.
âDonât stop, Jongseong,â you groan out, the backs of your feet digging into his back as you pin him down as best you can, signalling to him your need for more.Â
Smirking at your desperation, Jongseongâs tongue runs itself along your entrance and it makes you buckle, pushing his head in further. He continues his effort, making you a panting mess. His tongue was a gift from God and youâll need to thank the big man later when you meet him for blessing you with a sex-god boyfriend.
A sex-god boyfriend who is in love with you.
Dipping his tongue in a few times helps him gauge how tight you are, seeing how much prep he needs to give you before he can fuck his love into you. As if reading his lewd thoughts, he feels your pussy squeezing, his tongue taking advantage and swirling around to hit more circumference of your walls.Â
âI canât wait to be inside of you, baby. To show you how much i really love you.â
Itâs funny that he thinks sex would showcase his love any more than his eyes and heart already do. You know he loves you, you might have been shocked at how abruptly he said it tonight, but youâve always known. Itâs in the way he kisses you, how he cooks dinner for you even after long days, and itâs in how he would give up anything to see you happy.
Your clit is suddenly being simulated by his nose, it poking at it slightly the more bountiful he inserts his tongue. It feels otherworldly, âJongseong, sâgood, so good, fuck,â Your fingers harshly massage his scalp as you wiggle, close to cumming.
He knows it too, youâre dripping so much itâs leaking over half of his face. Itâs so fucking hot how youâre a mess like this, just for him, only for him. Jongseong switches his tactics, lips now encircled around your clit and sucking harshly on it, the new sensation causing you to cry out, a new wave of your juices dripping down his chin and onto his bedsheetsÂ
And just a few seconds later, youâre coming undone.Â
Jongseong, ever pleased with himself, cleans you up with his tongue, sucking up the slick thatâs flowing form your hole and drinking it greedily. You taste so good he could spend hours down here. But unfortunately, and selfishly, he needs to fuck you. Right here, right now.
Wiping your essence from his mouth, Jongseong crawls up over your body, placing gentle kisses up your torso, past your heaving chest, and back to your lips. He stares at you with something deep in his irisâ, a promise that he will always make you feel this inspired, this gleeful, and never cause you any harm.Â
When youâre so in love with someone, all the emotions come with it. And while you both encompass the very being of adoration and love, sometimes that red that represented your passion for one another, turned into a shade none of you liked.
_____
Your heels slam against the tiled floor of the hallway as you march through the dimly lit corridor of your apartment building, the sound echoing like the beating of a war drum. Every step sends a jolt through your aching feet, but the pain is nothing compared to the simmering rage boiling in your veins. You fumble for your keys, hands trembling with a mix of exhaustion and fury, the metallic clinking of the keyring mocking your every failed attempt. When you finally manage to fit the key into the lock, it sticks, just like it always does. You curse under your breath - a small, infuriating reminder of the list of things that should have been fixed, but like so many other things lately, were neglected.
You give the door a sharp push, the old wood groaning in protest as it swings open, the gust of night air brushing over your flushed skin, cooling the anger thatâs blazing just beneath the surface. Without thinking, you slam it shut behind you, the force sending a jolt through your arm as the door rebounds off something - or rather, someone. Your boyfriend. The door collides with his face, eliciting a pained grunt as he catches it just in time to prevent further damage.
âReally, Y/N?â he groans, rubbing his jaw where the door had made contact. His voice is strained, more exasperated than angry, but it only fuels the fire burning inside you.
You toss your clutch onto the nearby table with a careless flick of your wrist, the sharp clatter slicing through the tense silence. Kicking off your shoes with more force than necessary, you whirl around to face him, your vision clouded by a searing flash of red-hot anger. You know you should apologise, at least for the door, but the apology sticks in your throat, smothered by the bitterness thatâs bubbling up like a storm ready to burst.
Raking your fingers through your hair, you grip tightly at the roots, desperate to hold onto something, anything, to stop yourself from unravelling completely. âI donât even want to look at you right now,â you spit, voice thick with venom, every word dripping with the weight of betrayal. Your expression twists into one of pure disgust as if just the sight of him is enough to set you off all over again.
You spin on your heel, determined to escape, but before you can make it to the sanctuary of your bedroom, you feel his gentle grip on your elbow. Itâs a light touch, but it might as well be ironclad, and despite every fibre of your being screaming to pull away, you find yourself turning back to him, drawn by a force you canât quite resist. You wish you could fight it - fight him, fight this magnetic pull that always seems to reel you back in - but your heart, traitorous as it is, weakens at his touch.
His eyes are steady, calm even, but the way his jaw tenses betrays the storm brewing beneath his composed exterior. You can see the flicker of frustration in the tightness of his clenched teeth, but itâs not directed at you; itâs aimed at the mess thatâs wedged its way between the two of you, threatening to tear apart everything youâve built together. Heâs not angry with you, not even a little, but you can see the weariness in his gaze - the weight of a thousand unspoken words hanging between you like a fog.
âToo bad, because I donât care if you donât want to see me. Weâre talking this out right now,â he says, his voice low but firm. He is not letting you stew in this mess, he hates the way your brain works, how it overthinks for hours, creating a mountain out of a molehill when he knows that one simple conversation can solve all problems.
He does fear that this might not be solved with a quick debate and kiss. This is going to take more than that.
You yank your arm away, swallowing the painful lump forming in your throat as you catch the brief flash of hurt in his eyes, like a knife twisting deeper. âOh, sorry,â you snap, sarcasm dripping from your words, the sound bitter in your mouth. âWhat would you like to discuss first? The fact that you embarrassed me in front of my entire family and ruined my sisterâs engagement party, or the fact that you punched my dad?â
Each word leaves your lips like a punch, each accusation sharper than the last. You watch as his calm exterior fractures, his eyes flickering with a cocktail of regret, anger, and something you can't quite place. The room feels like itâs closing in, the air heavy with the weight of things said and unsaid, as the silence between you sharpens, poised to snap at any moment.
Jongseong flinches, his expression flickering for a moment, the crack in his composure barely visible but unmistakable to you. Heâs always been so unshakable, so infuriatingly composed during moments like this, and for a split second, you see the vulnerability beneath the mask - the guilt, the pain, the anger at himself. But he quickly steels himself, his gaze locking onto yours with a resolve that sends a shiver down your spine.
âYou think I wanted that to happen?â he shoots back, his voice low and rough, trembling slightly with the effort of keeping it steady. His eyes bore into yours, dark and intense, as if searching for some kind of understanding in the sea of your fury. âYou think I planned to lose it like that? That I wanted to make a scene in front of your whole family?â
His words hang heavy in the air, every syllable a plea for you to see him, to see the mess of emotions churning inside him, but all you can feel is the sting of humiliation, the sharp edge of betrayal slicing through your chest.Â
The scene replays in your mind like a broken film reel, each frame more painful than the last. Your fatherâs slurred words, the way Jongseongâs posture stiffened, the moment things spiralled from heated words to fists flying. You remember the sickening thud of your father hitting the ground, the horrified gasps, and the wave of whispers that rippled through the room. Your heart had dropped to the floor along with him, and in that split second, everything had shattered - your sisterâs engagement, your motherâs fragile composure, and the image youâd built of the man you loved. You can still hear the murmurs, each one laced with judgment, each one a knife twisting deeper.
Your dad has always been a kind man at heart, but the bottle changes him into someone unrecognisable, a man who lets the worst parts of himself spill out. You remember the nights as a child, hiding in your room while your parents fought, your motherâs angry voice telling him to sober up or get out, how he would vomit over the living room floor and have no recollection of it in the morning. Itâs those memories - the helplessness, the fear, the shame - that have kept you from ever picking up a drink.Â
You vowed never to touch the stuff, never to let alcohol turn you into someone altered, and Jongseong understood that about you from the start after you trusted him with your memories. He made the promise to you that night, quitting the moment you told him how much it meant to you, swearing he would never touch another drop again. You didnât ask him too, he simply did it because thatâs how much he loves you.
You step back, folding your arms across your chest, a protective barrier against the storm brewing between you. âYou punched my dad, Jongseong!â you shout, your voice cracking under the strain of holding back tears. âYou humiliated me in front of everyone. My mom was crying, my sister - God, do you even know what you did to her tonight? It was supposed to be her moment, and you ruined it!â
He steps forward, reaching out as if to touch you, to comfort you, but you take another step back, the distance between you widening. The urge to let him hold you, to fall into his arms and let the weight of tonight melt away is so strong it hurts, but you canât. Not yet. Not when everything is still so raw, so jagged.
Jongseong breathes out and calms himself, âListen to me,â he steps forward once again and heâs relieved that you donât move. âI should not have acted like that, and that is what I am sorry for. But I will not let a man who has caused you so much pain talk about you like you are less than what you are. As long as my heart is beating, even when it stops, I will protect you from anything and anyone. I do not care if itâs family, or a stranger, or even yourself. You mean more to me than any other person on this planet and if I think for a second your heart is in danger, I am willing to do anything to protect it.â
His words hang in the air, raw and intense, vibrating with a passion that cuts through the tension like a blade. His gaze is locked onto yours, unwavering, filled with a fierce, almost desperate determination that pulls at something deep inside you. Heâs closer now, just a step away, and you can feel the heat radiating off him, mingling with the cold ache of your own heartbreak. For a moment, all the noise in your head quiets, leaving only the thundering rhythm of your own heartbeat and the weight of his promise.
The room feels smaller, the walls closing in as the intensity of the moment settles around you. Youâre torn between the anger that still simmers beneath your skin and the undeniable pull toward him, the man whoâs both your solace and, tonight, your greatest source of pain. Jongseongâs words are like a salve, and though they donât erase what happened, they start to soothe the jagged edges of your hurt. You can see the fear in his eyes - fear of losing you, of becoming the person youâve always dreaded. Thereâs a vulnerability in him now, raw and unguarded, and it stirs something soft within you.
You take a deep breath, letting the tension drain from your shoulders, just a little. Your grip on the anger loosens, and the tight knot in your chest begins to unfurl, replaced by a slow, tentative warmth. Your fingers twitch, wanting to reach out, but you keep them at your sides, not quite ready for the full embrace of forgiveness but open to something gentler, something that feels like understanding.
âJongseong,â you start, your voice quieter now, less a weapon and more a tentative bridge. âI know you meant well. I know you were trying to stand up for me. But you have to understand⊠thatâs not what I need. I donât need you to fight for me like that. I donât need you to get angry on my behalf. I just need you to be here, to help me feel safe. Not likeâŠâ You trail off, your eyes dropping to the floor as you fight to find the words. âNot like this. Weâve been together for 5 years now, I told you my dad has his moments like this and as a family, we all chose to stick by him and support him, for mumâs sake. He is trying and sometimes he slips. Punching him and lashing out because he said some stupid shit he wonât remember in the morning isnât the answer, itâs not what I want from you.â
Jongseongâs expression softens, the fierce determination in his eyes giving way to something deeper, more regretful. Honestly, he hates that youâre all so kind to a man who has caused you grief and misery your entire life, but you, your mum, and your sister are the kindest souls in the universe, itâs in your nature to see the good in people. Jongseong wishes your dad saw you all that way too, rather than taking advantage of the chances you give him.
He steps closer, his hand finally making contact with your skin and you instantly calm, the weight of his palm on your cheek grounding you. âIâm so sorry, baby,â he repeats, his voice breaking slightly, carrying the weight of his remorse. âI know what I did was stupid. I still donât regret it,â he admits, his honesty ringing clear despite the regret in his tone. âIâd fight anyone who tried to hurt you, physically or emotionally. Thatâs how much you mean to me.â
You look up at him, the tears youâd been holding back now spilling freely. His confession doesnât erase the pain, but it does offer a window into his heart - a heart that, despite its flaws and mistakes, beats fiercely in your defence. You can see the struggle in his eyes, the conflict between his protective instincts and the reality of his actions.
âI know,â you whisper, your voice quiet but unwavering. âI know youâd do anything to protect me. But if weâre going to be a family - when we get married - youâll be part of all this. You have to understand that. You have to respect my mum and dadâs needs.â Your words are a bridge between your love for him and your love for your family. âIf you canât do that, then I canât let you be a part of their lives. I need you to know that.â
Your voice trembles slightly at the weight of what youâre saying, and the look in Jongseongâs eyes shifts. He doesnât speak right away, but his silence is filled with understanding. You can see your words land like stones in his chest, the gravity of your familyâs importance settling in. He knows how much they mean to you, and the unspoken warning lingers: if he messes this up again, thereâs no way forward. The very thought of a future without you sends a ripple of fear through him. Heâs never imagined that possibility because, to him, there is no option. He wonât let it happen.
His stomach churns at the idea of losing you, but his hope brightens as you say âwhen we get marriedâ rather than âifâ. âIâll do better, Y/N. I promise, Iâll support you in whatever way you need me to.â His shoulders drop slightly as if conceding to the truth youâve laid bare between you. âYouâre strong. I shouldâve known that, and Iâm sorry for not trusting that strength.â His remorse is palpable, and you can feel the weight lifting slightly from your chest, the anger and hurt that had clouded your mind beginning to dissipate.
The room seems to settle, the tension slowly dissolving into something calmer, something more manageable. You look up at the man you love, really look at him, and see how much he truly cares - how deeply he regrets what happened, not just for you, but for everyone. His eyes are sincere, remorse shining in their depths, and for the first time since the night began to spiral, you feel a sense of peace.
You exhale, your own apology forming on your lips as the fog of anger clears from your brain. âIâm sorry too. For lashing out, for hitting you with the doorâŠit was childish. I shouldnât have acted like that.â A flush of embarrassment heats your face, the shame of your actions making you feel small.
Jongseong reaches up to rub his jaw, faking a wince, and thankfully, the playful gesture lightens the air between you. âNothing a kiss canât sort out,â he teases, his lips quirking into a small, pouting smile, trying to bring a bit of levity to the conversation.
You laugh softly, shaking your head. âLetâs just make sure we donât cause a fiasco at any more engagement parties, okay?â
Jongseong chuckles slightly, his grin widening as he tilts his head. âWhat if itâs at ours? Do I get groom rights to cause chaos then?â
You raise an eyebrow, crossing your arms as you play along. âWell, youâd have to propose first for me even to consider that.â
Jongseongâs eyes twinkle with mischief and that same love that has always projected through from his soul as he leans in, lowering his voice to a playful whisper. âJust you wait, baby.â
_____
The heavy wooden doors of the chapel creak open, and Jongseong straightens his suit jacket, his fingers smoothing over the fabric of the black suit you had so carefully picked out for him. Itâs tailored to perfection, hugging his broad shoulders and tapering down to a sleek fit at his waist. The crisp white shirt underneath feels a little too tight around his collar, not because of the fit, but because of the sheer enormity of the day. He inhales deeply, gathering all the breath he knows heâll lose the second he begins his walk down the aisle.
At 34 years old, heâs finally getting married, and it still feels surreal. Even this morning, as he stood in front of the mirror, carefully adjusting his tie, it all felt more nerve-wracking than he could have imagined. His hands trembled slightly, not with doubt but with anticipation. It isnât cold feet - far from it. Marrying you is the most certain thing heâs ever felt. In fact, the only thing weighing on his chest isnât whether or not heâs making the right choice - itâs the fact that, for the first time in what feels like forever, youâre not by his side.
Last night, the night before your wedding, was the longest youâve spent apart in years. Youâd stayed with your sister, following the superstition that the bride and groom shouldnât see each other before the ceremony, and while it seemed trivial at first, Jongseong missed you more deeply than he ever thought possible. Since that party so many years ago, heâs spent every moment he could by your side, and now, after sharing a home, building a life together, the thought of you not being there in his bed last night left an ache he hadnât expected.
It wasnât the marriage that was causing him anxiety. He couldnât wait to marry youâto say the vows, to see you in your wedding dress, to call you his wife. No, what had his stomach in knots was the thought of walking down the aisle with all eyes on him. The idea of being the centre of attention, of every gaze following his every move, from the ball of his foot to the tip of his toes, made his skin crawl. Even as a kid, Jongseong hated being the focus of a room.Â
Youâd always been the one to handle social situations with grace, navigating crowds, talking to guests, and subtly keeping the two of you out of the spotlight when he needed it. God, he wished you were here right now to hold his hand and whisper something to ease his nerves.
But of course, you werenât. Tradition had stolen you away from him this morning, and now, he had to face this moment alone. The chapel, though filled with friends and family, felt overwhelmingly empty without you by his side. His heart pounded harder in his chest as the reality of the moment hit him.
Suddenly, the soft notes of music swelled from the organ, pulling him from his thoughts. It was the cue the wedding planner had told him about, the signal that it was time for him to make his way down the aisle. He stood still for a moment, nodding to himself as he acknowledged what lay ahead. The attention, the eyes on him, the anxious fluttering in his chest - it would all be worth it the second he saw you at the other end of the aisle.
With a deep breath, he steps forward. His polished black shoes make a quiet click against the stone floor of the chapel, the sound echoing in the stillness of the room. Jongseongâs gaze flickers up briefly, catching sight of familiar faces in the pews. His mother, sitting proudly near the front, offers him a warm, reassuring smile. He tries to return it, but it feels stiff, nerves still crawling beneath his skin. His father gives him a subtle nod of encouragement, and Jongseong straightens his back, feeling the weight of their support behind him.
As he continues to walk, the scent of lilies and roses, the same ones you picked out together for the ceremony, fills the air. Sunlight streams in through the stained-glass windows, casting vibrant colours across the chapel floor - deep reds, purples, and golds dancing around his feet like blessings from above. He hears the faint rustle of fabric as guests turn their heads to watch him, but he keeps his eyes forward, focusing on the path ahead.
His palms are sweaty, and his pulse quickens with each step. The aisle feels impossibly long, like a steep hill with a drinking fountain waiting at the top. The rows of guests stretch on and on. Jongseong fights the urge to tug at his collar, to loosen the tie just a bit, but he knows it wonât help. Nothing can calm the storm inside him except you.
But as he nears the front, something shifts. The nervousness, the anxiety of being under watchful eyes, begins to ebb away, replaced by something else. Anticipation. Because just after this walk, after these few moments of discomfort, comes you. The love of his life. His future.
He greets your family with fondness and love as he reaches the end. Each one has become integral to his life, the definition of his second family. Jongseong's smile softens as he approaches them and offering a slight bow in respect.Â
His future mother-in-law is sitting to the side, her eyes filled with warmth. Her hands are clasped tightly in her lap, fingers intertwined, though her expression is calm and composed. She has always been a strong presence in your life, and he feels the same quiet strength radiating from her now. She nods to him, her lips curving into a gentle smile that puts him a little more at ease. Thereâs a silent understanding between them - one forged through shared moments, family dinners, and heart-to-heart talks that had transformed Jongseong from a visitor into a son.
Standing next to your other bridesmaids is your sister, fidgeting slightly with the lace of her dress, her excitement palpable as the number one supporter in this relationship. She beams up at him, her eyes twinkling. Sheâs always been the one to bring lightness into any room, to ease tension with a well-timed joke or a teasing comment, and seeing her now, vibrant and full of life, reminds him of all the times sheâd teased him for being so nervous about today. Her laughter and encouragement had helped him through many anxious moments, and her unspoken support right now is a comfort he hadnât realised he needed.
They are his family now, just as much as his own parents sitting a few rows behind, and knowing that fills him with a sense of belonging.
Jongseong takes his position at the altar, trying to shake off the nervous tension building inside him. His friend Sunghoon is already there, waiting with a grin thatâs equal parts mischief and pride. Sunghoon, who had been there for every milestone in his relationship, claps him on the back. It's surreal for both of them; after all, it was Sunghoon who dragged Jongseong to that dreadful party where you first met. Sunghoon had refused to let Jongseong skip it, even though Jongseong had dramatically declared heâd rather run naked through a field of nettles than attend. Now, Sunghoon stands by his side, proud of the role he played in bringing you both together and wearing the title of groomsman like a badge of honour.
"You look like you're about to get married," Sunghoon teases, laughter dancing in his voice. From where he stands, Sunghoon sees his best friend transformed. Jongseongâs usual cool demeanour is present, but thereâs a deeper layer today - one of anticipation and raw emotion. His usually steady hands are clenched slightly, his jaw a little tighter than usual. Sunghoon notices all these small signs, but underneath them, he can see that Jongseong is just waiting to call you his wife, the need to call you Mrs. Park is whatâs making him shake.
"Yeah? Too overdressed?" Jongseong jokes, trying to mask the nerves that refuse to leave him completely.
"Just a little," Sunghoon nudges him playfully. His smile fades into something more sincere. "You ready?"
Jongseong takes a deep breath before responding, his voice quiet but confident. "I donât think Iâve ever been more ready in my life." He ignores the whispers and murmurs from the crowd, sounds he can't quite decipher. Will they be bad? Probably not, but that doesnât stop his brain from trying to twist them into something else. What if they all think youâre settling? Still, he pushes it all aside, focusing on the one thing that matters: you.
He is so excited to see you. You had kept everything a secret - your dress, your hair, even down to your nails. He had tried every trick in the book to get even the smallest detail out of you, from sweet persuasion to playful pestering. Heâd casually ask while you were busy with wedding plans or playfully guess what colour you might be wearing, trying to gauge your reaction. Each time, though, you would just smile coyly and shake your head, refusing to give anything away. Jongseong had groaned in mock frustration, but deep down, he knew it would be worth the wait. He was absolutely certain youâd look breathtaking, no matter what. You always look like the most beautiful person in the world, like the earth around you, only blooms to keep up with your beauty.
Sunghoon grins, breaking Jongseongâs thoughts. "I saw her earlier, y'know. Tried to talk her out of making a massive mistake." His tone is light, thereâs no mistaking the fondness in his eyes. Sunghoon had actually visited you before the ceremony, not to convince you of anything, but to tell you how happy he was that you had come into Jongseongâs life. He had joked that he wanted a child named after him, but beneath the teasing, he was sincere. He told you how lucky he felt to witness true love up close, to see two people so in sync that it was like watching a real-life fairytale.
For Sunghoon, it was like one of the bedtime stories he read to his daughter, tales of love that transcended everything else. Sometimes, when he read those stories, his mind would drift to you and Jongseong, imagining the two of you as the characters destined for each other. Even his wife is amazed by the connection you share - two people who fit together so effortlessly that it was hard to believe. Sunghoon and his wife love one another so much, but they can recognise that you and Jongseongâs love is once in a lifetime, and they learn so much from you.
"Yeah? How did she look?" Jongseong asks, his voice tinged with hope. "Nervous? Cold feet? Sheâs definitely coming, right?"
Sunghoon throws his head back, laughing loudly, the sound echoing through the quiet church, eliciting some confusion on the faces of the guests. "She looks way out of your league, but no, sheâs not nervous. Sheâs ready. In fact, she told me to let you know that you should cry when you see her. If you donât, sheâs marrying Jake instead."
Right on cue, Jake, the other groomsman, pops his head over Sunghoonâs shoulder with a wide grin. "And I will marry her in a minute, so you better get those waterworks going."
Jongseong canât help but laugh, shaking his head at the ridiculousness of it all. But he knows youâre serious about the tears. Your man is not one for crying, he rarely feels the need for tears, but he has a sneaking suspicion youâre going to get your wish.
The music starts, and Jongseong stiffens, his heart slamming against his ribs as if itâs trying to escape his chest and rush down the aisle to meet you. Itâs only been a night since he last saw you, but to him, it feels like an eternity. The shared bed had felt too big, too cold without you beside him, and in that quiet space, he realized just how much you completed him. He missed you, and though it might seem dramatic, the longing reminded him that this wasnât just about nerves. It was about the indescribable excitement of committing himself to you, completely and forever.
He had wanted to do this years ago, perhaps two years into your relationship rather than waiting twelve. But you had been the practical one, insisting that you both build your careers, settle into life without the added pressure of a wedding. He hadnât minded too much; after all, what was a few more years when you had forever to spend together?
As the soft strains of music fill the chapel, Jongseong freezes. Itâs an original piece - the one he had composed for you way back in the beginning of your relationship. The ballad, a quiet testament to the love he held for you even then, was something heâd never expected to hear today. Each note flows seamlessly into the next, blending together like the way his love for you has always been: fluid, effortless, natural.Â
For him, loving you has never been complicated. Itâs as though the melody was written not just with the keys of the piano, but with the strings of his heart. The tears, which you had so eagerly asked for, begin to gather at the corners of his eyes.
Then he sees you.
You appear at the end of the aisle, and his breath catches. Words escape him because theyâre not enough to describe how radiant you are. The light from the stained-glass windows dances across your white gown, making you look as if youâre wrapped in sunlight itself. The lace of your dress hugs your figure delicately, each intricate detail shimmering as if woven from the stars. Your veil, soft as gossamer, floats behind you, catching the gentle breeze that filters through the open chapel doors. Your eyes, bright and full of love, meet his, and in that moment, Jongseong knows - if ever there was perfection, it is you.
Your beauty is beyond anything he could have imagined, like a dream come to life. You are the embodiment of every love song, every poem, every whispered promise. As you walk toward him, it feels like time slows, like the world pauses to let him savour every second, every step. You are grace personified, and all he can think is how lucky he is that this is real, that you are his.
Beside you, your father walks proudly with his arm linked through yours. His face shines with pride, his entire being glowing with joy. Jongseong feels a surge of pride for him as well. Their relationship had a rocky start, but now, four years into his sobriety, your father has become someone Jongseong admires deeply.Â
The way you and your family never gave up on him taught Jongseong valuable lessons in patience, compassion, and what it means to truly love someone through their struggles. Watching your father today, standing tall and proud, Jongseong knows that all the hardships were worth it. He understands now that loving someone through their demons isnât easy, but itâs something only the most special people can do - and you are one of those people. You have made Jongseong a better man, and he is and always will be eternally grateful for that.
When you and your father finally reach the end of the aisle, Jongseongâs breath hitches as he sees you up close for the first time. Heâs lost for words, his emotions threatening to overwhelm him. The tears that had gathered in his eyes finally spill over as he gazes at you. Your smile is so bright, most likely happy at his reaction, and he suddenly feels like his heart is trying to burst through his chest just to meld with your own; he is so privileged you hold his heart this way.
âYou lookâŠâ he starts, but the words catch in his throat.
âLike Iâm ready to be your wife?â you finish with a teasing smile, your voice warm and steady.
Jongseong shakes his head, his voice cracking with emotion. âLike my everything.âÂ
The way he says this, so pure and genuine, your smile falters just ever so slightly, your face now wanting to express an earnest love, the kind of expression you only look at the love of your life with.
Your father, watching the exchange, beams with satisfaction. Thereâs a tenderness in his expression as he shakes Jongseongâs hand, pulling him into a firm embrace. âI know youâll look after one another,â your father whispers, his voice thick with emotion. âIâm so proud to call you my son.â
The words settle deep within Jongseongâs heart, and when your father steps back to take his seat, the ceremony begins.
As the officiant begins speaking, his voice soft but clear, Jongseong canât help but marvel at how your hand fits so perfectly in his, your fingers warm and familiar, yet somehow new, in this moment. Every word that spills from the officiantâs lips feels like background noise; all Jongseong can focus on is you. The way you stand before him, radiating beauty and calm, is enough to make his heart swell to the point of aching. You squeeze his hand softly, pulling him back to the present. His thumb brushes over your knuckles in response, a silent message of reassurance, of love. It feels as if the two of you are existing in your own world, tethered together by this secret moment amid the hum of the ceremony.
Even in a room full of people, he will always only see you.
He glances at your face, catching a fleeting look of emotion dancing in your eyes, and it takes everything in him not to pull you into his arms right there. Youâre holding it together so well, but he knows you too well. The slight tension in your grip, the way your breath catches every now and then - it all betrays the storm of emotion beneath the surface. And it matches his own.
When the officiant calls for the vows, Jongseong inhales sharply. This is the part heâs been waiting for, and yet, the part that terrifies him the most. Not because heâs unsure, but because thereâs so much to say, so much love to express, and he hopes he can convey it all with the right words.
He turns to face you, both of your hands now clasped together. He can feel the slight tremble in your fingers, mirroring the nervous excitement coursing through his own veins. The vows - this is where he gets to tell you, in front of everyone you both love, just how much you mean to him. But even as he opens his mouth, his heart beats in time with yours, each pulse echoing a silent promise of forever.
Clearing his throat, he pulls the paper from his suit pocket, calming himself.
âY/N. I should start by saying how in love I am with you. I think itâs pretty obvious, I donât think my heart is even mine anymore with the way you hold it. I remember the first time I ever saw you, so bored and begging to be saved from that god awful party. But itâs funny if you think about it because I didnât save you from anything at all, you saved me - in more ways than I could ever thank you for.
You are my heart, soul, courage, fear, wonder, and love. I am you and you are me. âLove is a condition in which the happiness of another person is essential to your own.â I remember hearing that quote and never fully knowing what it meant. But since we are two people sewn together with the thread of fate, I began to understand that for me to be happy, to live in this world without regret or misery, I need to make sure I love you with every fibre of my being, to make sure youâre happy, safe, and cherished until the very end.
So today, my love, I vow to love you exactly as you are. I vow to protect you, not just from the world, but from any doubts or fears that ever try to steal your light. I vow to be the one who stands by your side when life feels too heavy, to hold you when you need comfort, and to celebrate with you when life brings you joy. I promise to love you on the days when life feels effortless, but more importantly, I vow to love you even harder on the days when itâs not.
I promise to cherish the smallest moments, the quiet mornings and the late-night talks, the laughter and even the silences that only we understand. You have made me a better man, and every day with you feels like a gift I donât deserve, but one I will never take for granted.
I vow to never let a day go by without reminding you just how much you mean to me. To wake up every morning and choose you, choose us, over and over again. I vow to be your protector, your partner, your best friend, and your greatest supporter. Whatever life brings our way - whether itâs joy or challenges - I will be there, by your side, holding your hand through it all.
And above all, I vow to love you endlessly, fiercely, and without reservation, because you are my heartâs home, and there is nowhere else I would rather be.
Today, tomorrow, and every day after, I am yours. Forever.â
As Jongseong finishes his vows, his voice steady yet laced with emotion, you feel tears slip down your cheek. Despite your best efforts to stay composed, the overwhelming love in his words makes it impossible to hold back. You mourn the people in the pews who donât get to experience Jongseongâs love because it is unfiltered and pure, the love people dream of and never have. He watches you closely, his eyes softening the moment he notices your tears.
Without missing a beat, Jongseong reaches up, gently brushing away the tear with the pad of his thumb, his touch as tender as his words. His fingers linger for a moment, his smile growing fond and warm as if heâs silently telling you that itâs okay, that heâs here, and that he understands how deeply his words have touched you.
Jongseong leans in just slightly, close enough for you to hear him whisper, "Maybe I should have vowed to never make you cry." His playful tone does little to hide the way his own eyes glisten, the deep emotions brimming just below the surface.Â
Your lips tremble into a small smile through your tears, feeling both overwhelmed and reassured by the way heâs looking at you - as though you are the most precious thing in his world. And in that moment, you realise, you donât have to hold anything back. Youâre standing here, with the man who will cherish you for the rest of his life, and there is no need for composure, no need to hide the tears or the love that pours from you so naturally.
The officiant gives a gentle nod, signalling itâs time for your vows, but Jongseong keeps his gaze on you, his hand still cradling your cheek as if to give you strength. His smile never falters, and in his eyes, you see nothing but encouragement, affection, and a quiet promise that he will be right here, every step of the way.
You take a deep breath, your fingers trembling slightly as you hold your vows, and the room quiets in anticipation. You glance at Jongseong, your heart swelling as you realize youâre about to marry the love of your life, the man who has been your everything for so long.
âI kinda wish I went first now,â you laugh softly, stepping back to wipe your tears, earning a round of laughter from the guests. Even Jongseong chuckles, his eyes full of warmth, and the pressure lifts just a little as you prepare to speak from the heart.
âI really canât believe Iâm standing here today, two seconds away from becoming Mrs. Park. Though, letâs be real - Iâm never going to be the best Mrs. Park. That title is clearly reserved for your mum,â you say with a playful smile, looking over at Jongseongâs mother. She places a hand on her heart, her eyes shining with affection, and nods back at you.
âJongseong, standing here before you feels like a dream Iâve had my entire life. It feels like everything in the universe has led me to this moment, to you. You are my heart, my home, and the one person who makes the world feel safe and beautiful just by being in it.
People think a soulmate is your perfect fit, and thatâs what everyone wants. But a true soulmate is a mirror, the person who shows you everything that is holding you back, the person who brings you to your own attention so you can change your life. And you have changed my life Jongseong, so beautifully so. I am more confident, resilient, and passionate about my life because I have you beside me.Â
There is so much love inside my body that is only reserved for you. Love is the reason we all continue to live, even through tragedies and heartbreak, we seek love in all of those moments because itâs worth living for. Jongseong, you make life worth living.
I vow to honor you with every beat of my heart, to cherish you with every breath I take. I promise to stand by you in every season, to be your unwavering support when the world feels heavy, and your biggest cheerleader when you need encouragement. I will hold your hand through the trials and celebrate with you in the triumphs, always knowing that together, we can face anything.
I vow to love you as deeply as the ocean, to be your steadfast anchor when the waves of life try to pull us apart. I promise to nurture our dreams, to build a life filled with wonder and discovery, and to always remember the simple, profound joy of being together.
You have taught me that love is not just a feeling, but a practice - one that grows and deepens every day. It is in the way we laugh together, the way we support each otherâs dreams and the quiet moments when we simply hold each other close. I promise to practise this love with you, to make it a living, breathing part of our lives, one that we can carry into the afterlife and know that even if our bodies are apart through death, our hearts are always linked.
I want to be a wife who deserves you, one who never takes you for granted and gives you back tenfold the love you have for me, and God knows your love is vaster than anything else in this world. You are my heartâs truest song, and I vow to be the harmony to your melody, the gentle refrain that sings of our forever. I promise to be patient, to listen, to understand, and to always come back to you with an open heart.
Jongseong, today and every day, I choose you, not just as my partner but as my greatest adventure, my greatest joy, and my deepest love. Together, we will write a story that is uniquely ours, filled with love, laughter, and a bond that only grows stronger with time. You are my most cherished muse, wholly and completely.â
As you finish your vows, your voice quivers with emotion, and the room seems to collectively hold its breath. Jongseongâs eyes glisten with tears of joy and admiration as he kisses your forehead, his touch is tender and reassuring, and he smiles at you with a look of pure, unadulterated love. The room sighs with appreciation, moved by the heartfelt exchange.
The officiant, his own eyes misty with the beauty of the moment, clears his throat to address the couple. âHaving heard these vows of unwavering love and commitment, it is now time for us to proceed with the ring exchange.â
Jongseong and you gaze deeply into one anothers eyes, the ceremony reaching its most poignant moment. The officiant gestures to Sunghoon, who steps forward, holding the rings with great reverence. With a knowing smile, he hands the rings to Jongseong, who looks at them with a sense of awe. This is it.Â
âJongseong,â the officiant prompts, âplease place the ring on Y/Nâs finger and repeat after me.â
Jongseongâs voice is steady but filled with emotion as he recites the traditional vows, âWith this ring, I thee wed. It is a symbol of my love and devotion, a promise to cherish and honour you all the days of my life.â
As Jongseong slides the ring onto your finger, you feel its weight - a tangible representation of his love and commitment. You repeat the same words to him, your hands slightly trembling with the depth of your feelings.
The officiant smiles warmly at the couple. âMay these rings be a constant reminder of the love you share and the vows you have made to each other.â
With the rings exchanged, the officiant addresses the gathering. âBy the power vested in me, I now pronounce you husband and wife. You may kiss the bride.â
Jongseong leans in, his gaze locked with yours, and the world seems to fall away, leaving just the two of you in this perfect moment. His lips touch yours with a tenderness that is both electrifying and soothing. The kiss starts softly, a gentle brush of affection, but it quickly deepens into something more passionate and heartfelt. His hands cradle your face, his thumbs gently brushing along your cheekbones, anchoring you both in the intimacy of the moment.
The warmth of his breath mingles with yours, and as the kiss unfolds, it feels like a dance - delicate and full of emotion. Jongseongâs lips move with a tender urgency, conveying the depth of his love and the gravity of the vows youâve just exchanged. Thereâs gentle pressure, a shared promise in the way his mouth moves against yours as if heâs pouring all the love he holds into this one kiss.
The chapelâs applause and cheers seem distant, fading into the background as youâre wrapped in the warmth and sweetness of Jongseongâs kiss. His fingers gently trace the curve of your jaw, adding a touch of reverence to the moment. You can feel the thrum of emotion in every touch, every caress, as if heâs imprinting this perfect moment onto both of your souls.
As you slowly pull away, Jongseongâs eyes are filled with a mixture of joy and reverence. The intensity of the kiss has left both of you breathless, your hearts racing with the shared exhilaration of this new chapter. His gaze holds yours with profound happiness, and you see in his eyes the same depth of feeling that youâve always known was there.
âI love you so fucking much, Y/N,â Jongseong confesses with more earnestness than you have ever seen in one human being.Â
âI donât think youâre supposed to swear in church,â you giggle, pecking his lips to rid him of the sin.
But heâs unbothered, his emotions outweighing etiquette. He shrugs and takes your hand in his. âI think the big man upstairs will forgive me this one time.â
As Jongseong takes your hand, the two of you walk down the aisle together, the applause from your friends and family echoing through the chapel, though it now feels like nothing more than a distant murmur. His thumb gently strokes the back of your hand, and every glance he steals your way is filled with an overwhelming sense of love and pride. The weight of the moment lingers sweetly between you, as if youâre both walking on air.
Once outside, the soft sunlight bathes you both in warmth, and you canât help but let out a contented sigh. This is everything you could want.Â
Jongseong, ever the gentleman, jogs to reach the car first, dramatically pulling the door open with a playful grin. âAfter you, Mrs. Park,â he gestures with a flourish, eyes turning into sweet crescent moons as the light beams from him.
You raise an eyebrow and chuckle at his antics. âYouâre enjoying this, huh?â
âCanât help it,â he winks, guiding you gently into the car. âI love how it sounds on my tongue,â he leans down until heâs level with your face, âMrs. Park, Mrs. Park, Mrs. Park.âÂ
He will repeat it until he gets bored of hearing it, which will be never and a day.
As you settle into the seat, he quickly slips in beside you, and before the door is even shut, his lips are on yours again, more urgent this time. The kiss deepens with a fervour that wasnât quite there at the altar, and you can feel his restraint fading. He pulls you closer, his hand resting possessively on your waist, as if heâs making up for all the time he spent holding back earlier - he would have gone all in but something about tonguing you down in front of a priest and about 30 of your closest friends and family didnât sit well with him. His lips move hungrily against yours, each kiss more intense than the last.
You let out a soft moan in response to the sudden heat, and Jongseong smirks into your mouth, pulling back just enough to catch his breath, but not before brushing his lips teasingly against yours once more. The car starts moving, but his focus is entirely on you. His forehead rests against yours for a moment, his breath coming in shallow, heated bursts. The playful glint in his eyes returns as he taps the driver on the shoulder.
âCould you take us back to the hotel for a quick pit stop?â His tone is mischievous, eyes twinkling with intent.
You blink in surprise, your thoughts returning briefly to the chaos of the wedding day schedule. âButâŠwe need to get our certificate signed, take picturesâŠthe reception?â You eye him curiously, though a part of you already knows where this is going.
Jongseong just shrugs, utterly unbothered. âThat can wait a minute. Do you have any idea how hard it was not having you last night?â
His words send a ripple of heat down your spine, and despite your initial protest, a smile tugs at your lips. âIt was one night, Jongseong,â you laugh incredulously, though you know deep down you shared his struggle. Thereâs a certain magnetic pull between you thatâs only intensified since the moment you exchanged vows.
But before you can say anything else, his mouth is on your neck, his lips trailing heated, deliberate kisses along your skin. He finds that spot just beneath your ear, the one that always leaves you breathless, and you melt into him instantly. Your earlier concerns about timing and schedules vanish, replaced by the undeniable, almost primal need for him.
Every touch, every kiss, is fuelled by the weight of the dayâs emotions, and soon youâre lost in him entirely, giving in to the desire thatâs been simmering between you. From love to passion, your relationship flows seamlessly between them.
Jongseongâs kisses are searing against your neck, sending shivers down your spine, and any remaining thoughts of the dayâs schedule fade into nothing. His hands grip your waist firmly, pulling you closer as you feel the heat building between you both. The car ride blurs by in a haze of stolen kisses and whispered promises, the tension growing heavier with every touch.
Before long, the car pulls up outside the hotel, and Jongseong barely waits for the driver to open the door before he helps you out, his grip on your hand tight, his thumb brushing your wedding ring with fondness despite the heat pumping through him.Â
The hotel lobby is a blur, neither of you paying attention to anything around you as he tugs you towards the lift. Once inside, his mouth is back on yours, pushing you gently against the wall, his body pressed up close, a low groan escaping his lips.
The moment the doors open to your floor, youâre both stumbling down the hallway, hands roaming, clothes being tugged at impatiently. The urgency is palpable, as if every second spent not touching is a second wasted. By the time you reach the room, Jongseong fumbles with the key card, barely able to keep his lips from yours as he finally pushes the door open.
You stumble inside together, the sheer size of your wedding dress catching between you as you attempt to navigate the small space. Jongseong laughs softly into the kiss, but neither of you cares as you pull at each other, the weight of your emotions taking over. His hands work swiftly to find the buttons and zippers hidden beneath layers of fabric, and you can feel his need for you in every motion.
Your lips part briefly, just long enough for you to gasp out between kisses, âWe need to be quick, baby.â Your breath is ragged, your voice barely above a whisper, but the desperation in your tone mirrors his own.
âQuickâŠright,â he mutters, though thereâs no sign of him slowing down. His hands are everywhere - your waist, your back, your hips - gripping and pulling as though he canât get enough of you. He presses you up against the nearest wall, his lips finding yours again, deeper and more urgent than before.
As you pull him closer, the fabric of your dress rustles and tangles between you, but it only adds to the delicious mess of the moment. His hands slip beneath the lace, fingers tracing the sensitive skin of your thighs, making you gasp. He smiles against your lips, that same playful glint in his eyes, but his kiss is nothing but intense.
Finally, after what feels like an eternity of fumbling, Jongseongâs fingers work the last clasp on the back of your dress. The fabric slips from your shoulders, and the sensation of it gliding down your body makes you shiver. He steps back just slightly, allowing the gown to pool at your feet, his eyes following every movement with hungry intensity.
The moment he sees you standing there in nothing but the white lace lingerie beneath, his breath catches, and a flicker of pure desire ignites in his gaze. His hands, which had been so impatient before, now pause in reverence, as though heâs taking in every detail, committing this moment to memory.
âGod,â he breathes out, voice thick with awe and hunger. âYouâre fucking perfect, have i ever told you that?â
His words send a wave of warmth through you, your heart racing even faster under the weight of his gaze. Before you can respond, his hands find your waist again, pulling you to him. His lips crash against yours, the intensity of the kiss somehow even more fervent now that thereâs nothing between you but the thin lace of your thong and his trousers.
His fingers trace the delicate patterns of the fabric, teasingly brushing over your skin in a way that makes your pulse quicken. His lips move from your mouth, trailing down your jawline to your collarbone, then lower, each kiss deliberate, driving you wild with anticipation.
âJongseongâŠâ You gasp, your body reacting to every touch, every kiss. The urgency from before still lingers, but thereâs something deeper now - a need not just for passion, but for connection. The feeling that youâve finally, truly become his in every way.
He smirks against your skin, clearly enjoying the way your body responds to him, his hands sliding over the lace as though he can barely restrain himself, feeling how wet you are for him. His lips find yours again, but this time slower, deeper, as if heâs taking everything in, the moment, you, all of it.
âQuick, right?â he teases softly between kisses, but thereâs now no rush in his movements now. The two of you are lost in each other, and any notion of time or urgency is forgotten as he continues to explore you, making every second feel endless and yet not nearly enough.
Jongseongâs teasing words hang in the air, and you canât help but smile against his lips, your heart pounding in your chest. The fire between you is still blazing, but thereâs a tenderness now, an unspoken understanding that this moment is more than just physical. Itâs the culmination of everything - every shared glance, every whispered promise, every touch over the past 12 years.
âIâm gonna fuck you, fill you up and have you walk around the reception with my cum inside of you,â he breathes out, his hands busy undoing his dress trousers, fingers fumbling before pushing them down, the fabric pooling to his ankles, quickly making friends with your wedding dress.
The mere thought if it has you deperate, and instantly, youâre jumping up and wrapping your legs around his waist, your heat craving his touch. Jongseong lets out a low groan as you cling to him, the weight of you pressing against his cock driving his need to the surface. He catches your lips again, this time more fervently, his hands gripping your hips tightly as he practically traps you between the wall and his chest. The coolness of the hotel wall contrasts with the heat of his body, and the sensation sends a shiver down your spine.
âYou drive me crazy, you know that?â he mutters against your lips, his voice a mix of frustration and affection. His breath is heavy, matching the rapid beat of your heart. He needs to be inside of you, and he needs it now.
As he adjusts his grip on you, his hand slides between your thighs as he pushes your thong to the side, lining himself up. The anticipation builds, and you moan softly, arching against him, silently pleading for more, the tip of his cock poking at where you need him most. He pauses for a moment, his eyes locking with yours, a small, knowing smile playing on his lips.
âReady?â he whispers, his voice low and gravelly, as if daring you to answer.
You donât need to say a word - your body tells him everything he needs to know, but your nod anyway. âYes, fuck, Jongseong please.â
With one smooth motion, Jongseong thrusts into you, filling you completely. A gasp escapes your lips as your bodies meld together, the intensity of the moment sending sparks of pleasure coursing through you. He groans deeply, his breath ragged as he begins to move, each thrust deliberate and powerful, driving deeper into you.
Each thrust sends waves of pleasure through your core, your senses overwhelmed by the feeling of him inside you. The curve of his cock drags down your tight walls, each bump of your inner core being kissed by his bell, making your eyes roll to the back of your head.
His pace quickens, the need between you intensifying. Your nails dig into his back, holding him closer as he drives into you harder, deeper, the friction and heat building to an unbearable crescendo. The way he looks at you, his eyes dark and intense, filled with raw need and adoration, makes you feel like youâre the only thing that matters to him in this moment.
âGod, you feel so good,â he breathes out, his voice hoarse with desire. His hips snap against yours with more urgency, his hand gripping the back of your neck as he presses his forehead to yours. âGonna fill you up, yeah? Give you all of me just like you deserve.â
You canât hold back the moans that slip from your lips, your body trembling as you near the edge. Every thrust, every touch, every breath sends you spiraling closer to that sweet release, and you can feel it building, tightening in your core.
âCanât wait to start a family with you, baby,â he confesses, the sentence thoughtful yet primal, âWhat if I got you pregnant right now, huh? Would Mrs. Park like that?â
âFuck, yes!â you mewl out, the way he says your new government name along with the promise of a family is all too overwhelming as it mixes in with the utter lust your body feels. You need him to fill you to the brim, to have each inch of him buried to the hilt of you while he pumps his seed deep into your womb. âI need you⊠so closeâŠâ you whisper, your voice trembling with desperation.
Jongseong's thrusts become more urgent, each one deeper and harder than the last. Your bodies move in perfect rhythm, his name slipping from your lips in a desperate moan as pleasure coils tighter within you. The world fades away, your senses filled only by the heat of his skin against yours, the heady scent of desire, and the raw intensity in his gaze as he watches you unravel beneath him.
âYouâre so fucking beautiful, Mrs. Park,â he whispers, âSo pretty, and all mine.â His tone is loving if through gritted teeth, parts of the syllables coated in the desire he has running through his veins.
âI love you, Jongseong,â you whisper, kissing all over his face as you feel yourself getting closer to the brink of euphoria.
He chuckles softly, eyes almost filling with tears. âI love you too, Y/N. So fucking much.â And without another word, he kisses you with so much passion and devotion that if you werenât already breathless from the raw fucking he is giving you, you definetly would have felt the air escape your lungs.
The pressure inside you builds relentlessly, your muscles clenching around him, drawing him deeper. He groans, a low, guttural sound that sends a thrill of electricity through your veins. His lips trail back up your neck, leaving a burning path in their wake before they crash into yours again, his kiss filled with hunger and need, as if he canât get enough of you.
"You're perfect," he breathes against your lips, his voice strained, thick with lust. His hands tighten on your hips, pulling you down harder onto him with every thrust, making you feel every inch of him. âReady to be a mum, baby? Ready for me to fuck you senseless each and every day and use the excuse of trying?â
âFuck yeah, Jongseong, I canât wait.â The grin on your face contorts with pure pleasure as he takes your words and runs wild with them, making good on his promise. If it isnât today, or tomorrow, or even in the next year, he will make sure he keeps fucking you, until both of you create something wonderful, until you create a family thatâs bigger than what you both are now.
You cling to him, nails scraping against his back as waves of pleasure crash over you with every buck of his hips. His pace is relentless now, hips slamming into yours with raw, unfiltered passion, each motion pushing you closer to the edge. Your vision blurs, the world spinning as the sensation intensifies, your body trembling uncontrollably.
You can feel him pulsing inside you, the tension in his body telling you that he's close, just as you are. His name is the only word you can form as your release builds to a peak, the pressure inside you unbearable. He presses his forehead against yours, his eyes locked on you, completely focused as he watches you fall apart in his arms.
"Cum for me," he growls, his voice a rough command that sends a shudder through you.
At his words, the coil inside you snaps, and you let go completely. A cry escapes your lips as the orgasm tears through you, your entire body trembling violently as pleasure floods your senses. You grip onto him like he's the only thing grounding you, your nails digging into his skin as wave after wave of ecstasy courses through you.
Jongseongâs own release follows soon after, his body shuddering as he empties himself inside you, his groans of pleasure vibrating against your neck. His movements slow but remain deep, deliberate, prolonging the sensation as both of you ride the aftershocks of pleasure. You can feel his warmth spreading through you, just as he promised, and the thought of it sends a final tremor through your body.
For a moment, neither of you move, the heat of the moment still clinging to you as Jongseongâs weight presses you gently against the wall. His chest heaves against yours, and the only sound is the ragged rhythm of your breaths mingling in the charged air.
Slowly, Jongseong pulls back just enough to meet your gaze. His fingers trace softly over your flushed skin, and the intensity in his eyes gives way to a tenderness that makes your heart flutter. A satisfied smile tugs at the corner of his lips as he leans in to kiss you again, this time with a slow, sweet tenderness that deepens the connection between you.
âYou okay?â he whispers, his voice soft and reverent as his thumb caresses the curve of your jaw.
You nod, breathless and still tingling from the afterglow. âMore than okay,â you murmur, your lips brushing against his as you speak.
âGood,â he chuckles, his eyes glinting with mischief. He sets you down gently, supporting you until your legs regain their strength. âWe have a reception to get back to, after all.â
With a deft, almost intimate touch, his fingers slip between your sensitive folds, gathering his essence before gently pushing it back inside you. His gaze remains locked with yours, a mix of possessiveness and adortation. âKeep that in there until I can steal you away again and give you more.â
Giggling, you nod, biting your lip. You really cannot wait for the day you have this manâs child.
_____
Jongseong bursts into the hospital, his breath ragged, his vision blurred by the panic that clogs his thoughts. The fluorescent lights overhead feel too bright, their sterile, clinical glow only exacerbating the coldness gripping his chest. A sharp antiseptic smell wafts through the air, mingling with the faint hum of machinery and the occasional cough from sick patients in the waiting area. The beeps of heart monitors and distant murmurs of conversation all blur into a single cacophony, lost on him as his sole focus narrows to one desperate objective: finding you.
His eyes dart wildly across the expanse of the lobby, scanning for some kind of guidance. There, tucked away in the corner, is an oak reception desk. The receptionist, a middle-aged woman with a sympathetic smile, taps away at her computer, unaware of the storm about to come her way. Jongseong rushes over, his heart pounding, each thud reverberating in his ears like the ticking of a countdown he canât afford to lose.
"Excuse me, do you know where the maternity ward is?" The words tumble from his mouth in a breathless jumble, barely coherent even to his own ears. It doesnât sound like him - this frantic, uncollected version of himself - but he doesnât care. He canât afford to. His gaze flickers briefly to the woman behind the desk as she begins to reply, her voice gentle, almost calming, in stark contrast to the chaos raging inside him.
"You're in the wrong section, sweetheart. Maternity is ward 48, it's down the ha-"
But he doesn't wait for her to finish. Her words are cut short as he spins on his heel, legs propelling him down the long, seemingly endless corridor. His heart is racing, but not from the sprint. Itâs the weight of fear, the gnawing dread that tightens his chest and churns his stomach. He might miss it. He might miss you. Miss being by your side when you need him the most. The thought alone makes his insides twist, as though someone had reached into his ribcage and clenched his heart in a fist.
This is supposed to be a joyous moment - the birth of his son, your son, the culmination of months of waiting, preparing, and dreaming. But right now, all he feels is the gnawing anxiety that he wonât make it in time. That he wonât be there to hold your hand, to look into your eyes and tell you that youâre doing great, that everything will be okay.Â
His mind races back to when he received the call from your sister, the news hitting him like a freight train. He had been at work, neck-deep in paperwork and deadlines. He had barely believed it at first. You werenât due for another two weeks; surely, this was a mistake. Yet, here you were, two floors above him, about to deliver his precious son into the world.
But none of that matters now. What matters is getting to you, being by your side before itâs too late.Â
His legs burn as he pushes himself forward, following the overhead signs that guide him toward ward 48. The corridors stretch out before him like a maze, every turn only amplifying the desperation pooling in his chest. The sharp click of his shoes echoes loudly in the silence, but all he can hear is the blood rushing in his ears, the frantic beat of his own heart drowning out everything else.
When he finally crashes into the wardâs front desk, itâs not graceful. His body slams into the counter, breath heaving, his muscles taut with adrenaline. He grips the edge of the desk as though it's the only thing keeping him upright. "Excuse me, what room is Y/N Park in?" The words come out strained, his voice thick with tension. Every fibre of his being feels stretched to the breaking point, as though his body is barely containing the swell of emotions surging through him.
The receptionist looks up, a soft smile tugging at the corners of her lips. Thereâs a knowing look in her eyes, one that says sheâs seen this before - fathers on the verge of breaking, desperate to be there, to not miss the moment that changes everything. "Down the hall, third door on your left," she says kindly, nodding toward the direction he needs to go.
He doesnât wait. With a sharp intake of breath, he pushes himself off the counter and bolts toward your room, his legs moving on autopilot, every step pounding with urgency. His mind races, imagining you lying there, scared or in pain, and it tears at him. You shouldnât have to go through this by yourself. He swore to be there, to hold your hand through every step of this, and now heâs running on borrowed time.
The corridor leading to your room feels impossibly long, each door blurring past him as he counts them off in his head. First door, second door...third door. His hand trembles as it reaches for the handle, the weight of the moment crashing over him like a wave. He takes a deep breath, trying to steady himself, but the truth is, nothing can prepare him for this. The surge of love, fear, and anticipation battling inside him is overwhelming, but all of it pales in comparison to the thought of you.
When he opens the door, his heart nearly stops. There you are, lying in the hospital bed, your face flushed with exertion but glowing with a strength he has always admired. You look up, and the moment your eyes meet his, itâs as if time itself stops. Relief floods your features, and he rushes to your side, gripping your hand as though itâs the only tether keeping him grounded.
"Iâm here," he breathes, his voice cracking with emotion, kissing all over your hand. "Iâm here, baby."
And as you squeeze his hand, the world narrows to just the two of you. The chaos of the hospital fades into the background, replaced by the steady rhythm of your breathing, the soft murmurs of encouragement from the midwife, and the quiet reassurance that, despite everything, he made it. Heâs here.
âOkay, Y/N, I need you to push again for me. Youâre doing so great, hun.â The midwife's voice is soft, almost a lullaby amidst the storm of chaos within you. Itâs as if her words offer you a momentary anchor, a delicate thread of calm amidst the crashing waves of pressure building up inside your body. You nod, gasping for breath, your entire body trembling with exhaustion, but her voice mixed with the familiar warmth of Jongseongâs hand in yours somehow gives you strength. His fingers, strong and steady, wrap around yours, grounding you in this moment of overwhelming intensity.
He whispers soothing words, his thumb brushing over your clammy skin, wiping the sheen of sweat from your brow. But you barely register them. The noise of the hospital fades into the background as your body screams for release. Itâs all-consuming, this painâa deep, primal ache that makes you wonder how anyone could endure this more than once. Youâre making a vow to yourself in this very moment: this is definitely the last time youâll be giving birth.
The midwifeâs calm encouragement pulls you back into the moment. âThatâs it, youâre doing brilliantly, sweetie! Heâs crowning!â
Her words send a jolt of both fear and anticipation down your spine. Heâs almost here. Youâre almost at the end. But it hurts - God, it fucking hurts. You can feel your body stretching, tearing, and it feels impossible, like your entire being is being pulled apart at the seams. You wonder how anyone survives this. You wonder how people choose to do this again and again. But the end is so close now, you can feel it, and itâs that thought, that hope, that pushes you to dig deep into a reserve of strength you didnât even know you had.
Jongseong leans in, his face inches from yours as he wipes the sweat off your forehead. His touch is gentle, careful, as though you might shatter under the intensity of whatâs happening. âMy beautiful girl, youâre doing so well,â he murmurs, his voice thick with emotion. His words are meant to comfort you, but in your overstimulated state, they fall flat, like a pebble tossed into a stormy sea.
"You did this to me!" you cry out, your voice a strangled mixture of rage, exhaustion, and raw pain. The agony, the pressure, the sensation of your body trying to expel a living, breathing being from your core - itâs all too much. The frustration bubbles up and spills out as you glare at him through half-lidded eyes, loathing him, if only for a second, for putting you in this impossible situation.
Jongseong doesnât take offence. Instead, he chuckles under his breath, a sound almost swallowed by the sheer intensity of the moment. He presses a tender kiss to your knuckles, seemingly immune to the iron grip youâve got on his hand, your fingers squeezing so tightly itâs a wonder his bones arenât crushed. âIâm sorry, baby,â he says with a grin, trying to lighten the tension. âIâm a bad man for giving you the best fucks of your life and putting you in this situation, arenât I?â
Despite the searing pain wracking your body, you manage a weak, breathless laugh. His words, paired with the earnest yet amused look on his face, somehow cut through the fog of agony. For a brief, fleeting moment, the tension in the room eases, and even the nursing team joins in with a soft chuckle, their eyes sparkling with fondness.
âYouâre the worst,â you retort, your voice strained, yet the humour dances between you like a fleeting lifeline. You donât mean it, and once your beautiful baby is in your arms, youâll forget every resentment towards your husband, the pain long gone and only love clouding your senses.
But the pain comes roaring back in full force, and the midwifeâs voice cuts through the moment. âAlright, Y/N, I need you to push again. Just one more big push, okay?â
You nod, though you donât trust your voice to respond. Your entire body tenses as you prepare for the final stretch, the last hurdle. The pressure builds, an unbearable weight pushing down on you, and with one last groan - deep, guttural, like a battle cry those old vikings used to do - you bear down, gripping Jongseongâs hand with all the strength you have left.
âYouâre doing it, Y/N! Thatâs it, keep going!â The midwifeâs voice is urgent but encouraging, guiding you through the overwhelming sensations. The room seems to blur at the edges, your vision tunnelling as you focus on nothing but the task at hand. You feel the burn, the rawness of your body stretching beyond its limits, but you push through it, every fibre of your being screaming for this to be over.
And then, with one final, agonised push, it is.
A high, piercing cry fills the room, cutting through the tension like a blade, and suddenly the world stills. The pain, the fear, the exhaustion - all of it fades away as you hear the first wail of your son, your precious baby boy. You collapse back against the pillows, your chest heaving, tears slipping down your cheeks as the reality of what just happened sinks in.
Jongseong is crying too. His hand is shaking as he wipes his eyes, his gaze locked on the tiny, wriggling figure in the midwifeâs arms. âHeâs here,â he whispers, his voice breaking with emotion. âOur boy⊠heâs here.â
The midwife checks your son over for a moment, and once she deems everything is perfectly healthy and fine, she offers you a small smile. âWould you like skin-to-skin?â
Without hesitation, you nod, exhaustion clouding over you. âYes, please.â
The midwife places your newborn son on your chest, his tiny body warm and wet against your skin. You feel a rush of emotions - love, relief, awe - all of it crashing over you in waves so powerful they steal the breath from your lungs. Jongseongâs hand is reaches up to your face, his fingers trembling as he brushes a tear from your cheek.
âYou did it,â he breathes, his eyes shining with pride and wonder. âYou really did it, my love.â
You look down at your baby, his small hand curling against your chest, and despite the exhaustion weighing down your limbs, you canât stop the smile spreading across your face. âWe did it,â you whisper, your voice barely audible over the sound of your sonâs soft cries.
And in that moment, as the three of you are cocooned in the quiet warmth of the hospital room, the world outside ceases to exist. There is only this. Only the love, the relief, and the overwhelming sense of joy that, despite everything, youâre finally a family.
Bringing life into the world is a moment of pure wonder, filled with a sense of awe and joy that nothing else compares to. The arrival of a new soul, fresh and full of potential, feels like the universe itself holding its breath in reverence. Itâs beautiful chaos, tears of relief, the quiet weight of a newborn in your arms, the sweet fatigue that follows the storm of labour. There's a rawness, a vulnerability to it that makes it sacred. The start of life is an unspoken promise, a beginning with endless possibilities stretching out before it.
But as beautiful as the act of bringing life into the world is, it's devastatingly cruel when life is taken away.Â
_____
Jongseong ascended the stairs slowly, each step sending a dull ache through his brittle bones. His knees groaned under his weight, no longer the strong, agile legs that had once carried him with ease through the vigours of life. The years had settled deep into his joints, a reminder of a long life lived. At seventy-five, his body had become an archive of memories, each wrinkle and creak a testament to the passage of time. But he didnât mind, not really. He knew aging was inevitable, and while he wasnât the fit man he used to be, he had grown accustomed to the slower pace, to the small sacrifices his body demanded. Today, though, his knees seemed to be protesting more than usual.
The morning was still quiet, the kind of peaceful stillness that only early dawn could bring. Jongseong had woken up earlier than you, something he had done a bit more often lately. Your still frame lay blissfully as he slipped out of bed, careful not to wake you. He wanted to surprise you with breakfast in bed, nothing extravagant, just something simple and sweet. Toast, a little bowl of fruit, and your favourite yoghurt arranged neatly on a tray. And, of course, a tiny daisy from the garden, a little burst of yellow and white placed beside the cutlery - a small token of the love he still carried for you, as bright and fresh as the day heâd first met you.
He smiled to himself as he finally reached the top of the stairs, breathing out heavily. His chest rose and fell slowly as he gathered the air back into his lungs, a satisfied chuckle escaping his lips. âYâknow, baby, maybe we should invest in that stairmaster,â he muttered to himself, shaking his head at the thought. âMy knees are giving up on me here.â
He pushed open the door to your shared bedroom, the familiar scent of lavender and old wood welcoming him in. The room was a sanctuary, a place where the two of you had spent decades creating a life together. The walls seemed to hum with memories - of laughter, whispered arguments, nights spent comforting a scared baby Jeyou when he was small, his little body tucked between the two of you as you soothed his fears. Even now, the room felt like a cocoon of warmth, filled with the quiet reassurance of a life well-lived together.
Jongseongâs eyes softened as they landed on you. There you were, lying so peacefully, your grey hair splayed across the pillow, half of your face buried into its softness. Your lashes rested delicately on your wrinkled cheeks, and even now, after all these years, you looked so beautiful to him. Heâd always loved watching you sleep, loved the way your face relaxed into a soft serenity. He stood there for a moment, tray still in hand, just looking at you, his heart swelling with the same love that had carried him through all the challenges, all the joys and sorrows of life. Every wrinkle on your face told a story he cherished, every line a map of the life you had built together.
But as he stood there, something shifted. The quietness in the room felt...different. The silence was deeper, more still than usual. He tilted his head, waiting for the familiar soft snort you made when you exhaled in your sleep, or for the small rise and fall of your chest that always reassured him.Â
But none of that came.
His heart, which had been so full just moments ago, plummeted in his chest. A chill washed over him, the warmth of the room suddenly replaced with a growing panic.
âLove?â His voice was uncertain, his body moving on instinct as he placed the tray down on the dresser by the door. His legs, tired just a second ago, suddenly felt weightless as he rushed to your side. âY/N?â He sat on the bed, his voice trembling now. âBaby, come on, wake up.â
He reached out, brushing the hair from your face, the strands falling softly between his trembling fingers. His hand lingered on your cheek, feeling for the warmth he had always known, but your skin felt cool beneath his touch. Too cool.
âY/N,â he whispered, his voice cracking. His other hand found your shoulder, shaking you gently at first, and then with more urgency. âNo, no, no. Come on, baby, stop joking around. Wake up. Please.â
The stillness of your body was a stark contrast to the frantic tremor in his hands. He shook you again, harder this time, but you remained as you were - so peaceful, so unbearably still. His chest tightened, the tears pooling in his eyes blurring his vision. He blinked rapidly, as though he could chase away the truth that was slowly sinking in, but it was there, gnawing at the edges of his heart.
âPlease, baby, please. Donât do this. I need you to wake up.â His voice was barely a whisper now, broken and fragile, like a child pleading for a nightmare to end. He pulled you closer, his trembling fingers gripping your arms as he collapsed over you, his body draped across yours as the sobs tore through him. The tears fell freely now, landing on your skin, tiny droplets of his heartbreak mingling with the softness of your stillness.
âI canât lose you,â he whispered into your hair, his voice strangled by grief. âPlease. Donât leave me. Not now. Iâm not ready.â
The room, once so full of love and warmth, felt unbearably cold now. The silence stretched on, suffocating him, pressing down on his chest until he could barely breathe. He held you tightly, his arms wrapped around your lifeless body, as if by sheer will alone he could pull you back, make you breathe again, make your heart beat again. But you didnât move. You didnât stir.
Jongseongâs tears soaked into your skin, his sobs shaking his frail frame. His heart felt like it was being ripped apart, every beat more painful than the last. He pressed his cheek against your forehead, inhaling the faint scent of your skin, the scent that had been a constant comfort to him for all these years. But now, even that was fading, slipping away like you had.
âI canât do this without you,â he cried, his voice breaking as he held you tighter. âWeâve always done everything together. How am I supposed to keep going if youâre not here? Please, baby, please...just come back to me.â
But there was no response, no stirring beneath his touch. Only silence. The kind of silence that comes with finality, with the weight of something precious being stolen away forever.
He stayed there, curled up beside you, his tears flowing unchecked, his heart heavy with the unbearable realisation that the love of his life, the woman who had been his everything for decades, was gone. The weight of it settled into his bones, deeper than any ache heâd felt before. This wasnât just the weight of age, but of loss - a weight that would never truly lift.
For a long time, Jongseong didnât move. He stayed wrapped around you, whispering soft apologies, broken words of love, promises that no longer had a future. His tears mingled with the daisy heâd picked for you, now wilting beside the untouched tray on the dresser, a small, fragile symbol of the life that had once bloomed between the two of you.
Jongseong's sobs gradually gave way to a trembling stillness as he lay beside you, his breaths coming in ragged, shuddering gasps. The tears had begun to slow, leaving trails of salt on his cheeks, mingling with the remnants of the breakfast tray that had once held such promise. The quiet of the room felt like a heavy blanket, oppressive and final. It was the kind of silence that seemed to stretch endlessly, a cruel reminder of what was now lost.
He pulled himself up slightly, lifting his head from where it had been buried in your shoulder. His eyes, red and swollen, scanned the room - the room that had been a sanctuary of shared dreams and countless memories. He looked at the framed photographs on the bedside table: the smiling faces of a younger you and him, the family portraits, snapshots of Jeyou through the years. It was all a tapestry of a life lived together, and now, it felt like a cruel joke.
âCâmon, love,â he said, his voice hoarse but resolute. He took your hand in his, holding it gently, trying to draw strength from the familiar warmth that was no longer there. âWe still have so much more to do.â His voice cracked, but he pressed on, his mind desperately clinging to the plans they had made, the future they had envisioned.
He cleared his throat, trying to compose himself, his fingers tracing the lines of your hand with a tenderness born of countless shared moments. âRemember, we were going to finish the garden? We talked about planting those roses in the front yard. You always said you wanted to see them bloom better than the witches next door. And the trip to the lake -Â Jeyouâs been asking about that fishing trip for ages. You promised him, remember? We were going to take him and Minhee out there and teach them how to catch those big trout.â
Jongseongâs tears began to flow again, mixing with the desperate, pleading edge in his voice. âWhat about Jeyou?â he continued, his voice breaking. âYou canât leave him behind. Weâve always been a family. He needs you, just like I do. Heâs grown up so much, and he still needs his mum. We were going to watch him grown old and brittle like us, how can you do that if you donât wake up, huh?â
He bent his head, his forehead resting against the cool, unmoving surface of your hand. âFuck, baby,â he whispered, the words barely audible through the sobs that wracked his body. âIf you canât come back for me, come back for him. Please, please, please. Donât leave him with just memories of you. He needs you. I need you.â
His pleas hung in the air, a desperate cry to the silence that had become so final. He squeezed your hand, the small, gentle action a futile attempt to make you respond, to bring you back. The room felt impossibly cold now, the warmth of shared dreams replaced by the chilling finality of loss.
He stayed like that for what felt like hours, holding your hand, whispering promises and plans that would never come to pass. The light from the morning sun filtered through the curtains, casting a soft glow over the room, but it seemed to mock him now. The day they had planned, the future they had envisioned together, was slipping away, drowned in the ocean of his grief.
Jongseongâs heart felt like it was breaking into a thousand pieces, each shard a fragment of a life that would never be. He tried to imagine moving forward, but every vision was tainted by your absence. The world outside, with its ongoing rhythm and pulse, felt distant and irrelevant compared to the hollow ache that had settled within him.
_
Jongseong stood by your grave, the ache in his chest so profound it felt like it had hollowed him out completely. He had known, of course, that your funeral would be difficult but nothing, not even the endless condolences and the gentle words from well-meaning friends and family, could have prepared him for this kind of pain. The grief gnawed at him, relentless and unforgiving, leaving him feeling raw and exposed. It was the kind of hurt that no words could soothe, no embrace could soften. Nothing - except you.
His black suit hung loose on his frame, a stark contrast to the confident man he had once been. His posture, usually straight and proud, was slouched, his shoulders weighed down by the unbearable burden of loss. His face, pale and drawn, was a shadow of the man who once carried the light of the world in his heart. That light, he feared, had been taken with you. Since the moment you passed, the world had dimmed, and he wondered if he would ever feel warmth again. When the earth loses the sun, there is only darkness that remains.
He hasnât slept. How could he? The bed is too big, too cold, too empty without you. Every night since your passing, he had lain awake, staring at the ceiling, his hand reaching across the bed to where you used to be, only to be met with nothing. He would run his fingers over the cool, empty space, the ache in his heart growing stronger with each passing minute. The silence was unbearable, the kind that swallowed him whole. He wondered how he was supposed to go on without you when every reason for his existence was tied to you. You had been his purpose, his love, his everything.
Since he was twenty-two years old, he had known nothing but being your other half. You had been there with him through every step, every joy, every heartbreak, every victory. Now, you werenât here, and it felt as though half of him had been torn away, leaving a void that nothing could ever fill. His hand felt empty, void of your comforting squeezes, the way you used to reassure him with just a touch. He would never feel that again. He would never hear your laugh, never see your smile light up a room, never feel the warmth of your embrace. The thought was unbearable, a suffocating weight on his chest that made it hard to breathe.
Choking back a sob, Jongseong clenched his jaw and squeezed his throat shut, trying desperately to keep himself together, if not for himself, then for the family who stood around him. He knew they were hurting too, how could they not be, when you had been the centre of their lives as well? But it was hard. It was so hard to stand there and be strong when his insides were crumbling, when every fibre of his being screamed for you. He stared at the ground, his vision blurred by tears, the earth below looking so final, so cold.
The sky overhead was grey, a dull blanket of clouds that seemed to mirror the grief that hung in the air. The wind was gentle, but even the breeze felt like it carried sadness, the chill sinking into Jongseongâs bones. It felt as though the world itself had lost its colour, its vibrancy, ever since you had gone. The trees that surrounded the cemetery stood still, their leaves barely rustling, as if even nature was mourning. Every corner of the graveyard seemed muted, the flowers on the graves dull and lifeless, the headstones stark and lonely. Even the birds seemed quieter today, as though they too understood the magnitude of the loss.
Jongseong forced himself to look up, his eyes finding Jeyou across the gravesite. His son stood beside his wife, his shoulders shaking as he sobbed, his gaze locked on the casket that had been lowered into the ground. Jongseongâs heart ached even more at the sight of him.Â
He wanted so desperately to be strong for Jeyou, for your son. He wanted to walk over and put a hand on his shoulder, to tell him everything would be alright, to hold him the way he had when Jeyou was a little boy, scared and unsure of the world. But he couldnât. He couldnât be anything for anyone right now, because the one person who had always given him the strength to carry on was gone.
Ara came up beside him then, slipping her arm through his. She didnât say anything, after all, what could she say? There were no words that could take away the pain. Jongseong felt her presence beside him, her quiet support, but even that couldnât bridge the gap that had opened up in his heart. Araâs touch was gentle, her hand squeezing his arm, but the void inside him was too vast, too deep for even the love of his granddaughter to reach.
The priestâs voice droned on in the background, speaking the final words of the burial, but the words seemed to drift away, lost in the weight of the moment. Jongseong could barely hear them over the pounding of his heart, over the sound of his own ragged breaths. He clenched his fists, trying to hold back the sobs that threatened to break free again. He didnât want to fall apart, not here, not in front of everyone. But how could he not, when the love of his life was leaving him forever?
Jongseong bit his lip, his eyes glassy as he glanced down to your coffin-covered body, as if searching for some kind of reassurance. But there was none to give. This was it. This was the end. You were gone, and there was no miraculous happy ending where you would come back to him, where you would smile and tell him you were never going to leave. There was only the harsh, brutal reality that he would have to live the rest of his life without you.
Jongseongâs knees buckle slightly as the final prayer is spoken, and he feels Ara tighten her grip on his arm, grounding him, keeping him upright. He wants to collapse, to lie beside you and never get up. He wants to close his eyes and pretend that this was all just a terrible dream. But it isnât. The casket in the ground is real, the earth that will cover it is real, and you are truly gone.
Jongseong let out a shaky breath, the air catching in his throat as he continued to stare at the grave. The casket, now partially covered by the earth, felt like a cruel finality, the last barrier between him and the love of his life. The flowers scattered around the site seemed dull in the overcast light, their once vibrant colours muted by the grief that hung over the cemetery like a thick fog. Everything seemed too quiet, too still, as if the world itself had paused in reverence to the enormity of his pain.
His heart pounded in his chest, each beat echoing with the agony of knowing that this was the endâno more shared mornings, no more gentle touches, no more stolen glances. The weight of it all made his chest tighten, a crushing force that left him gasping for breath. He could hardly believe that this was real, that the woman who had been his reason for living for so many years was now gone, leaving him to navigate a life he no longer knew how to live.
Ara tugged gently at his arm, her silent plea to move, to take a step forward. Jongseong hesitated, his feet rooted to the ground, unwilling to leave the spot where you lay. His eyes remained fixed on the grave, as if by staring hard enough, he could will you back into existence, could bring you back to him. But he knew it was futile. You were gone, and no amount of wishing or hoping could change that.
With a deep, ragged breath, Jongseong finally allowed Ara to lead him away. His feet dragged against the soft ground, every step feeling like a betrayal, a distancing from the life you had shared. Araâs head stayed resting on his shoulder, her silent support both a comfort and a reminder of the family you had built together. He felt the weight of her love, the warmth of her presence, but it wasnât the same. It would never be the same without you.
As they moved slowly away from the grave, Jongseong couldnât resist one last glance back. His eyes, swollen and red from the tears that had yet to stop, locked onto the casket once more, now almost completely covered by the earth. It looked so final, so unbearably permanent. The soft hum of the wind through the trees seemed to carry with it a whisper of the life they had once known, a life that was now out of reach.
The grey sky overhead mirrored the dull ache in his heart, its heavy clouds hanging low as if they, too, mourned the loss of something irreplaceable. The air was thick with the scent of damp earth and fresh flowers, but even that felt too bittersweet, a cruel reminder of the beauty that could still exist in a world where you no longer did.
As Jongseong allowed himself to be guided away, his shoulders hunched under the weight of grief, he knew that a part of him would forever remain at that graveside, buried alongside you. The rest of the world moved on around him, but for Jongseong, time had stopped the moment you left. Each step he took felt like a journey into an unknown future, a future without you by his side.
And as they walked further and further away, the image of your grave growing smaller in the distance, Jongseong couldnât help but whisper under his breath, a final, desperate plea to the universe. âWait for me, loveâŠjust wait for me.â
His words faded into the wind as Ara squeezed his arm gently, and together, they walked away from the place where his heart now lay, buried with you.
____
"I miss her," he says, his voice trembling slightly, breaking the stillness. Itâs not just a simple statementâitâs a confession, raw and unfiltered, the kind that makes his chest ache as though his heart is being twisted by an invisible hand. He can feel the familiar sting of unshed tears burning behind his eyes, but he fights them back.
The living room is quiet again, but the kind of quiet that suffocates rather than soothes. Jongseong sits on the edge of the worn couch, his eyes fixed on the photographs that line the mantle. They are still - frozen moments of a life that once brimmed with joy and love. His mind drifts back to the present after the painful journey through memory, and he sighs, his heart heavy with the weight of a year without you.
The pain, sharp as it is, feels like a key turning inside him, unlocking emotions he thought he had long buried. A year. A whole year without you. Not a single day has passed where he doesnât think of you. The mornings are the worst, when he still, out of habit, sets out two cups for coffee. He never drinks the second one - it just sits there, untouched, a quiet tribute to your absence. The daytime programmes you loved continue to play on the television, though they bring him no comfort, just the dull hum of voices filling a void. Visiting your grave has become his ritual, the only place where he feels some semblance of peace, though even that is shadowed by the overwhelming loneliness.
Jeyou shifts beside him, his own expression mirroring his fatherâs grief. He reaches out, gripping Jongseongâs hand with a firm, comforting squeeze. "I can't imagine what this day is like for you, Dad," Jeyou says, his voice soft, heavy with understanding. After all, he lost his mum, the one woman who sacrificed everything for him to attend the best schools, follow his dreams, and always made him feel like he belonged in this horrible world.Â
He misses your soothing words, particularly on days like today, when he would give anything for your advice.
Jongseong swallows the lump in his throat, shaking his head slightly. "I only pray that you go first before your partner, so you donât have to deal with this suffering," he replies, his voice hoarse but sincere. He knows how morbid it must sound, talking so freely about his sonâs death, but he means every word. Losing the love of your life is an agony he wouldnât wish on his worst enemy, let alone Jeyou. Itâs not something you ever get over. The pain is deep, cutthroat, and unrelenting, carving out pieces of your soul until youâre hollowed out, just an echo of who you used to be.
They continue talking for the next few hours, the conversation a gentle distraction, though the sorrow lingers in every pause, every shared glance. Minji and Minhee return from outside, running about the room, their laughter a bright but distant sound in Jongseongâs ears. He watches them, a small smile flickering on his lips. Their energy, their innocence, is a reminder that life does go on, even when it feels like yours has stopped.
As the night begins to peer itâs head, itâs time for them to go. Jongseong hates goodbyes now, even the small ones. Ara looks particularly reluctant to leave, her brow furrowed in worry as she watches her grandfather. Sheâs always been able to read him like a book, even as a child, and now she can see the light fading from his eyes, just as it has been ever since you left.
"Iâll pop around tomorrow, okay? Weâll get you some shopping in," Jeyou says, standing up and shrugging into his jacket, his eyes lingering on his fatherâs frail form. Jongseong looks thinner these days, the years catching up to him faster than ever before.
"Thanks, son," Jongseong replies, his voice filled with genuine appreciation. He knows how much of a burden it must be, looking after him, checking in on him. He should be the one taking care of everyone, the way he used to, but these days, itâs hard just to get out of bed in the mornings. The world feels heavier.
Minji and Minhee run up to their Poppy, throwing their arms around him in a tight hug. He leans down, pulling them close, inhaling the sweet scent of their hair as he squeezes them back with as much strength as he can muster.
"Be good, okay? Iâll see you soon," he murmurs, his voice thick with emotion. Minji giggles and gives him one last squeeze before darting off towards the car, while Minhee sighs in compassion for his great grandfather before following his little sister. He doesnât know the full extent of everything that goes on, but he knows the old man is hurting.Â
Jeyou lingers a moment longer, his eyes searching his fatherâs face. Thereâs concern there, etched deep into his features. "Look after yourself, Dad. I mean it," he says, his tone firm but filled with love.
Jongseong nods, offering a faint smile, though it doesnât reach his eyes. "I will," he says quietly, but they both know itâs more of a promise to make Jeyou feel better than a commitment Jongseong truly believes in.
As the door closes behind them, Jongseong stands by the window, watching as the car pulls away, his heart sinking deeper into the loneliness that has become his constant companion. The house, once filled with life and laughter, feels far too quiet now. He turns, his gaze drifting back to the photographs on the mantle - snapshots of a life well-lived, of love shared, of a happiness he fears he will never feel again.
With a sigh, Jongseong walks to the mantle and gently picks up the frame holding your picture. His thumb brushes over the glass, tracing the contours of your face, his chest tightening with the ache of missing you.
âLook after yourself,â Jeyou had said. But how could he, when the one person who made life worth living was gone?
As the silence wraps itself around him once more, Jongseong sets the picture back in its place, his heart heavy with the weight of another day without you.
Climbing up the stairs, he makes his way to your bedroom, the day draining him of everything he has left. Jongseong steps into the bedroom, the air feels heavier, thick with memories and the lingering presence of you. The familiar scent of lavender still clings to the room, though itâs faded over time, much like the vibrant colours of the quilt you both once shared. He pauses by the doorframe, his eyes falling instinctively to your side of the bed. Itâs exactly as you left it - untouched, sacred. Heâs been afraid to disrupt it, afraid that even the slightest disturbance might somehow break the fragile connection he feels with you, like it might shake you wherever you are in the universe.
But tonight is different. Tonight, the ache of missing you is unbearable.
Slowly, Jongseong crosses the room, each step feeling heavier than the last. His heart hammers in his chest, his breath shallow as he reaches the bed. He hesitates for a moment, his trembling fingers reaching out to touch your pillow, the one that still sees your head laying upon. Tears well up in his eyes, blurring his vision, but he doesnât wipe them away. He lets them fall freely, each drop a testament to the love heâs carried for you all these years, a love that still refuses to fade even in your absence.
With a shaky breath, Jongseong lowers himself onto your side of the bed, feeling the mattress dip under his weight. It feels strange at first, like heâs intruding on a space that should remain untouched, but the yearning to feel close to you again overpowers the guilt. He lies down, resting his head on your pillow, his chest rising and falling with uneven breaths as his tears soak into the fabric.
âI love you, Y/N. More than my heart and chest can hold in,â he whispers into the empty room, the same words he had once said to you all those years ago when he first confessed his love. It feels like an echo, like his heart is trying to reach across the vast distance between him and wherever you are now, hoping that you can hear him, feel him.
He swallows the lump in his throat, his body trembling with grief. "I donât know how to do this without you, Y/N. Everything... everything is so hard now. Even getting out of bed in the morning. Thereâs no joy in anything anymore." His voice lowers to a near whisper, almost as though heâs confessing to the universe itself.Â
The room feels impossibly quiet, the stillness pressing down on him. His mind races with memories of you, of your laughter, the way your smile could light up even the darkest day, how your hand in his made everything feel right. He presses his face into the pillow, inhaling deeply as if he could somehow capture the last remnants of your presence.
Jongseong closes his eyes, exhaustion creeping up on him, though itâs not the kind that can be cured by sleep. Itâs a soul-deep weariness, the kind that comes from carrying too much pain for too long. He hasnât allowed himself to cry like this in a while, always trying to stay strong for the family, but here, in the silence of your bedroom, he finally lets himself feel the full weight of his grief.
"I'm sorry, love," he whispers, his voice barely audible now. "I donât know how to live in a world without you. I miss you so much it hurts... I just want to feel you beside me again, even if only for a moment."
He feels the tears slip down his cheeks, hot and unrelenting, but heâs too tired to wipe them away. His body sinks deeper into the bed, the familiar warmth of the blankets enveloping him, though itâs not the same. Itâll never be the same without you.
Jongseong closes his eyes, his hand clutching your pillow as if it were you, as if holding on tight enough could bring you back. The exhaustion weighs heavier on him now, pulling him under, and before he knows it, heâs drifting off to sleep - something that has eluded him since you passed.
Jongseong lies still, his breath slowing as the quiet of the room wraps around him like a blanket. The familiar scent of your pillow soothes the ache in his chest, though not entirely. His hand remains clutching the pillow, his knuckles white against the soft fabric, as if holding on just a little tighter might somehow bring you back.
His frail body begins to relax, the weight of the years and grief easing off his tired shoulders. His eyelids grow heavy, the darkness behind them more inviting than the empty, lonely room. He inhales deeply, filling his lungs with the scent of you; he swears he can feel you surrounding him.
Jongseongâs heart, worn and bruised by your absence, finds a strange calm. The sharp pain of loss that has haunted him for so long softens, as if your presence - though unseen - soothes him, guiding him gently. He can almost hear your voice, soft and familiar, calling his name from somewhere far off, yet so close.
Exhaustion weighs heavier now, pulling him further into that quiet space between sleep and memory. His body sinks deeper into the mattress, the aches in his bones easing as his breathing slows. In the stillness, each breath comes softer, more rhythmic, like the gentle ebb of a distant tide.
As sleep pulls him in fully, a peaceful expression settles across his face. The lines of grief soften, replaced by something close to serenity. His grip on the pillow loosens, his hand falling gently to his side.
And in that stillness, Jongseong rests, his breathing gentle, his heart finally at peace, as though in the silence of the room, he has found his way back to you.
_____
âDad?â Jeyouâs voice echoes through the house as he steps inside, the door clicking shut softly behind him. A strange, unsettling quiet fills the space, not the kind of silence that welcomes you home but the kind that makes your skin prickle. Thereâs no familiar sound of his father calling out from another room, no clattering of dishes in the kitchen or the hum of the TV from the living room. Itâs still.Â
Too still.
He pauses at the base of the stairs, staring up as if expecting his dad to appear at the top, grinning, telling him to come up. But nothing. The quiet presses down on him, growing heavier with each passing second. Everything in the house looks exactly the same as it did yesterday - the framed photos of family lining the hallway, the shoes left in a pile near the door, and the faint scent of yesterdayâs lunch lingering. Something feels...off.
Jeyou swallows hard, dread settling in the pit of his stomach as he places his hand on the bannister, fingers trembling slightly. He starts up the stairs slowly, the soft creak of each step the only sound breaking the silence. With every step, his heart pounds harder, his breath growing more unsteady. The house, once full of warmth, now feels cold, unfamiliar.
As he reaches the top of the stairs, the hallway stretches before him, just as it always has. But the air is different. It feels heavier, like itâs holding its breath, waiting for something to happen. Jeyou walks toward the bedroom, his pace quickening as he reaches the door. His hand hovers over the handle, the knot of anxiety twisting tighter in his chest. He pushes the door open slowly.
There, lying on the bed, is his father.
Jongseong is still in the clothes he wore yesterday, his body lying peacefully on the bed, his hand hanging limply off the side, fingers curled and unmoving. His face is calm, serene even, as if heâs just fallen into a deep sleep. But the sight is all wrong. His chest doesnât rise and fall with the steady rhythm of breath. The colour in his cheeks has faded, his skin now ashen and pale.
Jeyouâs breath catches in his throat, his chest tightening painfully. "Oh... no..." he whispers, the words trembling as they leave his mouth. His jaw clenches, trying to hold back the wave of emotion crashing over him, but itâs no use. His eyes burn, tears pricking painfully at the corners before spilling over, running down his cheeks before he can even bring himself to step closer.
He drops to his knees beside the bed, his hands shaking as they reach for his fatherâs limp hand, the warmth long gone. His fingers brush Jongseongâs skin, but thereâs no response, no twitch, no familiar squeeze. His father is gone, and Jeyou feels the reality of it shattering through him like a blow to the chest.
He leans over the bed, resting his forehead against his fatherâs hand, the sobs heâs been holding back finally escaping his throat in broken gasps. âNo... please... not yet, Dad,â he chokes out, his voice strangled by the tears, the grief clawing at his insides. "Please..."
Jeyou lifts his head, staring at his fatherâs peaceful face, and for a moment, it feels like heâs just sleeping. But the quiet, the terrible, awful quiet, tells him everything he needs to know. His father, the man who had been his rock, his guide through life, is no longer here.
There is a sweet irony in this moment.
As Jeyou's sobs echo softly through the room, Jongseongâs spirit hovers nearby, watching his son with a tender, bittersweet smile. Although he mourns the pain of his son, thereâs no longer any weight on his heart, no sense of loss or longing. Instead, thereâs a warmth, a gentle, reassuring presence by his side. He feels it before he even turns. A familiar hand slips into his, fingers intertwining with his in the way they always had, fitting perfectly, like pieces of a long-lost puzzle finally reunited.
He turns, and there you are, standing before him with that radiant smile that never failed to brighten his darkest days. Itâs the smile that spoke of every quiet moment you shared, every laugh, every whispered confession of love. His heart, which had carried the unbearable ache of your absence for so long, suddenly feels whole again. The years of sorrow and longing melt away in an instant, replaced by the purest form of joy.
âTook you long enough,â you say with a soft pout, your voice light and teasing, just as it had been in life. Thereâs no hint of sadness or bitterness in your tone, only the playful warmth heâs missed so much, the kind that had always made his heart flutter.
Jongseong smiles in return, a gentle, peaceful expression settling over his face. For the first time in a year, he feels truly at ease. âI was caught up, sorry, baby,â he replies softly, his voice filled with love as he gazes at you. His hand squeezes yours gently, his fingers brushing over your skin as if to reassure himself that this moment is real, that youâre really here.
And then, without hesitation, he leans in and presses his lips to yours in a kiss so tender, so full of longing and relief, that it feels as though the time apart vanishes in an instant. The kiss is soft yet meaningful, filled with all the words he could never find to express how much he had missed you. It's like coming home - like slipping into the warmth of an embrace that was always meant to be.Â
The sensation of your lips against his is more perfect than anything he remembers, as if all the love he ever felt for you has been distilled into this one beautiful moment. The warmth of it spreads through him, igniting his soul with a peace he hasn't felt in a long time.
Jongseong pulls back just enough to look at you, his forehead resting against yours. His soul feeling light yet beautifully full, free from the ache that had weighed him down for so long. He finally feels whole, finally feels like heâs where he belongs - beside you, where heâs always meant to be.
For a moment, he glances over his shoulder, back at Jeyou. His son kneels by the bedside, his shoulders shaking with silent sobs, the pain of his loss fresh and raw. Jongseong watches him with a soft expression, understanding the weight of the grief that will soon settle into Jeyouâs heart. But even in his sonâs sorrow, Jongseong knows he will be okay. Time will heal the wounds, and Jeyou has the strength to carry on. He has a family, a loving wife, beautiful children, and the memories of both his parents to guide him.
Jongseongâs lips curve into a sad yet hopeful smile as he watches Jeyou. âYouâll be alright, Jeyou' he thinks, though no words leave his lips. He knows Jeyou will heal, just as he himself did once, after his own parents passed. There will be sadness, yes, but there will also be love, laughter, and life to carry him forward.
With that comforting knowledge resting in his heart, Jongseong turns back to you, his grip on your hand tightening just a little, as if to reaffirm the bond youâve shared for decades. The past, the pain, the loneliness - it all falls away, leaving nothing but peace and love.
âReady?â you ask softly, your eyes sparkling with a familiar warmth, as if youâd never been apart.
Jongseong nods, a contented smile playing at his lips. âAlways,â he replies, his voice steady, filled with a quiet, unwavering certainty. With your hand in his, he takes the first step forward, leaving behind the world of sorrow and stepping into forever with you.
And as the two of you walk together, the light grows brighter, the burdens of the mortal world disappearing entirely, now walking hand in hand, just as you were always meant to.
_____
perm taglist: @immortalvee @sunpov @heeseungspookie @strawberrysavi @monstanctiny21
@diorsyun @heexzbae @yzzyhee @baekhyunstruly @zeeloveshee
@haechonly @berryblog @no-mannerism @jaehoonii
@notevenheretbh1 @shawnyle @addictedtohobi @jiminie-08
@emberuby @nctislifue @lilyuwon @skzenhalove
@heeshlove @idkdykilr @chocminteu @y4wnjunz @rikibun
@ivesti @parksunghoonsgf @branchrkive @brownsugarbaybee
@xxbluestrifexx @bambangan @dollyyun @iluvikeu @deobitifull
@yawnazzz @st1llm0nster @woorcve @heeseungsbm
@star-hoon @heelee-01 @wonnienyang @alternativelix
Ffs
NSFW đž MINORS DNI
jay eating you out at your parents house
So Sweet. â P.JS
The one where Jay, in all of his cherry-flavored thoughts, makes you cherry flavored too. requested here, here, and hereÂ
minors dniÂ
PAIRING â park jongseong x afab reader Â
WORDCOUNTâ 3.8k
CONTENTâ Â Â reader is jealous over nothing, NO THIS IS NOT ANGST, mostly just smutty stuff, food play, costume party (jay is wearing cat ears hueheuehue), alcohol is involved but itâs consenting, yaâll fuck in [redacted]âs room and leave the mess for him to clean up.Â
WARNINGâ idk, reader is possessive and jealous, kinda crazy. very me tbh. jay kinda just shoves it in even tho itâs painful for herâŠâŠand keeps goingâŠâŠâŠ
NOTE â happy almost halloween :D this is very short, written with haste, and probably not that good butâŠâŠ.jay, yknow? jay makes it good.Â
nsfw tags under cut
nsfw tagsâ big fat huge cock jay, candy-play, costumes & cat ears, reader sucks his candy like itâs his cock and he nearly combusts over it, pussy eating, cock stuffing, cream pie
ă»ă»ă»ă»ă»ă»ă»ă»ă»ă»ă»ă»ă»ă»
Itâs gotta be the cat ears, you think, as you stare at your boyfriend from across the room. Everyone is a blur, but goddamn something is off tonight. Because, like, why is every fucking woman in this room staring at him like they wanna rip his clothes off?!Â
Or, maybe itâs that faux-freshly-fucked blushy glow across his cheeks, or the blinking out of sync that comes paired with his drunken jokes and words. The atmosphere truly is making the usual, stoic, lame-ass Jay appear as nothing but an endearing cat-man who deserves a mouth on him.Â
And you know, the fact that you came here with him, with matching ears and a fucking tail, should scare off all these little bitches, yet there they are? Suddenly just so interested in your man?!Â
Jake is the first to notice the way you stare, raising a brow in confusion.
âYou guys get in a fight or something?â He asks as his own animal-themed ears flop around when he turns his head to you.
âNoââ You narrow your eyes at a woman who keeps glancing at your boyfriend as you say it, paying Jake little to no mind. âJust wondering why everyone has a hard-on for my boyfriend right now.â
Jake nods, pouting his lip out and raising a brow as if to silently say âAh, makes sense.â
âWell, if it makes you feel any betterââ Jake starts, glancing around the room. âI literally donât see anyone trying to get it on with him. I think youâre making problems.â
Pause.
âPlease. Look at her!â You slightly raise your voice, pointing to a woman who is absolutely not trying to get on Jayâs dick, in fact, sheâs literally eyeing Heeseung like sheâs about to pounce.Â
Itâs really just the fact that sheâs standing right next to Jay, and you caught her looking at him a few times, and also they had a âconversationâ a few days ago. Nevermind that it was a âSee ya after break!â type of conversation, or that she said it to everyone, and not specifically to Jay. Itâs just that he responded alongside everyone else.
âYouâre being annoying.â Jake finally starts to walk away from you, not actually annoyed but more-so amused at how jealous youâve become solely because youâve had a few shots.Â
Itâs not often you drink, after all.Â
âWait, where are you going?â
âGonna go kiss on your manââ Jake laughs, now rushing his way through a crowd of drinkers and glancing at you when he whispers in your boyfriendâs ear.
You watch the way Jay falls into a face of concentration trying to hear his friend, and then see his eyes flick to you.Â
Oh, well thatâs just great. Surely Jake isnât actually trying to hit on Jay, heâs probably over there snitching like a little asshole. Which sucks because this relationship with Jay isâŠ.itâs kinda new, you know? You donât want to come across as the possessive type, or likeâ controlling.
ă»ă»ă»ă»ă»ă»ă»ă»ă»ă»ă»ă»ă»ă»
You find yourself panicking when Jay stumbles his way over to you, a newly unwrapped lollipop hanging half from his lips as he sips his drink around the candy, and only spilling it once solely because he keeps his eyes on you rather than his footing. Jake is left behind, now beside that girl that clearly wants Heeseung to bone her into the next dimension, looking uncomfortable and left out.Â
Good. He deserves it.Â
âSoâŠâ Jay says as he stands next to you, leaning back against the wall and snaking one arm behind you to grab at your waist. âSomeoneâs jealous?â
You fold in on yourself a little bit, feeling that grip he gives to you that forces you against his side.Â
âOf course not.â You mumble, sipping from your cup and still staring out into the room of people. âWhy would you ever think that?â
âJake said so.â Jay laughs now, leaning his head over to whisper under your ear. âYou saying heâs lying?â
His breath sends a shiver down your spine just as the song changes to that of muffled bass, loud enough to have you wanting to cover your ears.
âYesââ You start.Â
âHuh?â Jay pulls back to look at you.Â
âYes, heâs lying.â You try again.
âWhat?â
Before you try to answer again, you feel him pull you. Around a corner, up, up, and away from the booming music one floor up. He lands you in someoneâs room, fuck if you know whoâs.
âHm?â
Your breath catches in your throat when you look at him now. No one else in the room to muffle that croak in his drunken voice, those blushed cheeks, the fucking ears.
âI said, heâs lying.â You say meekly, unable to tear your eyes from the little split in his lip, reddened by the candy hanging from his mouth.Â
His breath smells of cherry and tequila when he leans closer, tilting his head playfully to look into your eyes, as if to check if youâre the one lying.Â
âIs that so?â He says, pulling the lollipop from his lips and sucking the taste down his throat, allowing that scent to waft through your nose yet again. âSo you donât mind knowing Jakeâs ex tried to get my number?âÂ
Your eyes widen before they narrow. You cross your arms and look away from him.
âOf course not.â You lie.Â
âAnd you wouldnât care that I gave it to her?â He says now, hovering his lips near yours, eyes hooded as he plays with his words.Â
That makes your blood boil though, and no longer can you sit here and pretend like you wouldnât bring out the claws and start pulling hair if it comes to it. After all, that bitch was a homewrecker! Totally broke Jakeâs heart and has the audacity to come to parties when she knows he will be here? And she asked for Jayâs number?!
And he gave it to her?! Jay chuckles when he pulls back, popping the candy back into his mouth as he studies the shift in your nonchalant vibe. He stays silent though, amused, waiting for you to argue until he notices the way your eyes fall.Â
No longer annoyed, but hurt.
In all fairness, that silence he gave you after that had you thinkingâŠhe really gave her his number?
âBabyââ Jay soothes now, pushing the lollipop to his cheek with his tongue so he can speak as clearly as he can despite the slur in his speech from the drinks. âIâm joking.â
The relief washes over your drunken mind, feeling better but now back to being irritated. Whatâs with him right now? You donât exactly want to be jealous, but the fact that heâs making damn sure that you were is kindaâŠlike, is he into that? Does he want you to be possessive?
Youâd be lying though, if you said he didnât look hot as hell the other day pulling you closer to his side because a store clerk looked at you for a second too long. You mightâve even swooned a bit.Â
âYouâre a dick.â You finally respond, shoving him back playfully, unable to hide the relieved smile on your lips. âLooking hot-and-bothered all night, leaving me in a random room only for me to see you talking with some girl after finding you again.âÂ
He lends you his own laugh now, wiggling his eyebrows before popping the candy out of his mouth again. âOh, her? The girl who Heeseung basically just finger fucked on the kitchen counter?â
You pause for a second, unsure as to why that sounds hot. Maybe just because sheâs not after your man? Or maybe you like, wish youâd have seen.
âAnd you didnât even take me to see?!â You go to playfully shove him again, but he stops you with his own gentle shove. Straight against the door, getting up real close to your face before whispering.
âSo, you were jealous?â That slur in his speech is nowhere to be found before you taste the explosion of cherry. Youâre kind of just staring at him, nodding out an admittance as his eyes fall lower, to where heâs tracing the bulbous head of that lollipop against your bottom lip. âHot.â
âYouâre going to drive me insane, you know that?â You finally say after the fourth or fifth time heâs swiped that lollipop against you, adding a translucent sheen to your already alcohol-sweet lips.Â
âMhm.â He nods triumphantly, now pushing the candy past your lips and into your mouth. âShouldâve came over and let me finger fuck you on the counter next, would that have made you feel better?âÂ
You roll your eyes playfully, ignoring the throb between your legs at his bold words. Jay isnât typically this feisty, though youâd have totally let him do such a thing regardless of the eyes that could see. You just, like, didnât really think heâd be willing to do something like that.
âI learn something new about you every day.â You chuckle out, noting the way he stares at your mouth and the way you suck on his lollipop.Â
âGot loads of secrets for you, babeââ He smirks, taking initiative now and pressing his palms down on your shoulders, as if to make you lower yourself to the floor. Which, of course you do. You sink down, feeling the wooden door behind you sturdy and strong. As you do, he reaches over, locking the door.
What you think is about to be the best head of his life turns out to be him sinking down with you, slotting himself between your legs on the floor and pinning you there with his hands against the door. His head tilts cutely, the cat ears now looking more realistic than ever.
He doesnât look like a curious little black cat anymore, he looks like heâs hunting for prey as he looks at you.Â
âLook at you,â He says, more serious and without that smirk before he takes the candy back. âSo, so cute.â
Youâre melting against him after those words, feeling his tongue lick against your lips before you can even return to compliment. Itâs sweet, red coated tongues creating a sugary mess, hums and pleasant sounds leave both of you at the flavor, only to deepen the kiss because neither of you can really get enough of it either.Â
You reach up in the kiss, petting the ears on his head despite knowing he canât feel it the way a real feline would, but he reacts all the same. Totally into it, even, nearly roleplaying as he groans. Maybe heâs just amused that you did that, or maybe heâs wondering if youâll pull at his next or something.Â
And in this kiss that seems to never end, he gets touchy. Pushing and pulling you to both give and take control, one hand moving from cupping your face, to gently holding your neck, up until it finds its way down down down, then up your scanty shirt.Â
Totally lost in it, both of you are. With you skewing his ears to scratching at the nape of his neck, to him groping, and suddenlyâ prodding that same lollipop that youâd forgotten about between both of your lips. Heâs amused when you lick it, the dulling cherry flavor coming back into the kiss with full force between you as he pulls back, red salvia stains all around his mouth before the smirk is back.
He watches as you take it back into your mouth, his own hand pushing it in and out, watching you chase it when he tries to pull it out entirely, only to shove it back in, deeper. Thatâs when he groans, pinching your nipple through your shirt particularly hard due to the sheer arousal that rushes to his cock. It lends him a little throb, a dribble of pre-cum messing his pants.
That about does it for him, pulling the candy out of your mouth now despite the way you chase it pitifully. He pops it into his own temporarily so he can go straight for what he not only wants, but needs right now. You watch him, a little dazed with the way his hair matches perfectly with the color of the cat ears, now a little crooked due to your meddling.Â
He goes straight for it too, reaching under your skirt and practically tearing your panties off of you before heâs spreading your thighs wide and re-adjusting himself back between your legs.Â
You squeak a little in response, proud of the unintentional sound because itâs very in character for the whole, you know, matching cat costume thing. And he only responds with another kiss, the sucker now removed from his mouth as he offers the flavor through his own saliva.Â
Drinking it up is easy as you lick into his mouth, feeling the way his fingers toy with your folds, sliding up and down the slippery heat beforeâ
âJayââ You pull back, confused at the new feeling between your legs as you look at him.
His pupils are wide when he looks at you, mouth still slack from the kiss you were in the middle of, shoulder moving in tune with each push inside of you. He doesnât respond, lost entirely in the moment and so fucking horny over what heâs doing to you right now.Â
He kisses against you again, moving his hand faster, deeper, when his lips reach your neck.Â
âCherry girl.â He mumbles mindlessly, kissing down your neck and to the exposed skin on your chest that your shirt offers. âTastes good on you.â He continues to mumble, working his way down as he kisses over your clothes up until he dips under your skirt. âIn you.â
So, yeah, youâre being fucked with a well-abused lollipop and youâre not ashamed to moan about it because, holy shit.
His mouth is on you harder than it was when he was making out with you previously. Chasing the flavor, moaning for it, gripping your ass and pulling you closer against his tongue. You grip at the hard floor under you, unable to grasp anything at all through the sudden and intense jolts of pleasure.
And he doesnât stop moaning, that sucker still being pushed in and out of you, only pulled out briefly for him to, presumably, shove it in his mouth before circling his lips around your clit with a hard suck. And he does that over and over again, like a loop of intended pleasure where heâs just fucking drowning in all of his favorite flavors.Â
To not be into this is insane, to not grip onto something is even crazier. You reach down, pulling your skirt up just to see the way his eyes are rolled back, totally unable to make eye contact with you as he relishes in the red-sugar flavor of your cunt. The image alone makes you roll your hips up, which leads to him moaning louder for you to do it again, and again, essentially fucking yourself both on your boyfriendâs tongue, and his candy.Â
In the heat of the moment, you finally find your grip in his hair, pulling it so tightly between your fingers that you know itâs hurting him, but he seems to like it. Another secret of his, you guess, as you keep doing that, pulling his hair, riding up against the pleasure heâs offering, and thenâ god the fucking ears.Â
So cute on a man doing something so filthy and messy. You canât hold it, you justâ
âFuck, keep goingââ You stutter out in time with your hips, jerking back and forth both towards and away from him. âRight there,â
Jay is beyond pleased knowing he can make you cum this way. It wasnât exactly in the plan to fuck his girlfriend like this tonight, but heâs glad he did. Especially seeing you chase the pleasure like this. Heâs quick to maintain his rhythm, pushing the lollipop in right at the perfect angle, lips and tongue vibrating against your clit in a way that forces your hips forward, unmoving, stiff and you release.Â
He can feel it, that sticky sweet slick dripping out of you, pulsing with each rush of pleasure. It takes everything in him not to abandon your clit and drink it all up, but heâs stronger than (barely). Heâs good to you, waiting until that grip in his hair finally loosens beforeâ
Youâre pulling twice as hard at it now. Feeling the way he gives you no seconds to recover. Heâs immediately pushing his face back down, licking everything thatâs dripped out of you and letting it slide down his throat before finally pulling the lollipop out of you.
And he continues to lick, and lick, and lick, sucking and still fucking you with his tongue, lollipop gripped in his hand, pressing it against your thigh as if itâs forgotten about.
You try to wiggle away from him, the sensitivity too much from the image of him going feral, to the way heâs licking inside of you, to the forceful push of his nose right against your sensitive clit. And itâs so fucking crazy too, the way youâre still throbbing, the way you feel a second orgasm coming far too soon to the point you know itâll hurt.Â
You grip at his hair again, accidentally unclipping one of his ears as you have to force him to come up for air. More for your sake, in all honesty, but fuuuuck, itâs hard to hold him here with the way heâs looking at you now.
Lost, confused, even a bitâŠinsane.
âI canâtââ
He tries to push back down, tongue falling out of his mouth when you keep that grip in his hair.Â
âJay, It hurts.â
âFuck, baby,â He starts in an out of breath groan, totally forgetting about the nearly-disintegrated lollipop as it drops to the floor. âJust really, really need it right now.âÂ
In that action, you see Jay act more desperate than he ever has, grabbing you by the ankles and pulling you further down, forcing your legs open despite the sensitivity. You swear you hear him purr when he looks between your legs, witnessing a wet mess of sweetness, only to see even more the truth of his words now.Â
You see the truth of how badly he needs it in the way he takes that sticky hand of his and pushes it down his pants, not even unbuttoning them before aggressively palming against himself, panting out for you to give him more.Â
God. You think you might be in love with this guy. Too soon.
Too fucking soon.
What does it matter if youâre sensitive? Fucking look at him. Heâs dying for it.
And so, you spread your legs wider, embarrassingly wiggling down to lock your legs around your sweet, black-cat of a boyfriend who canât stop furiously jerking off.Â
âTake it then.â You coo out, wiggling your open cunt right in front of his lap.
He doesnât take his time either, shoving his too-tight pants down his thighs, shifting onto his knees, and immediately stuffing his cock into that same sugary slick. He holds his breath at first before releasing an insanely broken moan at the grip of your cunt around him.
The moan nearly sounds like heâs in pain, muttering half-words that canât articulate a damn meaning even if he tried. Totally lost in the tightness, he barely notices you wrapping your legs around his waist, suffering through the way he knows heâs big, and ignoring how usually he always takes it slow so you can adjust.Â
Not this time. No, you feel each pulse try to rip your hole just to accommodate the thickness he offers. And he just moans more at the way you wince, practically drooling on yourself as you clench, and squeeze, and hold onto him as if youâll fall off the face of the earth if you were to let go.Â
His mind is clear enough to hold you in return though, only because he knows itâs about to hurt more before it starts feeling better for you. Unfortunately, his mind is also just foggy enough to give you the short relief of his thick cock leaving you, only to slam in again, harder.Â
You cry out at it, nails nearly digging straight through his shirt as you instinctively try to hold onto him through the pain. He soothes you through each pleasurable sound. Out-of-breath hums and moans right in your face when he presses his forehead to yours, each painful thrust followed with a compliment and a grunt.Â
âSo good, baby, soââÂ
âYouâve taken it so many times before, fuck, just a bit moreââÂ
âJust relax. Please, baby, I know it hurts.â
Eventually, your body does relax, accommodating his size and painful plunges into you. Up until the rhythm is natural and the slapping of where your bodies meet sounds like nothing but a pornographic mess of pleasure.Â
Both of you now losing it, you let Jay be the one to take it. You let him fuck freely, as hard as he wants, as loud as he wants up until youâve had at least two more orgasms and youâre barely able to open your eyes, better yet function.
You donât know where he got this stamina, considering most nights when youâre together itâs a one and done thing. Then again, most nights he doesnât fuck you with halloween candy, eat it out of you, then fuck it back into you.Â
When he finally reaches his climax though. Oh, oh god. You think you mightâve let the word âloveâ slip from your slack lips upon feeling his cum inside of you, pumping out and filling you up beyond whatâs normal for him.Â
You wonder if that little slip of words made him last longer, because goddamn did he hold you closer, and fuck did he kiss you like he never has before through the orgasm.
And when itâs all said and done, the two of you are left out of breath, a sticky mess of pink-tinted cum, salty sweat, and nearly bruised lips. Youâd say it should be embarrassing to walk out of whoeverâs room this is, but you actually find yourself giggling into your boyfriendâs side during the walk of shame.Â
Mostly because you left the room together to find an entire circle of people outside of the door, presumably listening in. Which isâŠyeah, theyâre weirdos. Then again, the two of you didnât really make it into the room before all of this started. You guess youâd probably listen too if someone was getting fucked against a door.
The giggling though, that comes from learning who owns the bedroom you just got candy-fucked in. His wide eyes narrowing upon witnessing who was in there is probably the funniest thing youâd seen all night.Â
Poor Sunghoon. Youâd have cleaned up the mess if your legs were working properly.
But theyâre not, so, good luck to him, you guess.